An Introduction To The Science of Comparative Mythology
An Introduction To The Science of Comparative Mythology
An Introduction To The Science of Comparative Mythology
PRINCETON,
V
N,
J.
Seciion......: .Stt^W
.
.(
SAel/..
Number
._-^.
COMPARATIVE
of
GREECE
from the
EARLIEST PERIOD
Edition.
2 vols.
of the
Demy
The
MYTHOLOGY
Edition.
ARYAN NATIONS.
New
Edition.
New
Small
Demy
8vo.
TALES
of crown 8vo.
ANCIENT GREECE.
ts.
A MANUAL
and
of
MYTHOLOGY
NeEdition.
of the
ANSWER.
QUESTION
By
POPULAR ROMANCES
MIDDLE AGES.
the
Rev. Sir G. W. Cox, M.A., Bart., and Third Edition. Crown 8vo. 6^.
London
CO.
AN
INTRODUCTION TO
BY THE
Rev. Sir
'
GEORGE
W,
XOX,
Bart., M.A.
'
AUTHOR OF
THE MYTHOLOGY OF THE ARYAN NATIONS
ETC.
^^^^my^,
SECOND EDITION
LONDON
KEGAN PAUL, TRENCH,
& CO.,
1883
i
PATERNOSTER SQUARE
an
reserved')
.jT
PRIITGHTOrj
\.
PREFACE
My
purpose
in
this
volume
is
to give a
general view
Aryan nations
may
render necessary.
ditions of
same
lite-
common to all branches of the Aryan stock and furnished by popular sayings, stories, and tales, many of which have never had the good fortune to be more than the talk of
nurses and children.
and
what
in strict
speech
we may speak
of as
and
civilisation,
and sum up
their thoughts
on the origin
Folklore, in short,
;
vi
PREFACE.
myths which do not exhibit in some of their features points of likeness to the tales usually classified under the
head of
In
folklore.
*
my
Manual of Mythology
in the
'
Greek
who have
to
make
the subject.
My
Roman mythology
book might not only have nothing to unlearn, but should become fairly grounded in the method of the science. I
venture to hope that this primary catechism
to serve as a
may
continue
useful
to impart to the
Aryan popular
he desires to
my
volumes on the
'
many
volume
I
at,
To
full
these volumes
evidence of
many
which
in the present
work
am
make no
fully
pretension
But
am
in
attempts to
or
Scandinavian
of lesser
Aryan
sources.
The Greeks
PREFACE.
Semitic peoples,
religious
vii
who
;
influence
worked
their
way
into
difficulties
and perplexities
who
tries to exhibit
as belonging wholly to an
Aryan
stock.
some other
;
may
but beyond
doubt
it
was largely
affected
ritual
and
belief.
A presumption,
trace the
to this source
we may
many
who come
gladly acknowledge
my
The examination
that
it
of
in
Aryan
owes
its
generations of mankind
by
outward world.
in
proportion the
or strik-
Among
or say-
lunar, nor
and which describe with singular exactness the phenomena of clouds and water, of forests and mountains,
of the
viii
PREFACE.
The myth
;
and storms.
is
a parasite which
in
is
ready to
and
each case
it is
the business
if
its
G.
Bekesbourne:
Feb. i6, i88l.
W.
C.
CONTENTS,
CHAPTER
THE
ISIATERIALS OF
I.
POPULAR TRADITION.
PAGE
.
Popular stories of ancient and modern times Self-moving and self-guiding ships Antiquity of popular stories
Materials for epic
poems
....
.
2
3
Varying fortunes of popular stories Question of the origin of popular traditions Organic or Primary, and Inorganic or Secondary, Myths
Effects of the dispersion of tribes
4 6
7
Polyonymy
Fatal Children . . Mythical robes and weapons Greek tribal legends Common elements of popular tradition Modes of transmission of popular stories. Hypothesis of borrowing Cases of lateral transmission Conditions determining the course of the development of myths . Alleged connexion of mythology with primitive revelation .
The
9
lo
II
13
14
15
i6
17 i8
20 23 24
Hymns of the Rig Veda Hymns to the Dawn I. The Vedic Varuna II. Dyaus III. MiTRA
Language of the
IV. V.
Indra
Brahma
.... ....
. .
CONTENTS.
VI. The Hellenic Zeus Zeus and Prometheus The Olympian Zeus
Lykaon
of the heaven
.
VIII. IX.
X. XI. XII.
Genealogy of Odin Odin and Wish Odin, the one-eyed, and Hakol-berend Odin and Tyr Thor. Thor and his hammer Fro. Friuja Heimdall. Himinbiorg Bragi. CEgir The Latin Jupiter. Characteristics of Latin mythology
. .
.....
. .
The Latin
deities
Jupiter and Juno Myths of the Dawn and the Sun Framework and materials of these myths XIII. Urvasi
XIV. UsHAS.
Eros and Psyche Northern sun and dawn myths Ushas and the Panis Ahana and Sarama
Erinyes, Harpies, Ate doctrine of Necessity. Moirai, Weird Sisters Norns, Adrasteia, Nemesis, the Parcse, Fates, and Aisa The horses and chariot of the sun Arusha, the Greek Eros The Muses and the CamenK
.
XVIL
XVIII. Eos. Tithonos XIX. Hebe. Ganymedes XX. Europa. Kadmos (Cadmus), Agenor, Telephassa XXI. Althaia. Meleagros, Olger the Dane XXII. AxHENfi. Athene and Ahana Athene Koryphasia and Akria Athene Tritogeneia Athene Glaukopis. Athene mother of Lychnos and Phoebus XXIII. The Latin Minerva XXIV. APHRODITfi Aphrodite and Hephaistos
. .
XXV. Venus
XXVL HiRE
....
.
The children of Here XXVII. The Latin Juno XXVIII. Surya and Savitar
CON TEATS.
XXIX. Soma
The Asvins
Correlative deities.
Yama
....
Soma and Uma
. .
Mythical geography . Phoebus and Telphoussa . Apollon Delphinios Apollo and Daphne Apollo, the life-giver and healer. Apollo and Hermes The oracle of Delphi lamos and the lamidai
.
Asklepios
Stories of drought
The gardens of Midas XXXII. Herakles (Hercules) The labours of Herakles The apologue of Prodikos The weapms of Herakles
...
Herakles and Kerberos (Cerberus) Herakles and Laomedon Herakles and Deianeira Herakles and Admetos Herakles in bondage The death of Herakles The comic Herakles
.
.
The
XXXIII. Perseus
Perseus Perseus Perseus Perseus
.....
Polydektes
.
Herakles
XXXIV. Theseus
Theseus Theseus Theseus Theseus
....
.
XXXV.
CEdipus
CEdipus and Theseus Moral aspect of the myth of CEdipus and lokaste
OEdipus and the Sphinx CEdipus and the Eumenides The children of CEdipus . CEdipus and Telephos
Paris
.
.
and
his kinsfolk
CONTENTS.
Pelias
and Neleus
.
.
.
.
PAGE 130
131 132 133
Cyrus Minos and Manu . Sarpedon and Glaukos Kephalos (Cephalus) and Prokris Vitality of the Aryan gods
. .
.
.
XXXVI. Balder.
Cloudeslee and Tell
XXXVII, Vishnu.
The Dwarf
Incarnation
.
.
Vishnu and Indra The worship of Vishnu Eastern and Western Mysteries
infancy of Krishna
.
.
U7
148
Neith and the Phenix The moon and stars lo and Argos The wanderings of lo lo, Epaphos, and Apis
.
.
XXXIX. Hecate
XL. Artemis
Artemis Tauropola, Iphigeneia, Britomartis, and Dikty nna -160 Kirke (Circe) and Kalypso Tanhaiiser and Thomas the Rimer 161 The Seven Sleepers and the Seven Rishis 162 The hunter Orion Aktaion
....
. . .
CHAPTER
Agni The
III.
THE FIRE
parentage and birth of Agni Agni and Hestia Agni, Bhuranyu, and Phoroneus Hestia. Vesta The Latin Lares and Penates
.
II.
Ill
IV.
Vulcan
....
.
The Hesiodic Ages Prometheus and Epimetheus Prometheus and Deukalion Ramifications of the myths of Prometheus
CONTENTS.
VII.
(Cyclopes)
lightning.
....
179 180
CONTENTS.
CHAPTER
Difference of
I.
VII.
THE EARTH.
Aryan from Semitic mythology DiONYSOS
Dionysos Dionysos Dionysos Dionysos Dionysos
Priapos
II.
Demeter.
.... ....
and Semele and the Tyrrhenian the Wanderer and Bacchus
a cosmical deity.
sailors
Zagreos.
HoLDA
....
.
Mars
Vn. Rhea
The Kabeiroi (Cabiri) and Idaian DaktyL The Satyrs and Seilenoi (Sileni)
.
CHAPTER
I.
VIIL
Hades
II.
Hades and the Olympian gods Hades Polydegmon Erebos and Charon Elysion The conflict of light and darkness The shutting up of the waters
.
.....
.
.
III.
Typhon and
Belleros
Ahriman
devil
.... ....
.
The Teutonic
CHAPTER
Materials for epical
IX.
The
259
2fJO
stolen treasures
CONTENTS.
The Argonautic Expedition
lason and Medeia
The materials of the myth The Tale of Troy The judgment of Paris
Achilles and Patroklos Achilles and Agamemnon The arming of Achilles Achilles and Priam The death of Achilles The fall of Ilion Paris and the Panis Achilles and the Myrmidons
,
....
.
poems
IV.
V.
VI. VII. VIII. IX.
Brynhild and Gudran The NlBELUNGENI.IED The vengeance of Kriemhild Walter of Aquitaine HUGDIETRICH The GuDRUN Lay The Frithjof Saga The Grettir Saga The Story of Roland
.
Havelok and Goldborough loves of Argentile and Curan Havelok and Hamlet The genealogy of Hamlet XIV. The Saga of Beowulf XV. The Romance of Arthur
.
.
Early years of Arthur The loves of King Arthur Arthur's sword The scabbird of Arthur's sword Arthur and the Fatal Children
.
The
story of Balin
Arthur and Guenevere The Round Table and the Sangreal The wanderings of Arthur
CONTENTS.
Gawaine and Lancelot
PAGE 322
:
The
weird sisters Mythical cycles in the Arthur Romance I. Arthur II. Balin. III. Lancelot IV. Gareth V. Tristram , Tristram and Marhaus Tristram and the two Isoltes Tristram as a warrior Tristram and Arthur Talismanic tests The Sangreal . Guenevere and Elaine
. .
.
Arthur and Mordred Arthur in the Vale of Avilion Merlin XVI. Bevis of Hampton
.
....
.
XVII. Guy of Warwick XVIII. The Mahabharata The Pandavas and Draupadi Yudhi-shthira and the Kauravas Nala and Damayanti
.....
Aryan mythical
tradition
APPENDIX
I.
II.
III.
of the Nibelungenlied
351 361
Romance
INDEX
INTRODUCTION
TO THE SCIENCE OF
Few things are more strange than the persistency with which impressions received in early youth remain fixed in the mind, although they may have no founda- Popular stories of ancient and ,_/ tion whatever m fact. We are, or were, generally modem times. led as children to look on Greek and Latin as dead languages, and to regard all the books written in those languages as the literature of a dead world. Between ancient and modern times we place an iron barrier, although where the line is to be drawn we cannot say; and so we learn the forms of the ancient speech without seeing that those forms are still quick and living in our own, and read the poems which delighted Athenian hearers or readers without perceiving that they have any materials in common with the poems and stories which have come to us in a Of these two distinctively Teutonic or English dress. wonderful facts it would be hard to determine which is the more astonishing. Things may be somewhat changed now-a-days but until within the present generation boys read the Iliad and Odyssey and worked their way through
.
;
the dramas of the Greek tragic poets under the fixed impression that they contain
in
Under
this
Athens or Rome two thousand years ago and a few perhaps have tried to find reasons for the fact that the Iliad and the Odyssey, the Odes of Pindar, and the plays of ^schylus or Sophokles should be made up of materials wholly different from those which have furnished our nursery tales. That these poems and dramas, the works of the highest human genius, should contain anything like the stories of Cinderella or Bluebeard, of Beauty and the Beast, of Big Bird Dan or the Shifty Lad, was a thought not to be entertained The dignity of the Homeric poets would for a moment. not have stooped to use such materials, even if they had known them but our common impression is that they did not know them. In so thinking or speaking we are no
;
;
men who
set to
work
to explain
it
why
it
than
weighed without the fish. The fish, of course, added to the weight of the jar and the familiar tales of English nurseries are to be found in the Iliad and Odyssey, in the Greek drama, and in the pages of Greek historians or mythographers. It would be almost within the bounds of truth to say that scarcely one is wanting, and that the only matter for astonishment is that the forms of these stories were so much more beautiful then than they are now. We may take the story of Big Bird Dan.^ Here we have a boat which sails of itself, if you only say, Boat, Self-moving boat, go On.' Tlic wanderer who is to go in it is and selfguiding ships, told that m the boat there is an iron club, which lie is to lift when he sees before him the ship which is bearing away the maiden whom he loves, and the raising of
;
'
'
becomes a
He
is
further told,
'
When
turn it about and shove it off and say, " Boat, boat, go back home." The boat of this old Norse story matches the mysterious ships of the Phaiakian king Alkinoos in the Odyssey.^ These vessels have neither rigging nor tackling, helmsmen nor rudders but they know the thoughts and minds of men, and dread no disaster as they pass from one land to another, for not one of them has ever been stranded or wrecked, or failed to reach the point which it was seeking.
;
But
it is
lous ships.
we come across these marvelThe bark Skidbladnir can carry all the ^sir,
of the Teutonic Olympus, and yet it may be up and borne in the hand like a garment. In another Norse story ^ the ship becomes bigger and bigger as soon as the voyager steps into it, and when he leaves it becomes again as small as it was before. These ships are the fleets which sail across the blue seas of heaven. They are the clouds which swell and shrink, which go straight to their mark with unerring instinct without failure and without hurt. They are to be seen everywhere and so we find the meaning of the lines in which the poet of the Odyssey
the gods
folded
tells
us that there
is
to
Ships do not
it
;
or over
on the dry land but the phrase stamps the character and reveals
sail
commonly
either
the nature of
all
We may
Thief.*
in the
Master
The main
we find
Antiqmty of
Herodotos^ of the pp"'--"Treasures of the Egyptian king Rhampsinitos. This tale is repeated in the Hindu legend of Karpara and Gata,'^ in
legend related by
'
" ' Gd. 8. 560. Oa. 8. 557. That of Shortshanks, Dasent. Grimm, Household Tales; Dasent, A'orse Tales; Campbell, Popular
2. 121.
'
JM^'lJiclcgy
i.
ch.
viii.
Lad/ in that of AH Baba and the Forty Thieves in the Arabian Nights. But it was also told in Europe in days long before those of Herodotos. It is found in the ancient Hymn to Hermes, who expressly receives as his reward the title of the Master Thief ^ So, again, the slipper of Cinderella is the slipper of Rhodopis, which an eagle drops into the lap of the Egyptian king at Memphis, and thus brings about the discovery of the owner ^ and we find it again in the Deccan tale of Sodewa Bai.^ In the legend of the Argonautic voyage, Phrixos and Helle are borne away by a ram with
the Highland story of the Shifty
;
a golden fleece
is
the carpet of
Solomon in the beautiful story of the Pilgrim of Love, related by Washington Irving in his Tales of the Alhambra.^ In this story we have also the enchanted horse, the rider of
which is carried on in an unbroken career of victory until the sun reaches the zenith. The magic spell then resumes its power, and the steed, scouring across the plain, plunges into the Tagus, hurries to the cavern from which it had issued in the morning, and becomes fixed as a statue beside
the iron table.
the
The
is
daily to the
summit
roll
of
from which
it
begins immediately to
down
Among
Materiaisfor
Odyssey are
and the palace of Kirke (Circe).*^ The ^^ which they feast makes all who taste it forget their homes, their honour, and their duty. Similar incidents are favourite features in Hindu stories. In one tale the rajah who marries the Queen of the Five Flowers ^ tastes some food over which the nautch-people, or concatcrs
epic poems.
^^^^^
'
^
'
Campbell, Tales of the West Highlands. 'Apxhs <pT]\vTewv. Hymn. Herm. 292. Strabo, xvii. p. 808.
Frere,
"
'
Mythology of the Aryan N'ations, vol. i. p. 157. Frere, Old Deccan Lays, Panch Phul Ranee.
Od.
84
10. 210.
have sprinkled a powder. No sooner had he done so than he forgot about his wife and little child and all
that
tc
him
when
Why should
produced by the evil charms wanderer is found after an absence of eighteen years, he is clad in the garb of a fakeer, and his face is thin, wrinkled, and seamed with age. But he is restored to all his ancient beauty, like Odysseus, and his wrongs are amply avenged. In this popular Hindu tale we have the framework of one of the greatest and of many another tale it epics of any age or country
Here the
of Kirke
and when
at length the
be said that in them are stored materials for epics not In the less great, although they have never been used. Indian stories, the radiant maiden, who becomes the raja's wife, dwells commonly in a house surrounded by seven wide ditches, each defended by seven great hedges made of spears. The tradition is one which belongs to a climate very diffeThe maiden is the summerrent from that of Hindustan. child of the great earth-mother, and the house in which she The seven hedges are is shut up is the abode of winter. the seven coils of the dragon Fafnir, who lies twined round the sleeping Brynhild on the Glistening Heath,^ and her
deliverance
may
by Sigurd
is
which
in
its
lungenlied, or the
Lay
When the raja is dead in the story of Do Paneh Phul Ranee, a jackal, talking to his wife, says If its leaves were crushed, and a little of you see this tree the juice put into the raja's two ears and upon his upper lip, he would come to life again and be as well as ever.' Here we have the Snake Leaves ^ of the German story, in which
'
.?
'
i.
273.
Grimm, Household
Tales.
snake is buried alive with his dead wife, approaches her body, and he cuts it into three pieces. Another snake then comes with three green leaves in its mouth, and putting one leaf on each vA^ound, restores the
a prince
dead serpent
wife's
to
life.
The
body, and she too lives again. The story is told When Minos said that by Apollodoros and by yElian. Polyidos must bring Glaukos to life, Polyidos was shut up with the dead body and, being sorely perplexed, he saw a dragon approach the corpse. This he killed with a stone,
'
and another dragon came, and, seeing the first one dead, went away and brought some grass, which it placed on the body of the other, which immediately rose up. Polyido.s, having beheld this with astonishment, put the same grass on the body of Glaukos and restored him to life.' This
'
remarkable tale is thus proved to have been known to Greek writers upwards of two thousand years ago and we have not the least warrant for supposing that it was less ancient than the story of the Master Thief as given in the Hymn to Hermes. Without going further, we have here ample evidence that the popular traditions of Germany, Norway, and India Varying forat the prcseut day were well known in Greece
;
and clscwhere for centuries before the Christian and that a large number of these stories are to be found in the Homeric poems, and in the great treasurehouse of the Athenian drama. The fate of these stories has been anything but uniform. Many with which Greek children were familiar have probably been lost altogether some have been preserved in the pages of historians and geographers others have grown into epic poems which will never die. But between these and the rest there is absolutely no difference of kind. The epic poem is a popular tale to which the highest human genius has imparted a peculiar charm and the same genius might have
era,
:
;
;
'
Apollodoros,
iii.
3. i.
handled in like manner other tales which perhaps may never have passed out of the range of common story-tellers. They must all> therefore, be regarded and treated as beThey longing to the vast stores of popular tradition. form, indeed, in the strictest sense of the words, and have formed for thousands of years, the folklore or learning of the people, embodying practically their whole knowledge
of the outward or sensible world.
If
any
distinction
is
to
be drawn between them, we might say that the tales which have been imbedded in the literature, written or unwritten, of the several nations form the Folklore, while those which are preserved only in the common speech of eveiyday life belong to the Folkrede, or popular talk.^ But, in truth, the distinction is scarcely needed ; and we have only to deal with the vast mass of popular traditions, and find, if possible, the source of the mighty river. In this task the prudent course seems to be to take those tales which have come to us in the simplest form. Such a tale is that of Sisyphos, who, as we have Question of the
seen,
is
condemned daily
hill
.,
11
origin of
popu-
lar traditions.
from which it begins at once to roll down. top of a Now if we look at the outward world, we see each day a great sphere or ball pushed up to a summit or zenith, and then descending from the height which it had reached. This sphere or ball is the Sun. But it is needless to say that the image of the sun suggests directly the idea of a light from which nothing is hid. In the story of Demeter and Persephone,^ and again in that of the Cattle of the Sun in the Odyssey, the Sun, or Helios, is the being
' It is, perhaps, open to doubt whether the terms Mythology and Folklore are likely to retain permanently their present relative meanings. Neither term is altogether satisfactory ; but the distinction between tales susceptible of philological analysis and those which are not must nevertheless be carefully maintained, as indispensable to any scientific treatment of the subject. In his Introduction to the Science of Language, Mr. Sayce admits ' that it is often difficult to draw the line between folklore and mythology, to define exactly where the one ends and the other begins, and there are many instances in which the two terms overlap one another.' Vol. ii. p. 276.
Hymn
to
Demeter, 70.
who
and the thought of this all-searching Wisdom, eye suggests inevitably the thought of wisdom. therefore, is the inherent property of the Sun-god, and Hence Hermes, thus belongs to Apollo by birthright.^ who, as we shall see, represents the air in motion, begs the
boon of
this
tells
him
that his
But the Greek name Sisyphos is simply a reduplicated form of Sophos, the wise and so we have the image of a wise being compelled to ascend the heaven or mountain, and compelled, in spite of his wisdom, his strength, and his power, to come down as he had gone up. The idea of compulsion may soon pass into that of toil, and the latter into the thought of punishment and thus the Sun becomes a criminal under sentence. This is perhaps one only among a thousand modes in which he may be regarded but the essential point for our notice is that the story of Sisyphos represents one popular notion of the functions of the Sun, or, in other words, embodies a popular thought respecting the outward or sensible world.
request can be granted only in part.^
;
A presumption
may
is
and
it
becomes
at
this source.
is therefore one strictly and analysis, and the conditions under which this work must be done are laid down by the Science of Comparative Mythology, the science which compares the stories, as the science of comparative philology compares the speech, of tribes or nations which exhibit any
The work
before us
of comparison
tokens of
affinity.
The
science
proposes,
in
short, to
examine popular traditions generally, beginning with the only basis which may be surely trusted, the basis of language. The Greek mythos, or myth, is simply a word or a saying and in the story of Sisyphos we have nothing more than a word or saying about the sun. But it is a saying
;
'
Hymn
to Apollo, 132.
Hymn
to
Hermes, 533.
'
which may be traced through countless stones belonging to the most distant lands, and thus we cannot treat the folklore or the mythology of any people as a peculiar possession. The measure in which their special characteristics may have developed or shaped it can be ascertained only when the work of comparison is done. It is obvious that what was done for the Sun, as in the story of Sisyphos, might be done for any other object of thought in the outer world, for the moon or the organic orpristars, for summer and winter, for light and dark- ^amc'or"lcon: '"^'''^*' ness, for heat and cold and the few traditions of which we have already spoken are common, as we have seen, to Greeks, Norwegians, Germans, Hindus, and perhaps Egyptians also. We must therefore treat their stories as one vast body of popular tradition, for which the presumption is that it expresses the thoughts of mankind on the mighty multitude of things which they saw, heard, or felt in the world around them. But one great lesson of history is that nations and tribes will throw out shoots and branches, these branches often preserving no political connexion with the parent stem. The popular stories or folklore belonging to them may thus be divided at once broadly into two classes, (i) those which were known to the yet undivided tribe or race, and (2) those which sprang up after the division, and were developed by the offshoots severally, or were borrowed by one from any
''^''^''
;
other.
The stories or myths of the first kind are called Organic or Primary,Uhose of the other kind being Inorganic The tale of Sisyphos belongs to the former or Secondary. class, and resolves itself, in fact, into one or two short sayings, The wise being is rolling the ball up the heaven
'
'The great
after the
ball
is
rolling
down
the
heaven.'
But
separation Sisyphos became for the Greeks a proper name, and Sisyphos himself took his place amongst
' Professor Max Miiller defines these as myths which were known to the primceval Aryan race, before it broke up into Hindus, Greeks, Romans, Ger'
mans, and
Celts.'
lo
ran
that he was very wise and very wicked, and that in the
unseen world
heaven.
tion
his
Such a result was the inevitable consequence of separaand we can now begin to form some idea of the Effects of the mighty changes which would come over the com:
tri'bes.
mon talk or folklore of the undivided Aryan when, starting from their home in Central Asia, one set or branch started to find their way into India, another into Persia, another into Greece and Italy, and another again into the regions of Northern Europe. It is easy
race,
as they remained in their original home, the members of the family, or tribe, or nation, would all attach the same meaning to all the words which to see that so long
they used.
a great
in the
If
they had, as
for
we know
that
all
nations have,
and sounds outward world,* for the sun, moon, and stars, for night and day, for sea and land, for summer and winter, there was no one who would not know, when he heard these names, that they denoted the sun, moon, and stars or other objects, and not something else of which he was ignorant. But after the separation names and words would begin gradually to change their meaning, while the old safeguards which prevented them from being misunderstood would no
sights
many names
the same
longer exist
and thus at length the meaning of many or most of the old words or names would be either partially
;
or wholly forgotten.
The proof of this fact is furnished to we are now able to make be-
The Greek word for this usage is Polyonymy. Thus the sun might be the wise being, the all-seeing, the wanderer, the toiler, the healer, the poisoner, the slayer, the shortlived, the beautiful, the malignant, the conqueror, the slave, the charioteer, the faithful, the faithless, the husband of the dew, the child or the destroyer of the night, the darkness, or the morning. The words used in speaking of him under any of these aspects would serve as the basis of a separate story, and this story might or might not be made the groundwork of an epic poem, of a lyric ode, or of a drama.
tween the several cognate languages in which any of these names or phrases are found. This comparison shows us that many names which in some one or more of a group of dialects have no meaning are perfectly intelligible in other kindred languages or, to put it in another way, that words which in the one look only like proper names of human beings or of gods with human forms and human appetites appear in the other as names of clouds or storms, light or
;
Thus, in Greek, the words Argynnis, outward world. Phoroneus, and Erinys, are names which do not explain their own meaning, as do Selene and Helios, Eos and Asterodia. They cannot be interpreted by any words in the Greek language, or at least the old Greeks were quite unable to find the clue. But in the earliest traditions of India we still find them retaining their original force, and serving simply as names for visible things in heaven and earth. Erinys is thus found to be Saranyu, a name for the Argynnis appears as dawn as it creeps along the sky Arjuni, a name denoting the brilliancy of the morning or early day ^ and Phoroneus becomes intelligible as the god of fire Bhuranyu.^ But this process of change would not go on at the same The meaning of some conditions rate with all names. might be forgotten altogether in the course of a reXmem'f and this would happen when "'^''^^ few generations of two, three, or more names for a single object one
'
;
' The root of the name is Sar, to creep. It gives us not only the name Saranyu, but Sarama, who in the Rig Veda is likewise the dawn, as the guardian of the cows of Indra, which she rescues from the Panis, the robbers The child of Sarama is Sarameyas, which in Greelc is transof the night. The name literated into Hermeias, or Hermes, the air in motion, or wind. Sarama itself is reproduced in the Greek Helene. From this same root we have also the name of the Lykian chief Sarpedon, the serpent or creeper. Mythology of Aryan Nations, book ii. ch. ii. From this root arj, raj, we have the Hindu raja, the Latin rex, reg-is, a king, argentum, silver, the Norse god Bragi, and the Greek Argos, with its large family of kindred words.
'^
The Greek
;
cm Jirj
had, of course, the correlative word irCp, the German Feuer, but there was nothing to guide him to this comparison.
12
was retained
were flung
remain, as
name for that object, while the others The name which was kept would
say, transparent
;
we may
that
is,
everyone
would know what it meant when they heard it. But they would not know the meaning of the others and if any phrases ascribed to things so named the actions or
;
still
and feelings to every object of the outward world), these would grow into stories which might afterwards be woven together, and so furnish the groundwork of what we call a legend or a romance. This will become plain, if we take the Greek sayings or myth about Endymion and Selene. Here, besides these two names, we have the names Protogeneia and Asterodia. But every Greek knew that Selene was a name for the moon, Avhich was also described as Asterodia because she has her path among the stars, and that Protogeneia denoted the first or early-born morning. Now Protogeneia was the mother of Endymion, while Asterodia was his wife and so far the names were transparent. Had all the names remained so, no myth, in the strict sense of the word, could have sprung up but as it so happened, the meaning of the name Endymion, as denoting the sun when he is about to plunge or dive into the sea, had been forgotten, and thus Endymion became a beautiful youth with whom the moon fell in love, and whom she came to look upon as he lay in profound sleep in the cave of Latmos. But Latmos, again, was a word which told its own story to the Greek, who knew that it meant only forgetfulness. The myth of
ascribe these actions
; ;
Endymion may
first,
its
could not have gone farther, until the meaning of the other names had been to the same extent forgotten. Had they been so forgotten, we should
or organic, stage.
have had a story about them all not less stirring, perhaps, than that which tells us of the loves of Paris and QEnone, of Brynhild and Sigurd.
13
Hence the measure in which the old meaning of names was remembered or forgotten determined the growth of
the popular stories
find portions of
Mythical
"^'"^^
not
fail
names have so
far lost
Greeks knew that Helios was the sun, remained the common name for the sun and although they had forgotten what was meant by the cattle of Helios in the Odyssey, they would still understand that the names of Phaethousa and Lampetie, the nymphs who fed them, denoted simply their splendour and brightness.' They knew also that Phoebus was the lord of life and light, and the idea of him was closely connected in their minds with Hence they cannot have altogether failed that of the sun. to see why he should be born in Delos, the bright land why he should be Lykegenes, the being who springs up in glory and why his mother should be Leto, the dark night from which he comes, and whose name we have already seen in that of the cave at Latmos. Having advanced thus far, we begin to see the practical working of the system of Polyonymy,^ and to mark how names of the same meaning, and often the same Poiyonymy. names, are given both to the men and women who appear as actors in these popular stories. Thus in the Theban legend, the mother of Kadmos (Cadmus) and Europa is Telephassa, the being who 'shines from far;' but this is only the feminine form of the name of the Argive hero Telephos, who is also a child of Auge, another of the
;
;
See note,
^. 10.
14
belong Eurytos and Europa, Euryganeia, Euryphassa, Euryanassa, Eurymedousa, Eurybates, Eurydike, Eurykleia. But in these stories the correspondence is by no means
confined to the
The
fatal
names
The
likeness
chi.dren.
^^^ ^^^ m.ercly to separate incidents, but to the and order of events, and generally to the whole framework of the tale or myth. One large class of stories relates the fortunes of the fatal children, whose life inSometimes the volves the destruction of their parents. latter are warned by an oracle of the doom which awaits them at the hands of their offspring, whom accordingly they expose, and who are always saved by some beast and brought up by some herdsman. The children so rescued always grow up beautiful, brave, generous, and strong but
series
;
fulfil
the
birth.
This
is
;
the fate of
of CEdipus,
;
who
kills
who who
Theban king
;
of Cyrus,
Median king Astyages and of Romulus These heroes are all and Remus, who slay Amulius. brought up in great simplicity and poverty but their real rank is in each case made known by the splendour of Not their countenances and the dignity of their bearing.
;
and
whose career
is
as short
is
glorious.
of Volsung, in
the
her babe.
is
In the Hindu
already dead
when her
Arthur
comes Macduff
is
and Sigurd
Teutonic tradition,
Grimm had
like
world
Llacdufi'
long ago remarked that all the children brought into the were in popular sloiy born to be great. Deutsche
Myihologie.
1$
them
is
In tale after
destructive as
tale, again,
Such
is
Medeia, and by which she ^"'' ^^p"^brings about the death of her rival, the Corinthian Glauke. In the Theban story, this robe, smeared with the blood of
(the sun) gives to
the
into
the
flesh
of
;
Herakles,
who immolates
and it reappears as the golden fleece in the story of Phrixos and Helle. Heat glows and destroys, but the rays of light go always straight to their mark and thus the heroes of popular tales are always armed with weapons which never fail to hit the point at which they are aimed. Like the robe of Medeia, these weapons are sometimes poisoned but in no case do any escape whom the bearers of these weapons seek to smite down. In spite of their weapons and their strength, the life of these heroes is little more than a long endurance of suff'ering and unwilling labour, for the interests of others and not in their own. They are often slaves and bondmen, like Apollo with the Trojan Laomedon and the Pheraian Admetos, and like Herakles with the tyrant Eurystheus. Like Herakles also, they are compelled to perform a series of impossible tasks, and the quarrels in which they fight are commonly not of their own
;
making.^
They
are,
mankind. Thus Kadmos (Cadmus) slays the dragon which chokes up the well of Ares and his descendant CEdipus destroys the Sphinx who plagued the Thebans with drought and pestilence. So Perseus rescues Andromeda from the Libyan dragon, and slays the mortal Gorgon Medousa, while Bellerophon, the destroyer of the Chimera,
;
Popular Romances of the Middle Ag^s, p. 41. This is emphatically asserted by Achilleus, //.
i.
54.
l6
is
as his
name
tells
us,
Belleros.
were confined to Greek stories would be a remarkable and even an astonishittg fact, because no conviction, perhaps, Greek tribal legends. ^^g j^Qj-g deeply impressed upon the several Hellenic tribes than that their own traditions were independent of those of other tribes, and that they recorded a veritable history which had run always in its own distinct channel. We shall find as we go on that no delusion could The Argives boasted of their hero well have been greater. Perseus, the child of the Golden Shower,' who is doomed
If these resemblances
He is girded with the sword of Apollo, and the golden sandals of the Nymphs bear him like a bird through the air. From the dim land of the Graiai he goes to the desolate abode of the
to be the slayer of his grandsire, Akrisios.
by
to
Gorgons, where the woes of the mortal Medousa are ended On the shores of Libya he the stroke of his sword. rescues Andromeda from the dragon's jaws, and he returns
Argos
in
triumph with
his mother,
who
still
retains all
her ancient beauty. The Theban tale related the fortunes of Oidipous (CEdipus), like Perseus, one of the fatal children,
It told
how,
by a wisdom
of the Sphinx,
how he
country from the plague of drought and sickness caused by the presence of the hated monster. In reward of his
prowess, he received a bride not less lovely than Andro-
but locaste, the wife of Laios, was also his own mother, and the story, thus taking a new departure, assumed an ethical form, which exercised the genius of one of the
meda
greatest poets of
ever, the
To
this point,
howthe
Theban and
made up on
Horace, Od.
3.
16.
17
features in
common.
is
The names
glorified
are
altered, but
touch of the highest human genius in others it tame by comparison, or uncouth, or rough. But wherever we go, in the west, the north, or the east, we are confronted
by fabrics of popular tradition built up of the same materials. Everywhere we find the conflict of the bright heroes with dark demons, dragons, and monsters. Thus the great theme of the Vedic hymns is the mighty conflict of the Sun-god Indra with the huge serpent Vritra, who has stolen his cows, and shut them common up in his stifling prison-house. In the Volsung plfp"^,^^'^ ^ ""^d^'O"story,' Sigurd rescues the maiden Brynhild by
slaying the snake Fafnir,
treasures
who
lies
on the Glistening Heath. In Rustam the Persian story has a hero as mighty as Herakles, to whose career
his
own
presents a marvellous
resemblance.
All these,
armed with the same impenetrable mail, all have weapons which never miss their mark, and most of them
again, are
The
and heroes
it
is
extends to their persons and their features. Amongst the dark as well as amongst the fair races, amongst those who are marked by black hair and dark eyes, they exhibit the same unfailing type of blue-eyed heroes whose
golden locks flow over their shoulders, and whose faces gleam as with the light of the new-risen sun. Nay, in the general course of their lives we see the same moral outlines.
starts with the desire of doing a benefit to those who need it each is ready to sacrifice his own ease and to undergo hard toil for the sake of those who are weaker and meaner than himself. In all or most of them this bright promise is clouded by a change, which shows them in
Each
may
Thorpe,
Edda of SiZDiiind.
IS
malign aspects. In the spendour of their beauty they love maidens as radiant as themselves in a little while they either forsake them or slay them. Death is thus the fate of Koronis, the mother of Asklepios of Daphne, another darling of Apollo of Prokris, the bride of Kephalos. hundred legends tell the story of the desertion which befell Ariadne at the hands of Theseus, or Brynhild at those of Sigurd. The stories of Achilleus, Meleagros, and Herakles bring these heroes
;
;
fits
of
gloom and
sullenness.
When
they are absent from the fight, their followers or countrymen are powerless but though they are doomed to
;
is
to be preceded
by
brilliant
over the
lustre
of their beauty
undimmed, and
left
them
these,
suppose that such resemblances as extending to the very core as well as to the frameModesof work of the stories, can be accidental. That popuiarstories. Grccks and Romans, Hindus, Germans, and borrowing. Norscmcn can have borrowed them from one
It is impossible to
in the homes in which we them at the beginning of history, is a notion scarcely less wild and absurd. The Homeric Hymn to Hermes is, as we have seen, sufficient evidence that the title of the Master Thief and his chief exploits were known to Greek poets perhaps a thousand years before the Christian era. Yet
to generation in
Even
more
striking, perhaps,
19
wanderings of Vicram Maharajah.^' In both these stones a bird vows to bring about the ruin of a human being for injuring a helpless and unoffending creature and in both
;
the offender
is
made
acts.
by
is
his
own
by a
voluntary
In the
German
story the
wrong
done
carter to a dog,
The
his
deed
shall cost
him
his horses
and
his
The
bunghole of one of the casks in the waggon, and the wine is lost. She then perches on the head of one of the horses, and picks out his eye. The carter, hurling his hatchet at
the bird, slays the horse.
The same
Hastening home, the carter bewails his disasters to his wife, who tells him that a wicked bird had brought a vast army of birds, which were eating every ear of corn in their wheat fields. The carter moaned over the poverty which had come upon him the bird, hearing him, says that he is not poor enough yet. His deed shall cost him his life. After desperate efforts he catches the bird, and when his wife asks if she shall kill it, he replies that that would be too merciful. He
;
in
and coming into his throat, cries out again The carter, in despair, bids his that she will have his life. wife bring an axe, and smite the bird in his mouth. Missing her aim, she kills her husband, and the predictions In the Deecan tale the place of the sparrow are fulfilled. of the sparrow is taken by a parrot, and that of the carter
by a
case
whom
The
brought before the raja, who determines to abide by the sentence of a wise parrot belonging to a merchant in the city. The bird is enabled to prove the false dealing
of the nautch-girl,
'
who
Frere,
Myth, cf Ar.
c
2.
A'aticns,
book
i.
eh. viii
20
The vow
of the
and the story runs to its issue with a cleverness and simplicity for which we look in
parrot
is
vain in the
tale.
Summoned
to the merchant's
is
her
own
reward.
head
be grilled and brought to her, that she may eat it before tasting anything else. The parrot is plucked, having escaped the wringing of its neck by pretending to be dead, and, during a momentary absence of the servant, wriggles itself into the hole which carries off the kitchen sewage, chicken's head is placed before Champa Ranee, who exults
may
But the one who fears death exceedingly, and her prayer to the god whose image stood in a neighbouring temple was, that she might be translated to heaven without
the process of dying.
image,
tells
the girl
The parrot, placing itself behind this when next she comes that her prayer
has been heard, and that, if she wishes to attain her desire, she must sell all her goods and give them to the poor, and
having levelled her house to the ground, must return to the temple, whence she should be bodily taken up into heaven. Champa Ranee does as she is bidden but when she hastens to the shrine with the women whom she has brought to witness her glorification, the parrot flies up from behind the
;
Where
is
and
you, or yours
your possessions Cursing her folly, the nautch-girl dashes } herself down on the floor of the temple, and is killed. The leading ideas of both these tales agree exactly the
all
' ;
You ate a chicken's head,' she ? Where are your servants Have my words come true, think
'
entirely different.
What
German had of borHindu from the days when Hermann crushed the legions
Tacitus,
Arminius.
Ann,
i.
6i.
21
would probably be true to say that no borrowed story ever dififered so widely from its original as that of Champa Raneediffers from the German tale of the Dog and the Sparrow. If there is absolutely no evidence of borrowing, and indeed no possibility of it, the notion must be given up, and it should be given up with good will. The argument which ascribes to conscious borrowing even those fables which are common to all the branches of the Aryan Family has been deservedly called sneaking.^ It seems to afford an explanation, when it is a mere surmise which furnishes none. But it is none the less impossible that the Hindu and the German should each for himself have hit on the idea which makes a bird the avenger of wanton wrongs, and brings about the ruin of the wrongClearly none
;
and
it
doer through his own acts, while in each case the criminal swallows or thinks that he has swallowed his persecutor. The framework of the story belongs, therefore, to that
distant
tim_e when the forefathers of the Hindu, the German, and the Englishman had still their common home in Central Asia. In these two tales we have a case of lateral transmission. The framework remains in each the materials worked into it differ wholly. But when we have traced the stories back to a common source, there remains
;
if it be posUnless the traditions exhibit common names in cognate languages (as Saranyu and Erinys, Arjuna and Argynnis, are admitted to be), we are not justified in ascribing them to phrases denoting the phenomena of the outward world. In these two stories the leading idea, it can scarcely be doubted, was a moral one the idea that wrong-doers will be punished, and that beings of no repute may be made the means of punishing them, or, to adopt the language of St. Paul, that weak things of the earth may be chosen to discomfit the strong, and the foolish to confound the wise. The case is altered when we come to deal with a
do
so.
ii.
233,
Myth, of Ar.
22
dew
as clearly as Selene denoted the moon. Kephalos is the head of the sun, the sun-god rising in his majesty. He sees Prokris on the Hymettian hill, and loves her, and Prokris returns his love. The dewdrop reflects the sunlight. But the dawn also loves the sun, and therefore Eos, another word as transparent to the Greek as Selene, loves Kephalos, and is jealous of Prokris. Then follows the sad story of deception, which leads Prokris to obtain from Artemis the spear which never misses its mark. This spear she gives to Kephalos, and with it she is smitten by him while she
Of
course
then,
we have
phrases relating to the sun, the dawn, and the dew, out of
which
it
sprang.
We
see our
way
when
we
of later
Hindu theology.
the giant Naraka,
quers
is
by Krishna, who at one and the same moment becomes the husband of si.Kteen thousand one hundred maidens, whose hands he receives at the same
time according to the
ritual in
separate mansions.
Into so
many
forms,
we
Madhu
multiplied him-
wedded her
society,
is
beyond measure
;
The
essence of the
story
lies in
it
is
1%
The black
over
all
the shades have been driven away, the same sun is reflected in the thousands of sparkling drops. At this point with the Hindu the myth ended. Had the same notion been presented to the Greek, he would probably have worked out a series of incidents leading up to a catastrophe in which the sun
;
The dew cannot become darkness has been dispelled and when
earthly things.
visible
until the
slays
them
all.
we have
two phases
in the
development of myths
in the inorganic
Conditions de-
or secondary stage.
names
are transparent, and the incidents are ... ... SO closely m accordance with the meaning the
still
.
comseoithe
development of myths,
ot
words that the narrators must have been to a certain extent conscious of the nature of the materials with which they were dealing. In the latter there was little in the names
to furnish a clue to the origin of the tale, although the incidents, as in the other,
speak
for themselves.
myths of the primary or organic stage. The parts of Krishna and Naraka cannot be reversed and it is Prokris, not Kephalos, who must fall by the spear of Artemis. The same may be said of the great Theban legend already The names Oidipous (QEdipus), Laios, lokaste, noticed. Antigone, had ceased to convey their original meaning to the Greek and the explanations which they offered for some of them were wrong and far-fetched. But the poets
; ;
who
compelled to move
and to adhere to the ancient framework of the myths. The myths so worked out became stories full of action and suffering, which are human in their character, although, it may be, superhuman in their grandeur and intensity. But we shall find that although the Greeks were in most cases unable to interpret the names
within certain
24
names Laios or Sphinx but it was nevertheless impossible for him to make Laios the conqueror of the Sphinx, or the slayer of Oidipous. Without going further, therefore, we begin to see the nature of the framework provided for the epic, lyric, and tragic poets of the Aryan world. We catch glimpses of the sentences which were gradually crystallised into a coherent tale, and we see that these sentences, when traced back to their
earliest form, resolve
ward and
sensible objects or
phenomena.
Oidipous slays
The
The Sphinx can be conquered only by him who can expound her riddles. Oidipous interprets them, and discomfits the dragon. The hero wins the wife of Laios as his bride. Such were the chief phrases which furnished the framework of the Theban story but Oidipous was the slayer of his father, and he becomes therefore his mother's husband. In the language of the Vedic hymns this is the marriage of the sun with the dawn from which he springs, and the saying is thus seen to be of precisely the same kind and of much the same meaning as the phrase, Selene loves Endymion.' But for the Greek the union of the son with the mother was a disaster unspeakably terrible, and none the less awful because the guilt was incurred unconsciously. For the Greek poet it became thus a moral problem, which he worked out with marvellous power. But if the Theban myth, turned into this channel, became shocking and awful, there were others which by a Hkc proccss wcrc rendered simply horrible and Alleged conloathsomc. The light thrown on the story of myVho"iogy Oidipous by the imperfect analysis already made ^Vektion.
brings plague upon the city.
;
'
'"^^
may
justify
No
room,
25
therefore, is left for the theory that they are simply fruits
and with
this
theory must
fall
also the idea that these old stories contain the corrupted
and that a
it is
series of pro-
could not
feeble
to misunderstand,
and which,
by a dim and
foreshadowing,^
is
plexities. Some of these tales, it has been well said, are as hideous and revolting as any which we find among the
and
in order to
prove
we should have
to
corresponding debasement. But this picture seems to be the very reverse of the facts. If we take the Iliad and
Odyssey, we shall find a number of gods who inhabit Olympos, and interfere in greater or less degree with the affairs of men. The descriptions given of these deities, if not absolutely and designedly immoral, certainly cannot be regarded as moral. Some of them are repulsive, some even
revolting
and
foul.
Along with
these,
we have
a society
and vices, is still vastly better than that of the Olympian hierarchy and this fact seems to be wholly inconsistent with the idea that a plan of redemption divinely imparted to man should have been constantly travestied until it assumed the form of society under which the gods live in the Iliad and Odysbe
its faults
;
may
sey,
as
in
is
other
Hellenic
;
literature.
Of
these deities
is
Hermes
the messenger
that
>
Chips from a German Workshop, ii. 13. Gladstone, Juvenilis Mundi. Myth. Ar. Nat. i. 24.
Mliller,
Max
25
In other words, it is a story which belongs to the class of popular tales which includes those
of Sisyphos and Tantalos. One or two of these we have already traced to the phrases or sayings on which they
grew up
and we have seen that these sayings referred simply to the sights or the sounds of the outward world. Our task, therefore, is to ascertain whether the stories told of Zeus, Apollo, Athene and other deities, whether Olym;
by any other name, have not grown up in same way. If it should be proved that they have, the theory that the Olympian gods are an anthropopian, or called
precisely the
morphic representation of a
vealed to
man
falls to
the ground.
;
and if the tales can in every not go on at the same time instance be traced to phrases denoting sensible phenomena, the effort to assign them to any other source must be
labour thrown
The examples already examined away. show that the wonderful changes which they underwent were due not to any wilful corruption of religious or moral truths, not to any weakness or disease of language,* but solely to failure of memory, caused by the disSo long as ruption of tribes from their ancient home. names retained their original meaning, anything like a story
may
suffice to
with a series of incidents could not be put together. When the Greek had either partially or wholly forgotten what his
Asia had meant by such words as Hermes, the growth of tales which spoke of them as beings of human form with human but although his memory was feelings was inevitable weakened, his language was as healthy and strong as ever.^
forefathers in Central
Prokris, Erinys, Hephaistos,
;
explained by Professor Max Miiller as diseased but as he added that this result was brought about only when the steps which led to the original metaphorical meaning of a word had been forgotten, and artificial steps had been put in their place, it is clear that the change is attributable not to language, but strictly to the defective memory of There is, therefore, no controversy on the subject. the speaker.
'
language
See Appendix
I.
27
CHAPTER
II.
The
thought of primitive man on the vast range of physical phenomena.' There is scarcely an object of the outward world which has not been described or figured in these popular stories. We have myths and mythological beings belonging to the heavens and the light, to the sun, the moon, and the stars, to the fire and the winds, to the clouds and the waters, to the earth, the under-world, and the darkUnder all these heads we have a crowd of myths ness.
Mr. Sayce, in his Introduction to the Science of Language, has dealt summarily with the objections commonly urged against the method and results of These objections fall for the most part under tw > comparative mythologj'. heads (i) That there is no warrant for endowing primitive man with the high imagination of a poet and (2) that the mythopoeic ages must have been marked by dull stupidity, if the phenomena of the atmosphere engrossed the whole attention of men who were yet too witless to understand the language These objections, he remarks, are mutually in which they were described.' The imagination of primitive man was neither too high nor too destructive. ' feeble. The gods they worshipped were the gods that brought them food and warmth, and these gods were the bright day and the burning sun. . It was not stupidity, but the necessities of his daily existence, the conditions in which his lot was cast, that made man confine his thoughts and care to the powers which gave him the good gifts he desired. Winter, according to the disciples of Zoroaster, was the creation of the evil one, and among the first thanksgivings lisped by our race is praise of the gods as " givers of good " (ii. 26S). things
' : ; '
.
'
23
but the phenomena of the same impression on the mind. Some are immeasurably more prominent than others, and more striking. Some are connected immediately and closely with the life and the well-being of man others scarcely affect them at all. The most important of all are necessarily those of the seasons, and these are dependent directly on the sun, so that of the whole body of myths an im-
which
universe do not
leave the
mensely large proportion relates to the action of that brilorb which even we can seldom mention without running into mythology ourselves. But the myths belonging to other groups are not less marked and distinct, and we shall find in the clouds and water sources of popular stories as rich in thought and colouring as any which relate to the bridegroom who comes forth daily from his chamber in the East and rejoices as a giant to run his course. We can, then, only take these traditions under their several heads, without attempting to determine the exact Question of ordcr in which the conceptions set forth in them
liant
the priority of myths.
arose
m
.
the
human mmd.
It
is
the
ethereal
heaven, and not the sun, which has been chosen in the
language of myths as the abode of the supreme God, the but it would be rash, perhaps, to assign priority in order of time to myths of the heaven over those of the sun, or to the latter over the former. The Hesiodic Theogony, which gives a long ancestry to Zeus, the supreme god of the Hellenic tribes, and seems to make him younger than Aphrodite, is the growth of a later age which had acquired a love of systematic arrangement and it is impossible to determine the order in which the ideas of the several beings springing from Chaos and Gaia took
dwelling of the All-father
;
;
shape.^
have a parallel case in what are called roots in language. find that many groups of Aryan words can be reduced to a root ma}- or mal, this root denoting a gradation of ideas from grinding, crushing, and destroying, to those of languor, decay, softness, and sweetness ; and we are apt to suppose that this root was used as a w^rd in something like its naked shape before he
i
We
We
it
is
regarded as
tlie
Tlic
29
which these ideas were formed we The book known as the Rig Veda
Hterature of the
Hindus exhibits
Language of
perhaps in their oldest shapes the thoughts of the Rig veda. men on the phenomena of the outward world. It contains a multitude of hymns addressed to living powers on the
earth and in the heavens
;
we
call natural
and darkness. But for him all these are beings capable of hearing and understanding what he says. They can feel love and hatred they may be cruel or merciful and he may win from them by devout service the happiness for which he yearns, or he may ward off with their aid the evils which he dreads. On some he looks with awful fear to others he can speak almost with affectionate familiarity. He pours out before them all the thoughts of his heart, and the words by which he gives expression to these thoughts
storm,
frost,
wind,
;
all
Thus for him Ushas,' the Dawn, is a bright being whom age cannot touch, but who makes men old as she returns day after day and year after year in undiminished Hymns to the
beauty.
She
compassion.
notion
^^"'" is full of love, of gentleness, and She thinks on the dwellings of men, and she
is a mere guess, and, it can scarcely be doubted, an erroneous one. The root war or vial is found also in the forms mard/i, inarg, mark, viarp, manl, sviar. It is thus safe to say that, as 'the vocables that embodied these roots underwent the wear and tear of phonetic decay, many of them passed out of the living speech and were replaced by others, and there was left at last a whole family of nouns and verbs, whose sole common posse-^sion was the syllable mar. That alone had resisted the attacks of lime and change' (Sayce, Introd. ii. Thus the words are necessarily older than the roots contained in them, 17). these being 'due to the reflective analysis of the grammarian [ih. p. 18). In the same way it is likely that the attention of primitive men was directed to the objects seen in the heavens before it was fixed on the heaven itself. ' The name Ushas is in Latin Aurora. In the Grteco-Italian dialects it assumed the form ausos. In Latin a secondary noun was formed from the primary one, aiisosa. But both Greeks and Latins disliked the sound of j between vowels and so with the former Ausos became Auos, Eos, the goddess of the morning ; with the latter it became Aurora, the verb appearing in Greek as
'
30
In short, it is imposmistake the meaning of the words addressed to her. We see that she is the dawn, and no mere personification of the morning light but she is as completely a conscious being, moved by the emotions that may stir the human
;
heart, as
any woman
all
whom
the joy of
'
immortalised
in his song.
She
her.
is
bright,
fair,
and loving
who behold
She shines upon us like a young wife, rousing every go to his work. She rose up, spreading far and wide, and moving towards everyone. She grew in brightness, wearing her brilliant garment. The mother of the cows, the leader of
living being to
who
who
dawn was
seen revealed
by her
'
rays.
With brilliant
Shine for us with thy best rays, thou bright dawn, thou who lengthenest our life, who givest us wealth in cows,
and chariots.' more exact in its description of the phenomena of the morning and the day is the hymn in which the worshipper addresses her as leading on the sun and going before him, preparing practicable paths and expanding everyhorses,
^
Still
where.
'
Lucidly white
is
she,
and
path of the sun, as knowing his course, and harms not the
Ushas, the daughter of heaven, tending to the west,
Tlie Litliuanian form in Latin as nro. Creek and Latin Etymology, xii. ' R. V. vii. 77. 2 The upper and middle firmament.
is
Ausera.
(Peile, Introdtiction to
VARUNA.
This
is
31
is
it
allegory.
It is
we
TheVedic
have the key to expressions with which the ^aruna. hymns of the Rig Veda are filled. Nor need we be surprised if in these hymns the phrases suggested by outward phenomena run into a meaning purely spiritual. This is especially the case with Varuna and Dyaus, the supreme gods of the earliest Vedic ages. The former is simply the heaven which serves to veil or cover Prithivi, the broad or jflat earth, which is his bride,^ and who in the Theogony of Hesiod reappears as Gaia. As such, Varuna is a creation of mythical speech, and is embodied in visible form. He sits on his throne, clothed in golden armour, and dwells in a palace supported on a thousand columns, while his messengers stand round to do his bidding. But in many of the hymns we also find language which is perpetually suggesting the idea of an unseen and almighty Being, who has made all things and upholds them by his will. In these hymns Varuna dwells in all worlds as sovereign. The wind is his breath. It is he who has placed the sun in the heavens, and who guides the stars in their courses. He has hollowed out the channels of the rivers, and so wisely ordered things that, though all the rivers pour their waters He has a thousand into the sea, the sea is never filled. eyes he knows the flight of birds in the sky, the paths of the ships on the seas, and the course of the far-sweeping wind. Such language may pass easily into that of the purest worship of the One Maker and Father of all men and thus we have the prayer Let me not yet, O Varuna, enter into the house of
:
'
clay
1 The name Varuna corresponds to the Greek Ouranos, and is built np on the same root which gives the names of the Hindu Vritra, the veihng demon of darlcness, the Greek Orthros, who with Kerberos (Cerberus), the Prilhivi transliterated into Greek Vedic Carvara, guards the gates of Hades. becomes Plateia, ovccflat.
32
by the
shore
mercy.'
But although the name of Varuna has a common element enemy of Indra, there is no likeness of character between them. Varuna is armed,
with that of Vritra, the dark
indeed, with destructive nooses
;
passing by the
They ensnare the men who speak man who speaks truth. He holds
the
punisher of iniquity, which cannot be hidden from him who numbers the winkings of men's eyes,' and not as the gloomy
'
Hades of the nether world. The true greatness of Varuna belongs seemingly to one In Greece he of the earliest stages of Hindu thought. II. Dyaus, reappears as Ouranos but as there Zeus became the name of the supreme God, Ouranos lost his importance, and almost faded out of sight. The same fate befell Varuna,
;
first to the correlative of Zeus, the Vedic Dyaus, the god not of the veiling or nightly heaven, but of the bright and gleaming canopy of the day. The name is widely spread among the Aryan tribes. It reappears not only in the Greek Zeus (Zen-os), but in the Latin Juno, answering to a form Zenon, in Diana, Dianus, Janus, and many more. In Teutonic dialects we find it in the form
Tiu, the
God
of light, a
or Tuesday.
Pitar, the
in
Tivsdag,
as
Dyaus-
Zeus Pater, or father Zeus of the Greeks, the Jupiter of the Latins. But although some mythical features
entered gradually into the conceptions of this deity, the
word retained
its
original
meaning
allow
33
Dyaus, therefore, gave way to his child Indra, who, in a land which under its scorching sun depends wholly on the bounty of the benignant rain-god, was worshipped as the fertiliser of the earth, and was naturally regarded as more powerful than his father.' But although his greatness is obscured by that of his son, he still wields the thunderbolt, and is spoken
in
to hold its
ground
Hindu mythology.
Dawn, who
is
invincible
by
all
but
Thus the two represent the phases iii. Mitra. which pass over the sky by night and by day. Hence it is not strange that in the Zendavesta Mithras should occupy a place between the two powers of light and darkness, of
good and
evil.
we have the god whose special office it is to do battle with the demon of drought, and let loose the lifegiving waters. He is the son of Dyaus, the iv. indra. gleaming heaven, and he is seen in the dazzling orb which seems to smite the thunder clouds, and compel them to give up their prey. His golden locks flow over his shoulders, and his unerring arrows have a hundred points and are winged with a thousand feathers. In his hand he holds a golden whip, and he is borne across the heaven in a flaming chariot drawn by the tawny or glistening steeds called His beard flashes like lightning, and as his eye the Harits. pierces to every part of the universe, he is possessed of an inscrutable and unfathomable wisdom. As the bringer of the rain, and therefore also of the harvest, he is the god whose power is most earnestly invoked by his Hindu worshippers but no purely spiritual prayer, such as those which were offered to Varuna, was ever addressed to him. The only work for which he was supposed to exist was to
In Indra
; '
The name
Indra, which
is
denotes
moisture or sap.
^ :
34
The
is
chief of these
demons
is
Vritra,
marauder.
But he
as
also
known
as
The Sushna, Sambara, Bala, Chumuri. victory of Indra over these rebels brings plenty of corn, wine, oil but there is nothing moral or spiritual in the
Amykos,
;
struggle.
He
is
milk
is
away in the caves of the robbers. As driving these before him he is Parjanya, the rain-bringer and the poet says The winds blow strong, the lightnings flash, the plants
'
Earth becomes
fit
for
of
when Parjanya fertilises the soil with showers.' The name Brahma is associated with a much later stage Hindu thought but it denoted at first simply the selfcreatures
;
whose mythical
the
As
in the
Orphic Theogony, the generation of Brahma mundane egg but in it Brahma pro;
all creatures.
Hindu
Triis
murtti or trinity, being himself the creator, while Vishnu the preserver, and Siva the destroyer.
had consisted of Agni, Vayu, and Surya the fire, the air, and the sun. The name Mahadeva, great god (Greek, Megas Theos), is applied to all these deities and to many but it was especially used in speaking of the others
;
The
older trinity
destroyer Siva
being only to reproduce under another form. The evidence already before us shows that in the most
\hi reappears in the Greek Echis, Echidna, the dragon which crushes It is, in short, anything that chokes, whether as victim with its coil. sin, or the Latin aiigor, anguish. - The name Indra is sometimes used as a physical equivalent of Dyaus, the heaven, the clouds being said to move in Indra, as the Maruts, or winds, are described as coursing through Dyaus.
its
Anhas,
ZEUS.
ancient
35
hymns and
yj The Hei^^""^Zeus.
under
many names,
all
The
entreaty for
guilt is
made
to Varuna,
and the
thought that he is the child However it of Dyaus-pitar, his father who is in heaven. may have been in earlier times with the ancestors of the Greek tribes, the Achaians spoken of in the Iliad and Odyssey had in like manner learnt to look upon Zeus, whose name represents the Sanskrit Dyaus, as the Father
worshipper finds comfort
in the
of gods and
All-father
men
and
in like
But
Greece, as in India,
and according to the Theogonies or poems which trace the descent of the gods, there had been a time when Zeus was inferior to his father Kronos, and when even Kronos had not yet come into being. In the origins thus assigned to them there are, as we might well expect, the widest differences between one narrative and another. These mythical genealogies, which certainly do not belong to the earliest mythopoeic ages, could but express the thought of the time in which they grew up, as to the mode in which the outward world took shape and form. Thus in one version the first beings are Chaos and Gaia (earth), from
the deities
;
'
Varuna of the Rig Veda, together with the Long Mountains and Pontos (the sea).2 In another, Gaia, or Ge, is the wife of Ouranos and
springs Ouranos (Uranus), the
;
whom
This name clearly contains the root of a vast number of words denoting the power or the fact of production, this root being perhaps ^ ox gen ; hence the Greek verbal form '^i-yaii.^^v, and the nouns 7eVos, L. gens, 'i\jvi\, queen, quean, &c. It can scarcely be doubted that the reference to this family of words explains the Latin phrase in the form of marriage known as Coemptio, in which the wife says to her husband, Ubi tu Caius, ego Caia.' Cicero {pro Mtir. 12) supposes the choice of name to be a mere accident (as with the English Doe and Roe) but this is a matter on which the judgment of a niaa who could deal practically with only one language was worth nothing.
'
' ;
lies.
Ihcog. 129.
D2.
36
their
Hyperion, lapetos, and many others, are born before Kronos, the father of Zeus. These legends go on to tell us that Ouranos hunted the Kyklopes (Cyclopes) with Bronte and Sterope (thunder and lightning), and other children of Gaia, into the seething abyss of Tartaros, and that Gaia, in her grief and anger, urged her other children to mutilate their father, and to set up Kronos Henceforth Kronos swallowed instead upon his throne. nor could any have his children soon after each was born been saved had not Rhea, the mother of Zeus, anxious to preserve her child, given to her husband a stone to swallow, while Zeus was born and nourished in the care of Dikte, or Lyktos, or, as some said, on Ida.* In the strict meaning of his name, Zeus, who to the Teutonic tribes was known as Tiu, Tuisco, Zio, and Tyr, "^^^s the god who dwelt in the pure blue sky, the Zeus and Prometheus. j^]-,ode of light, far above the clouds or the mists of the lower atmosphere, which might sully its purity.^ As such, he is naturally born in the cave of Dikte, or Lyktos, a phrase as transparent as that which tells us that Phcebus sprang to
; * That this story, strange and coarse as it is, has reference to the consumption and reproduction perpetually going on in nature, is beyond all doubt. The hymn-writers of the Rig Veda were perfectly aware that a series of mornings and days made men old, although the mornings and days remained as young and ; and for mere savages the passing away of montlis or moons would be a fact as indisputable as that of their continuance. Hence the being who consumes or swallows the moons (and this might be made to mean months, weeks, or days) must be regarded as reproducing, i.e. disgorging In other words, the story would refer to time and the effects of time ; them. and as the impressions which would embody themselves in those stories might spring up in the minds of any tribes capable of thinking at all, the tales would belong to the province not of mythology but of folklore. The notion of time once given, the features of these tales would be determined by the modes of measuring time which might be in use in any given country. Thus in Grimm's German story of the wolf and the seven little goats, the wolf, which is the night or darkness, tries to swallow the seven kids, and actually
fresh as ever
In other words, the week six. The seventh is hidden in the clockcase. not quite run out; and before its close the mother of the goats, ripping the kids, who come trooping out, as the stones for the substitutes wolf's stomach, Here we have the Hesiodic days of the week begin again to run their course. Kronos, with an idea distinctly suggested by notion of the stone swallowed by the clocks of modern times ; but the reference to the clock-case furnishes proof conclusive that the narrator of the story knew well the nature of the materials - //. 14. 2S8. with which he was dealing.
swallows
is
ZEUS.
life in
21
Delos, or that
Endymion
Latmos.
No sooner, we are told, had he come to his full strength than he delivered the Kyklopes (Cyclopes) from Tartaros, and obtained the aid of the hundred-handed giants, the
Hekatoncheires, in his war against the Titans.
struggle, according to the story followed
In this
by ^schylus, he had the help of Prometheus, son of Deukalion, and was thus able to dethrone his father, Kronos. But his gratitude was afterwards turned into hatred, from a cause which shows how completely the mythical Zeus was distinct from the Zeus whom the swineherd Eumaios worshipped, and of whom the Hesiodic poet thought when he spoke of the righteous ruler and judge of all mankind. Under the sway
of Zeus, the lord of the glistening firmament, Prometheus,
it is said, found the race of men grovelling in the lowest depths of misery, without clothing, without dwellings, without fire.^ From him they learnt the use of fire, which he stole from heaven, and brought to them in the hollow
of a reed and so began the new order of things in which they gradually groped their way into a condition more befitting creatures who have the power of thought and speech. For these great deeds done for the benefit of beings whom he hated or despised, Zeus condemned Prometheus
;
to be chained
vulture
gnawed
on the rugged crags of Caucasus, where a his liver, which grew as fast as it was
devoured.
So soon as, in accordance with the meaning of the name, Zeus was regarded as the lord of the upper air, it became certain that the same process would go on in refer- xhe Olympian ^''"^" ence to other parts or aspects of the material world. Thus the story grew up that the Kyklopes (Cyclopes) gave to Zeus a thunderbolt, to his brother Hades a helmet which made the wearer invisible,''^ and to Poseidon a trident, and that, having received these gifts, the three gods cast lots, and
*
^sch. Prom. v. 450 ct seq. This is the Tarnkappe of the popular Teutonic
stories.
33
but it may be noted based purely on physical considerations and thus as the god dwelling on the heights of Olympos with the subordinate deities around him, Zeus,
scarcely necessary to say
is
earthly appetites and be said with truth that the Zeus of the Olympian hierarchy, whether in the Iliad and Odyssey or elsewhere, is the Zeus to whom prayer is
is
a being
moved by very
emotions.
It cannot, indeed,
addressed.
Men
in their persons or their families from a being whose actions exhibited the most ruthless disregard
The Zeus
in
of the
Olympian courts
partial, unjust,
his affections
whom
is
not
irresistible in
Here,
mytho-
both the name for the bright heaven had become a name for the One only God but the old meaning of the word still clung to it,^ and brought up images of the visible
;
To
sky
and
its
products, of
its
clouds,
The phrases which described these changes might easily come to denote vile or shameful actions when applied to a being with human form and human feeling. Thus the earth had been spoken of as the
vapours, and storms.
bride of the sky, while the heaven was said to overshadow
the earth with
'
its
The
necessary out-
Athenian prayer for rain, vaov, S) <pi\e ZeP, and even more plainly in the words of the koto; TTJs apovpas rwv 'AdTjvaioiv Latin poet, Adspice hoc sublime candens quern invocant omnes Jovem.' With the Latins 'malus Jupiter remained an expression for bad wcathc, and the phrases sub dio vivere,' sub Jove frigido,' denoted time spent in the open air or in the cold.
This
is
strikingly
'
shown
'
'
'
ZEUS.
gTowtli from such phrases
39
stories of
was a multitude of
The antagonism
Thus
m
.
the
Zeus.
brought out even more prowhich we give the name of Homer. Yet the poet can turn seemingly without an effort from the thought of such things to the idea of the pure and holy Zeus, who looks down from heaven to see if men will do justice and seek after God. As time went on, the contrast was felt more and more strongly. By some the thought that the gods must be good was regarded as a sufficient reason for disbelieving all stories to their discredit by others these tales were considered to disprove their divinity, as Euripides said If the gods do aught unseemly, then they are not gods at all others, again, rested content with the conviction that Zeus was a mere name by which they might speak of Him in whom we live and move, but which was utterly incapable of expressing, as our mind is of conceiving, His infinite perfection. As the deity, therefore, of the visible heaven, Zeus has his brides and his children in all lands. The greatest among those are Apollo and Artemis, Ares, Hermes, and ^^^ Olympian Athene. These, with Poseidon, Here, Hephaistos, hierarchy.
and
minently than
poems
to
'
and Zeus
himself,
formed the
body which
in
shipped as the twelve gods of Olympos.^ This ordering of the gods is not found in the Greek tragic or lyric poets or in our Iliad or Odyssey. In these poems many of the deities are not nearly so important as they appear elsewhere, while in other traditions some are described as lower
in character.
*
Thuc.
vi.
64. 6.
40
Of
Zeus and Lykosoura.
mount Lykaios
word denoting, like Delos, merel). brightness that of Dodona, which at first was in Thessaly and afterwards in Epeiros and that of Olympia in Elis, where the great Olympic games were celebrated at the end of every fourth year. Zeus, indeed, must of necessity have his abode on the Lykaian heights, just as Phoebus must be lord of the Lykian kingdom or realm of light, for this is only saying that the gods of the clear heaven must dwell in the unclouded ether. But the Arkadian legend is remarkable as showing the strange growths which spring up from mythical phrases when either wholly or partially misunderstood. The blue sky is seen first in the morning against the highest mountain tops, on which the rays of the sun rest awhile before they can light up the regions beAccordingly the Arkadians insisted that their own neath. Lykosoura (Lycosura) was the most ancient of all cities, and the first which Helios, the sun, had ever beheld, and that Zeus had been nourished by the nymphs on the Lykaian hill hard by the shrine of Despoina, the lady. We are even told that the hill was also called Olympos, that in it there was a spot named Kretea, and that here Zeus was born and not in Crete, the island of the Egean Sea.* The truth is that in the strict meaning of the words Zeus had his Olympian and Lykaian hills, his Crete, his Dikte or Lyktos, his Arkadia, his Phoinikian or Phenician home,
;
Pausanias,
Au/fdffoupa.
viii.
38.
I.
association of the
The Kynosoiua, or Cynosure, has the same meaning, the word with a dog being the resuU purely of a false etymology. and the epithet of applies to Kynosarges, Kynossema, &c. Kunopis, applied by Helen to herself, receives an explanation very different from that which seems to be applied to it in the Iliad. Emile Burnouf, La
-
ZEUS.
sky.
41
But more than this, the Arkadian, when he spoke of this Lykaian sanctuary, averred not only that all living things which might enter it would die within the year, but
With that not a single object within it ever cast a shadow. unquestioning faith the geographer Pausanias declared that
the huntsman, who from regard to his own life drew back from the inclosure when a hunted beast entered it, failed not to see that its body cast no shadow after it had come He tells us that, when the sun within the charmed circle. is in the sign of Cancer or the Crab, there are no shadows at midday in the Ethiopian Syene but here, he adds, the marvel was that there were no shadows the whole year round. As to this he was mistaken but he could scarcely know that in the real Lykosoura there could be no shade, since this Lykosoura was not to be sought in the Peloponnesos, or In the bright heaven, through which in any earthly land. travels the unclouded sun, there can be no darkness at all. Zeus is also nursed by Ida but the incident is at once explained when we find that in the eastern myth Ida is a name for the earth, and that she is assigned as a wife to Dyaus. The god worshipped in these sanctuaries was invoked under a multitude of titles. He was named sometimes from places, and was thus known as Dodonaian, Zeusihejudge. Pelasgic, Cretan but more commonly the worshipper approached him as the fountain of order, justice, law and equity. As guarding the sanctities of family life, he was Ephestios. He was Pistios and Horkios, as watching over the fulfilment of covenants and contracts, and Xenios as the protector of strangers. But between these offices and his character as a strictly mythical judge there is a sharp and strong contrast. As such, he passes sentence on Ixion and Tantalos, on Lykaon and Sisyphos but in all such cases the penalty is one which has a direct reference to the mythical actions of the offenders, while it has nothing more to do with absolute justice than has the punishment of
;
43
Prometheus.
doom which
according
to
^schylus
is
Zeus
Titan has any connexion with the Teutonic notion of the which is to be brought about by Loki, a being closely resembling Prometheus, it might perhaps
twilight of the gods,
be rash to affirm positively. The shadowless sanctuary of Lykosoura is said to have been built by Lykaon, who is called a son of Pelasgos. His Lykaon. own story is one of horror, suggested by the equivocal use of words which had lost their earlier significance. When Zeus came to visit Lykaon, he and his twenty or fifty sons set before him, it is said, a meal of human flesh and Zeus in his anger at this offence turned them all into wolves. The change is easily accounted for. Like Delos, Phenicia, Lykia, and Argos, the name Lykaon denoted brightness or splendour. Hence he is placed in Arkadia, which also means the bright land. But the Greek words for light and for wolves were the same or nearly the same in sound, and closely allied by their origin and the Arkadian chief and his sons were easily regarded as changed into beasts with which the Myrmidons of Achilles are carefully and exactly compared.^ The Teutonic belief in the final extinction of the gods might lead us to suppose that the mythology of the German The Teutonic and Scandinavian nations belongs to an earlier ^ heaven. stagc of thought thau that of the Hindu or the Greek. The gods of the latter seem to be essentially free from decay or death and even the ^Eschylean myth of Prometheus says no more than that Zeus should be put down and a more righteous ruler set up in his place. In the Teutonic legends Odin himself falls, and Thor dies, and the body of the beautiful Baldur is consumed in the flames. But the links which connect the belief of the one race with that of
;
* //. i6. 156. The equivocations of words denoting spears, flowers, and poison, will be noticed hereafter, together with the confusion of words which converted the Rishis or sages into bears, and the seven stars into oxen, Charles's
Wain.
DEITIES.
43
may be
The Vedic
inspires
is
gods,
The Soma
refreshed
them and
strengthened by the ambrosia and nectar of his heavenly banquets. So the Soma draught becomes in Northern
Europe the cup of honey mingled with the blood of Qvasir, all beings, who during his life had gone about the world doing the work of Prometheus for the wretched children of men. In other respects also the Teutonic deities
the wisest of
exhibit the closest likeness to the Greek.
The
rapidly ac-
simply express the brief period needed to fill the heaven light, to give to the sun its scorching heat, to the wind its irresistible force and the same idea is expressed by the myth of Vali, the son of Odin and Rind, who, when only a night old, comes with his hair untouched by a comb, like Phoibos Akersekomes,^ to take vengeance on Hodr for the death of Baldur, and again in the story of Magni, who, when three da}s old, rescued his father Thor as he lay crushed beneath the foot of the gigantic Hrungnir, Thus, also, as Here lays one hand on the earth and the other on the sea so Thor drinks up no small part of the ocean with his horn which reaches from heaven to its surface. The very expressions used in speaking of these gods are transparent. The flowing locks of the Wish-god and of Baldur are those of Zeus and Phoebus. The golden-haired Demeter of the Greek reappears as the fair-haired Lif of the Teuton. The power of Zeus is seen again in that of Thor and the golden glory which surrounded the head of Phoebus or Asklepios (yEsculapius), is not less a mark of the German deities, and appears on the head of Thor as a circlet of
with
; ;
stars.
But we can
paratively
late
as little
stage of
1
44
theogony
VII.
later
tell
us of
The myth of
.
Baldur,
r
Genealogy of
Odin.
11.1
Such a
classification
we
who
are conquered
by Odin and
;
sequence forms part of a theogony which, like that of Hesiod, begins with Chaos. From this chaos the earth
emerged, made by the blood and bones of the giant Ymir, whose name denotes the dead and barren sea.^ The Kosmos so brought into existence is called the Bearer of God, a phrase which finds its explanation in the world-tree Ygg-drasil. This mighty tree, which in Odin's Rune Song becomes a veritable tree of knowledge, and whose roots are undermined by Hel or death, and by the Hrim-thursen or frost-giants, rises into Asgard, the highest heaven, where the iEsir ^ or gods dwell, while men have their abode in Midgard, the middle garden or earth, embraced by its branches. The giant Ymir was nourished by the four streams which flow from the cow Audhumla, from whom
there
came
forth a perfect
man
world, whose son Bor had as his wife Besla or Bettla, the
From
Wuotan
himself,
^sir who dwell in Asgard or Ether,^ while the middle air is Vanaheim, the home of the Vanen,* or spirits of the breathing wind. To this race belong Freyr and Freya, the
deities of
beauty and love, the children of the sea-god But all this visible Kosmos is doomed to undergo a catastrophe, the results of which will be not its deMordur.^
'
The Teutonic
word being
Lat. sum,
^ *
*
Lat. mare, Fr. mer, a word to be referred to the root tnar. See note, p. 28. aesir are the Vedic asuras (the Zend ahura), the root of the as, the foundation of the primary verbs, Sansk. asmi, Gr. ei/*/,
Litli. esini,
Eng. am.
II.
15. 192.
The
See note,
ODIN.
struction,
45
will
be consumed by fire the life and the reign of the ^sir themselves will be brought to an end but a new earth, rising from the second chaos, will resemble that of the golden age in the Hesiodic tradition. The name Odin, Wuotan, is closely connected with the German Witth, in which the notion of energy has been exaggerated into that of impulse uncontrolled by will.' Odin and wish.
its
;
but
renovation.
essentially the
armed
deity,
As such,
he looks down on the earth from his heavenly home through a window, sitting on his throne with Freya by his side, as Here sits by Zeus in Olympos. As the giver of victory, the greatest of all blessings in Teutonic eyes, he was necessarily
the giver of
Greeks.^
will,
all
Hermes of the
As
such, he
power of wish or
all
the
Wunsch
to
whom
the
or Odin
Irish
is
seen in
in Blarney, in the Osk-mayjar, or Wishmaidens or Valkyries, who guide to Valhalla all heroes slain in battle, and who are the wish or choice children of Odin, and more especially in the Oska-byrr or Wish-wind, in which we recognise, both in the name and in the thing, the Ikmenos Ouros of our Iliad.^ It is beyond doubt this power which is denoted by the Sanskrit Kama, as the force which first brought the visible Kosmos into being,'* and by the Eros of the Hesiodic theogony.
localise
In the same way the Hindu Brahm denoted originally the active force in creation and the same idea was set forth still more fully under the name Atman, the breath or spirit which becomes the Atmos, atmosphere, of the Greek, the A them of the Germans. Odin, Brahma, and Atman are thus, all, names of the self-existent being. ^ Grimm assigns this meaning to Gibicho, Kipicho, titles of Odin, letf
;
ionic Mythology,
^
i.
The attempt
137, translated by Stallybrass. to explain this Ikmenos by a reference to the verb iKveo/xai
is
mere labour
lost.
Max
46
The single eye of Odin is the sun, the one eye which day looks down from heaven upon the earth. But when Odin the one- he was figured as an old man with a broad hood hakoi-berend. aud a widc- flowing robe, the myth necessarily sprang up that he had lost an eye, a story which answers
all
who is said to have cut off his and to have received a golden hand from the attendant priests.' But as the sun is his eye, so his mantle is the vapour which, like Zeus Nephelegeretes, the cloud-gatherer, Odin wraps around himself, and thus becomes Hakol-berend, the wearer of the veil, or Harbard, the bearded god. By his side are the two wolves Gari and Freki, with whom he hunts down his victims and on hi shoulders sit the two ravens, Huginn and Muninn, who whisper into his ears all that they see and hear. As the bearded god, Odin becomes the giver of the rain, the Zeus Ombrios of the Greeks, the Indra Parjanya of the Hindus, the Jupiter Pluvius of the Latins. As such he is Hnikar, the old English Nicor or water-god, whose offspring are the Nixes or water sprites. All these names, like those of the Naiads and Nereids, come from the same root with the Sanskrit sna, the Greek necho, the Latin nare, to float or In this character Odin is the Biblindi, or the swim.2 drinker, of the Eddas. Like Phoebus, again, or Asklepios
to that of Indra Savitar,
hand
at a sacrifice,
>
of of separated from the king her husband, but who, when she is restored to him, has hands as beautiful as ever. have to note the contrast between the expression of Saxo, which speaks of Odin as, ' Armipotens uno semper contentus ocello,' and the myth which explains the fact by saying that he was obliged to leave his eye in pledge when he wished The reflexion of the sun in the water to drink at the fountain of Mimir. would be Odin's second eye and as soon as the sun passed away from the So Ushas, the Dawn, is water, this second eye would be no longer visible. spoken of in the Vedic hymn as bringing the eye of the god. With these myths we may compare the legends of the one-eyed Kyklops (Cyclops) and the one-handed Savitar and Tyr. - Old Nick, it is scarcely necessary to say, is merely an abraded form of Kicor. Another name, denoting a water-god from the .same root which has given us the names of many streams, Talf, Tavy, Taw, Tay, Tagus, iSic, is seen in the phrase, Davy Jones's locker.'
'
the Silver
The Teutonic Tyr is also one-handed. Compare the story of Nuad Hand (Fergusson, Irish before the Conquest) and Grimm's tale
is
We
'
THOR.
(^sculapius), he
is
47
the source of
all
bards.
In his
souls
Lastly, he
all
who takes
done.
to himself,
when
is
name
is
im-
and it survives in our Odin and Tyr. Wednesday and Wednesbury. The close connexion of
places,
many
name Tyr or Tiw with the several forms developed from or containing the root dyu, to shine, would lead us to expect that it would remain a mere epithet of gods whose names might again betray a relation to the same root. Thus we meet with Sigtyr, the victorious Tyr, as a name for Odin, and Reidartyr or Reidityr, the riding or driving Tyr, as a name for the thunder-god Thor. Through the forms Donar and Thunor the name of Thor, which survives in our Thursday, has passed into our later English tJucnder. The consonant intro- viii. Thor. duced into this word answers simply to the hammer.
the
French had at the first no reference to noise or din. It denoted merely extension, whether of sound or of anything else and from its source we have the Greek teino, reappearing in the Latin tendo, to stretch tonoSy tone or the stretching and
tenet'
into the
itself
The name
vibration
of chords
English
As
as closely allied and as easily Vishnu with Indra, or Indra with Agni. But although most of their characteristics are as interchangeable as those of the Vedic gods generally, each has some features peculiar to himself Thus, although Thor is sometimes said to move in a chariot, he is never represented
is
Donar
Thor
48
the
walking or striding god, who moves amid the lightnings. As wielding the thunderbolt, he is Thor Miolnir or Tydeus,^ the kinsman of the Aloadai and the Molionids,^ the but the well-known hammer of crushers or pounders Thor meant not only a mallet but a rock, and thus we are brought to the weapons employed in Greek myths by the giants and the Titans. This hamar is stolen by the giant Thrym, who according to one story buries it eight miles beneath the surface of the earth. Rising a mile each year, it ascends into heaven again at the end of eight years. In Saemund's Edda, Loki, learning the theft, asks Freyja to lend him her feather garment, that he may go and find Thrym will not surrender it unless Freyja consents to it. become his wife but Loki cheats the thief by bringing Thor disguised as Freyja. The hammer is brought in to consecrate the bride, and Thor, taking the weapon, smites down the giant and discomfits the dwellers in Jotunheim. In the oldest Teutonic mythology we find a god Fro or
;
Friuja,
IX.
Friuja.
who
^y
all
is,
like
all
Fro
is
human
tioning
honest motives.
To
can be folded up like a cloth when the seafarers have In our Friday we reached the end of their voyage.*
retain his name, as well
as that of Freyja, to
whom
he
'^
See
p. 34.
The re ation between the forms Tydeus and Tyndareus is much the same as that between Thunor and Thunder, and beiween the present and aorist of the Latin verb tundo, tiitiidi. 2 The affinity of MioInir with Molion is manifest. In the name of the
Aloadai the labial has dropped away, as it has dropped away from Aleuron, All these words must be referred to the originally Maleuron, around corn. * See p. 3. See note p. 2J>.
root mar.
nRAGL
Iris,
49
is
represented
by Heimdall,
Bif-rost, the waving bridge or resting x. Heimwhich joins heaven and earth. As such, Himinbiorg. he dwells in Himinbiorg, the hill of heaven, the Mons Coelius of the Latins. He needs less sleep than a bird. He hears the corn growing on the earth, and the wool lengthening on the sheep's back. His warder's horn rests on the root of Yggdrasil,^ his teeth are of gold, and he rides a horse with a golden mane. Another Teutonic god of the heavens is Bragi,^ the brilliant, who, like Donar or Baldur, is the son of Odin. As the god of poetry and eloquence, he is the xi. sragi.guardian and patron of bards and orators. Thus ^^''Bragr-Karla came to denote an eloquent man, and a further step degraded the name of the chief among the gods, and left it as an epithet of vain boasters. The name of the god CEgir, with whom Bragi is sometimes
who guards
place,
Originally a
name
for
Okeanos or ocean stream of the Greeks, of which Ogen and Ogyges seem to be variations. In modern times it has come to denote the ogres with which nurses frighten children. In Grimm's belief the word belongs to or contains the root of the Gothic agas or 6g, the Old English ege, egera, the Old High
the sea,
it
carries us
directly to the
German
it
denoting
fear,
If
be so, the later meaning has not been arbitrarily imported into the word and this conclusion seems to be
;
justified
is
the helmet
lies
coiled
;
round the golden treasures on the glistening heath and again that Eckesax or Uokesahs is the fearful sword tempered by the dwarfs in the Vilkina Saga. Between the Latin Jupiter and the Greek Zeus Pater,
'
may be
Latin rex,
silver.
reg-is, the
Hindu
50
there
as close an affinity of
cha^acfedldcs
myth'oiogy.
names as between the latter and the Dyaus-pitar of the Rig Veda but practically the mythology of the Latin tribes intro;
We
are,
indeed, apt to confuse under the term two wholly distinct read, in the ^neid of Virgil, for instance, a things.
We
story which
may be
fairly
We
and Aphrodite would be described by and in the odes of Horace we have expressions of thought and feeling such as the idea of these gods would naturally evoke in the minds of the Hellenic wor-
much
as Zeus, Here,
poets,
Greek
shipper.
We
also
come
Consus,
Anna
Sancus, which for us at least are associated with no very definite images and we include both these beings and the deities spoken of by Virgil or Horace under the
Semo
one head of Latin gods, and treat what is said about them No two things could well be more as Latin mythology. The great poets of the Augustan age entirely distinct. simply borrowed at will from the vast storehouse of Greek tradition, and set before their countrymen a mythology towards which they had no natural attraction, and for which they never acquired any genuine liking. The Greek myths thus bodily imported became fashionable at Rome, and perhaps in the great cities of the empire generally but on the people of the country far removed from town influences they seem never to have made any deep or permanent impression. It would be almost nearer the truth to say that they failed to make on them any
impression at
all.
The gods
time been the only gods worshipped by the Latin tribes, wcrc practically nothing more than natural powers The Latin deities. ^j^ J processes called by the names which naturally
expressed them.
The
LATIN DEITIES.
and grinding of
ri
name
and
this
name passed
But so thin growth of a Latin mythology, strictly so called, became almost impossible. We might as well imagine the growth of the infinitely complex mythology of the Greeks, if their minds had had to work only on such beings as Helios, Selene, Astraios, Eos, Herse, and others of a like transparent sort. For the Latins, their gods, although their name was legion, remained mysterious beings without human forms, feelings, or passions and they influenced human affairs without sharing or having any
these processes were supposed to be wrought.
was the
sympathy with human hopes, fears, or joys. Neither had they, like the Greek deities, any society among themselves. There was for them no Olympos where they might gather to take counsel with the father of gods and men. They had no parentage, no marriage, no offspring. They thus became a mere crowd of oppressive beings, living beyond the circle of human interests, yet constantly interand their worship was thus as terrible a fering within it bondage as any under which the world has yet suffered. Not being associated with any definite bodily shapes, they could not, like the beautiful creations of the Greek mind, promote the growth of the highest art of the sculptor, the painter, and the poet. A spear or a stone might serve as the
;
sign or
emblem
an inclosed
Thus, between them and their worshippers there real and direct /Connexion. Of the Eupatrid families among the Greeks the greater number, perhaps, traced their descent from Zeus himself or from some O'ther god no Roman patrician ever thought of proclaiming himself as the offspring of the cold and colourless beings
was no
who
in
solitary
state
presided
52
Nay, even in Rome itself working of the visible world. the Greek deities remained only a fashion, and were honoured with an exotic worship. The true Roman ritual was that which had for its object the worshipping of the household gods and these were practically the spirits of the founder of the house, and of those who had followed
;
him
life
The
religion of
Roman
joyous Phoebus, or of the virgin daughter of Zeus, but of the Lares and the Penates before that altar of Vesta, the goddess
of the hearth, which
Aryan
race.
But
in the literature
Rome
the genuine
country are so strangely confused or even jumbled up with the imporLations from the East, that it
deities of the
becomes
teristics
difficult
its
material to
proper place.
but
it is
prob-
Samnium
or Calabria.*
For these the omnipotent Jupiter remained, what he had always been, the god of the heaven or sky ^ but of ^hc vast mass of mythology which had grown up Jupiter and
;
Juno.
round
his
name elsewhere, the Latin peoples of knew nothing. His Oscan name
Lucerius or Lucesius (corresponding to the Greek Lykios, and Lykeios, as epithets of Phoebus) marks the bright
shining firmament as his habitation.
tribes
of
names
and thus
in calling
down
;
lightning Jupiter
as giving rain, he
was was
Terminus, the Zeus Plorios of the Greeks. In Latin literature he has for a wife Juno, with whose name (which answers to a Greek form Zenon) was coupled that of
'
i.
ch.
xiii,
Sec note,
p.
3S
53
As Juno
Jugalis she
as the guardian of money and was Juno Moneta, a name which gives us our money and mint, and which probably contains the same root with Minerva. The mythology for Juno in Virgil is
but her name is akin to that of Diana, which only the feminine form of Dianus or Janus. When the fashion for fitting all Greek mythology to Latin names not Italian
is
;
again
came
both
in,
the
little
that
is
told of
much
Janus or Dianus,
heaven.
as having
The name
dis, duo, two and thus he was represented two faces which looked opposite ways.^ It is more than possible that the idea of the Dawn as the herald of the sun before his rising, and as the bride who remains in the heaven mourning his early death,^ Myths of the
took dennite shape before that of the glistening Sun. firmament of day or of the nightly sky which descends upon
the earth which
it
ri
i-
loves.
The phenomena
of the
Dawn and
tragedy of nature. The Dawn appears, full of light, life, and love. For a few moments she seems to rejoice in the love of the newly-risen sun but his splendour then becomes
;
fatal to her,
and she is seen no more, while he goes on his weary way, mourning for the love which he has lost, toiling for the benefit of weak and worthless men, and hurrying on to his home in the west where he knows that he shall behold the face of the radiant maiden whom he had
deserted or driven
away
at the
troubles.
Her
and
Rome (anrl it should be remembered that it was a was kept open in time of war, and shut in time of peace, have been closed only six times in eight hundred years. ^ In the Iliad Eos ends as well as begins the day. Eos is the shining and burning goddess (see note, p. 29) and the word Dawn has precisely the same Dahana, the Greek Sanskrit same family the with meaning. It belongs to the Daphne, and Dais, Lat. ta^da, a torch.
The
gate of Janus at
it is
said to
54
by
those who would make her faithless to her husband but she comes forth scatheless from the ordeal, only to see the being to whom her heart is given smitten down by the
is
reunited to him.
There seems to be
of both the
little
The glance
latter looks
Dawn and
the
Sun
is
fatal.
The
upon the dew, and the sparkling drops vanish away. The former gazes on him after his day's journey is ended, and he is snatched aw^ay from her sight. We have here an outline which might be filled in with a marvellous variety of forms and details, and it is more
Framework and materials
of these myths,
many
of
them may
have been shaped before any clear ideas of the sky, the heaven, and the sun, as gods, presented themselves to the human mind. The separation of the Sun from the Dawn and his reunion with her would probably be marked by primitive men, before they reached any notion of the deity whose abode is the blue vault of the sky. The imagination might work the materials thus presented into a thousand shapes. The bride of the sun was seen with him at the end of his journey she was seen again before he rose in the The union had therefore lasted during the hours of east. the night but as his glance was fatal to her in the morning, it could have so lasted only because he was disguised or because he had assumed some other form. Hence would spring up the notion that the Dawn-maiden had been given or that she had in marriage to some unsightly monster been frightened by her kindred into the belief that she had fact being given, a been wedded to a loathsome being. cause must be found for it and the explanation might be that the mother of the Dawn-maiden was dead, and that her
:
wife shared the jealousy felt by her elder good fortune of the youngest and the loveliest. The attempt to verify their suspicions would reveal to her the majesty and the beauty of her husband but she would
father's
sisters for the
;
new
URVASl.
55
him vanish from her sight. Now would remain for her the weary search, in which she would find herself oppressed by a series of impossible tasks laid on her by her stepmother. But her kindliness to all living things gains for her the gratitude of birds and beasts, which enable her lo accomplish them and her undaunted
the discovery only to see
;
make
devotion
is
at length rewarded.
Among
suggested
is
drama of
xiii.urvasi.
The name
is
In
the
Vedic hymns the dawn is spoken of both as Uruki, the far- going, and as Uruasi, the wide-spreading; and these names have their counterpart in the Greek Euryanassa, Euryphassa, Europe, and many others. As such, she is the mother of Vasishtha, the son of Mitra and Varuna.^ Urvasi, then, is wedded to Pururavas, the gleaming one,^ on the condition that she is never to see him unclothed. Tempted by the Gandharvas, Pururavas rises from his couch a flash of lightning reveals the splendour of his form and Urvasi vanishes away, to be united to him again
; ;
on the
last
day of the
year.
The
search of the
dawn
but there
is little
Eros and
^^y^"^^-
difference in the
name
things
lord
;
all
living
She believes that she most glorious of all living beings but a doom is laid on her by Aphrodite, and she brings about her own punishment. Being assured by her sisters that her husband, whom she never sees except when he comes to
zling even for her eyes to rest upon.
is
wedded
'
- See Hindu poet of the first or second century B.C. The name answers to the meaning of the Greek Polydeukes.
p. 33,
S6
visit
lamp
and, gazing upon her lover, sees before her the perfection of
brief happiness of Psyche
on the sleeping god, and the ended. Eos has looked on If she Helios, and Helios has plunged beneath the sea. would be united with him again, she must seek him amidst many perils and at the cost of vast labour. At last she finds him in the dwelling of Aphrodite, at whose bidding she accomplishes some hard and degrading tasks, under which she must have sunk had it not been for the love of Eros, who, though invisible, still consoled and cheered her. By his aid she at length made her peace with his mother, and becoming immortal, was united with her lover for ever. Thus the stories of Urvasi and Psyche exhibit the same leading features which are common to the German stories
beauty.
is
of Grimm's collection entitled the Soaring Lark, the Twelve Brethren, the White Snake, the Golden Bird, the Queen Bee, to the Norse tale of East of the Sun and West of the Moon, and many others.
This myth
may
night and day or of the seasons. In the former case we Northern sun should havc a scrics of tales, more or less in acand dawn
myths.
cordance with the two just mentioned; in the latter they would agree with the general spirit of the legend of Demeter and Persephone. All receive a local colouring
...
and
be won, there must be a battle with the powers of frost and snow mountains of glass must be scaled, castles of ice must be thrown down, and huge icebergs moved out of the way. In these tasks the seeker is aided by bears, wolves, or foxes, by ducks or
or
child can
;
Dawn
Summer
who
are grateful to
him
for past
kindness but all these are names which in the old mythical language denoted the clouds, the winds, or the light.
In Eastern and Western traditions alike, the clouds assume
USHAS.
the forms of eagles and swans
;
57
and these creatures soon remove the huge heaps of grain, stones, and ice, and thus bring about the meeting of the lovers. In the glowing land of the East these tales are necesTheir place was sarily less prominent than in the West. taken by those pictures of the daily phenomena xiv. ushas. of dawn and sunlight, which were gradually over- Panis. loaded with the cumbersome details of later Hindu mythology. But in their earlier shapes they bring before us
forms closely corresponding to those of the chief inhabitants of the Greek mythical world. How thoroughly Ushas was the morning, and how at the same time she was a being greeted with the affection and love of mankind, we have already seen and it is only necessary to add that in all
*
;
we can scarcely be said to advance beyond the stage of primary or organic myths.^ The phrases addressed to her for the most part state facts which it is impossible to dispute. Ushas, nourishing all, comes daily like a matron, conthat
is
said of her
'
ducting
'
all
The
and bright with unchanging hues, wastes away the life of a mortal, like the wife of a hunter cutting up the birds.' Those mortals who beheld the pristine Ushas dawning have passed away to us she is now visible, and they approach who will behold her in after times.'
'
'
Unimpeding
divine
rites,
Dawn
have before us the primeval mythical speech, plain and artless statements that 'the night prepares a birthplace for her sister, the day, and having made it known to her departs,' and that the night and dawn
'
We
See
p. 29.
i.
See
p. 9.
R. V. Sanhita,
ii.
8. 10.
H. H. Wilson.
'SS
'
of various complexions, repeatedly born but ever youthful, have traversed in their revolutions alternately from a remote period earth and heaven night with her dark, dawn with her luminous limbs.' But the germs of the first myths are seen in the phrases which tell us that, as the daughter of Dyaus, she goes before Indra, Savitar, and Surya that she opens the ends of heaven, where the thievish Panis had hidden away the cows of which she is the mother that she shows the Angiras where they are to be found, and drives her own herds to their pastures. The conception of Ushas thus approaches nearly to that of the Greek Athene or the Latin Minerva. She brings light, and she is the possessor
'
of knowledge.^
Hence she
is
is
said to enable
men
to cross
and wide.
She
;
also the
away her
sister
Athene, she is spoken of as sprung from the forehead of Dyaus, the sky. But Ushas is also Ahana, the burning light, which reappears in Athene and Daphne.^ She is also Sarama, and XV. Ahansi, Saranyu, the being who creeps along the heaven.^
the Twilight
lastly, like
sarkma'. j ^.j-^g j^jg y^^^^ Sarama is the keeper of the cows of Indra, the clouds and as his messenger she is sent to the Panis, who have stolen them. Like Ushas, she is first to spy out the cleft in the rock where the robbers had hidden them, and, like Herakles in the story of Cacus, the first to hear their lowings. It is only, therefore, what we might expect, when we are told that, like Ushas, Sarama is followed by Indra that both go to the uttermost ends of heaven that both break the strongholds of the robbers
^nd"
;
; ; ;
and
>
R. V. Sanhita,
The
and
H. H. Wilson. 169. ; Sanskrit l>uc/k (Gr. oT5a, Lat. vidi, Eng. wit)
ii.
12
i.
means both
in
to
make
clear
^
to
know.
is
found also
Gr.
torch.
These names contain the root sar, to creep, round which are grouped the Greek Erinys and Sarpedon. The verbal forms are in Greek epTrto, in Latin re;po and scrpo. The' transliteration of Sarama into Greek gives us Helene.
and that both are the mothers and deliverers of the cows. In
the Vedic
hymns
by the
;
offering
but Sarama
the Veda,
is
Sarama
sent to seek for the stolen herds, and who, although she
we
have here the germ of the notion which took a more definite shape in the Western traditions of the faithlessness
of Helen, in
whom
the
name
of
Sarama
is
reproduced,'
although the interpretation given by Helen herself to her epithet Kunopis in the Iliad is clearly wrong.^
Ushas, again,
horse
;
is
of the
who
represent
xvi.
the Hellenic Dioskouroi, Kastor and Polydeukes l^nyST^* (Pollux). Thus with Saranyu she takes her place h^""?'^^ ^'e.
by the
side of the
the two Agnis, the two Varunas, and the rest of the great
company of correlative
into Greek,
is
But Saranyu, transliterated and we have to mark the astonishing difference which these two beings exhibit in the East and There would in the form of thought of in the West. the Vedic hymns be no euphemism in speaking of the Erinyes as Eumenides or gentle beings and we may be sure that it was not euphemism which first led the Greeks to give them that title. It was assigned to them as naturally as to Dyava-Matar, or Demeter and it must not be forgotten that these beings, fearful as they were to others, were always benignant to CEdipus, and that to him their sacred grove was as the Hyperborean gardens, into which grief and anguish could never enter. There is nothing astonishing in the change. In the Iliad and Odyssey the
Erinys
;
;
'
See
Jllyi/t.
Ar.
i.
Appendix E,
See note
2, p.
40.
6o
Elektra
Harpies are the beautiful daughters of Thaumas and in the ^Eneid of Virgil they are foul monsters
the work of vultures. The Ara, which had once been the prayer of the longing heart/ became the curse which the weak imprecated on their tyrants. As seeing all things, the sun gods would become the avengers of iniquity, and we have already seen that the nooses of Varuna pass by those who speak truth and ensnare only the liars. In like manner it could not fail to be said of sinners that their evil deeds would be laid bare by Saranyu, the morning light, just as in the Hesiodic Theogony Nyx (the night), which is the mother of Eris (strife), and of all the evils which come of strife, is also the mother of Nemesis, or righteous recompense. The direction thus given to the thought of these once beautiful beings could not fail to
issue in the awful picture of the snake-haired avengers of
who do
blood which is brought before us in the drama of yEschylus, In the same way, the Ate of the Iliad is simply the spirit of mischievous folly, hurled by Zeus from Olympus, because she postpones the birth of Herakles to that of Eurystheus
;
is
it has exacted a full penalty for the shedding of innocent blood. But in thorough fidelity to the old mythical speech, the Erinys of the Iliad - still wanders in the air, and hears the summons addressed to her from the land of darkness.^
colours these
to
- x. ' Herod, vi. 63. 571. ^ At Athens there were statues of only two Erinyes. This perhaps may point to the notion of correlative deities, which have already come before us Agnis, in the Asvins or Dioskouroi, in the two Indras, &c.
'
DOCTRINE OF NECESSITY.
filled
6i
his
his
lineage to
an end in blood. Iphigeneia must die that Helen may be brought back, for the evening twilight must vanish The doctrine away if the dawn is to return. But Iphigeneia has Th^MokaTdone no wrong; and there must be condign ven- ^orns f ""^"^ geance for the shedding of her innocent blood. NemestsV This vengeance is exacted by the Erinyes, who pat^'^'aS ^''^ in this aspect appear with writhing snakes instead of hair, and with blood dripping from their eyes. Being now referred to the stages of man's life, they became three in number, and were known as Allekto, Megaira, and Tisiphone (names which denote endless hatred, jealousy,
and revenge), as the three Moirai, called Klotho, Lachesis, and Atropos, weave, deal out, and cut short the thread of human life. This later mythology is, it must be confessed,
thoroughly
artificial.
The
course of
human
;
life is
summed
up in the past, the present, and the future and it only remained to assign each of them to one personal being. The
three fatal sisters are thus rather an ethical or theological
than a mythical growth but their functions were only gradually determined, and the offices usually assigned to Klotho,
;
Lachesis, and Atropos are sometimes reversed. Still, in whatever order we take them, they answer to the Teutonic Vurdh, Verdhandi, and Skuld, arbitrary names denoting the past, the present, and the future. These are the weird sisters whom Macbeth encounters on the desolate heath the Thriai, with whom Hermes is bidden to take counsel the Norns, who guard the ash tree Yggdrasil. The same
;
ethical or theological
man
and of Nemesis, whose business it is to redress the inequalities caused by human injustice, and to make all whose well-being passes beyond certain limits feel the meaning of pain and suffering. The fatal sisters reappear in the Latin Parcse, if we assume that this name was given to them merely for the sake of euphemism.
the recompense due to his work
;
62
It
is,
however, possible that, as in the case of the Eumenides, the word may have been used at first in all sincerity nor is this surmise weakened by the fact that the I'arcae were also
known
to the
Greek
These myths
The
and
horses chariot of the Sun.
conclusively the
superabundant
They
,
namcs which might designate one and ? ,., pomt of likeness between the object thought of and that with which it was compared would lead to the identification of the former with the latter. The sun moved rapidly so did the horse.
the same object,' and any
i
The
so cows
The name
of the one
Thus from their attribute of speed the sun was asvan and the horse was asvan ^ but when asvan became a name specially for the horse, the sun also became the steed who
;
As
carried
and the rays of the sun brought his light to the earth. These, therefore, were also vaJini and they likewise became horses, like the twin steeds or
materials into the
air,
Asvins.
From
sun as a being
;
drawn in a chariot by winged steeds was soon reached and thus Indra is drawn by the Harits, whose name denotes the glistening surface produced by anointing with fat or oil.
We say now-a-days,
in the heaven,'
The sun is rising,' or The sun is high when the Vedic poets would have said, The
'
'
'
sun has yoked his steeds for his journey,' or that his horses have borne his chariot to the house of Dyaus.' These steeds are also known as Rohits, from their gleaming brown
'
hue
'
distinct
13.
personality was
This
of course, polyonymy.
Seep.
Gr. a)H(is, Ikkos, iVTros, Lat. equus. 3 Compare the Latin vehere with the Gr. the neck, as carrj'ing the head.
*
ix'^,
cervix,
AR USHA.
63
growing up, which made it easy to speak of the Harits as We can thus undersisters who fly on beautiful wings.
stand
how
in the
West
become the
lovely
whom
and we the Graces.^ But the horses of the sun in the Veda are also Arushi, and the sun himself is frequently called Arusha, but only at xvii. his rising. The name, therefore, is applied to
him
Asvan or horse stepping forth Greek Erk with irresistible power on his appointed pathway. He is Arusha, we are told, when Night goes away from her sister the Dawn, and the dark one opens the path for the bright god.' But with all his strength Arusha is also a child.
strictly as the
'
'
The seven
sisters
one, as he
As
up
when he was
and he is have thus both the picture and the name of the Hellenic god of love. Arusha is the bright and winged Eros he is also the young child of Dyaus, the offspring of heaven, the sun of strength, who awakens the earth with his rays. He is the first of the gods, as coming at the point of the days, and of his two daughters the one is clad with stars, and the other is the wife of Svar, the sun.^ He moves
has the eyes of a man, also called Saparnas, as having beautiful wings.
He
We
he
is
Kama,
the love
in
or desire of
strength, he
is
all
men
is
and as being
irresistible
his
These phrases
for,
explain
all
that
grease.
2
The name Charis belongs to the same group of M'ords with the English Compare the widely differing shades of meaning exhibited by words
It
is )na->- or mal. See note, p. 28. precisely thus that the Muses nurse the
infant Phoebus in
the
Homeric hymn. ^ In these two beings we can red of the German popular story.
scarcely
fail to
see the
Grimm,
64
as in the Veda, he
the
first
Gaia, and
Tartaros, he
existent deities.
formless universe, he
said to be the
most beautiful of
all
mind and will both of gods and men. The transition was easy to the thought of Eros, ever bright and fair, the companion of the Charites, and
the gods, and to conquer the
The seven sisters who nurse the infant Arusha are rewe can scarcely doubt, by the Muses, who, in
ncw-bom
HcUenic mythology, are called the nurses of the Phoebus, whose body they swathe in pure white linen.' But the light of day is the emblem and earnest of peace, harmony, and love and the Muses, whose voice is song, became naturally the goddesses of music, They seem at first, like the poetry, art, and science. Thriai, the Gorgons, and many others, to have been three in number, and afterwards to have been increased to nine. They were also, according to some traditions, called Pierides,
;
from the fountain of Pieria, near Olympus but another legend says that the Pierides were daughters of Pieros, king of Emathia, who, entering into a contest with the Muses, were beaten by them and changed into birds.^ The names of the nine, as given by later mythographers, are Kleio Euterpe, the charmer Erato, the (Clio), the proclaimer Melpomene, the singer Thalia, the joyous lovely Terpsichore, the enjoyer of dances Polymnia, the lover of songs Ourania, the heavenly and Kalliope, the beautifulBut neither the names nor the functions of these voiced.
;
nine are
known
and
Beings in some respects answering to these Muses are found in the Latin Camenae, whose name in the forms Carmentes and Carmense connects them
tragedians of Greece.
One of these, Egeria, is said to have been the secret counsellor of Numa, the second of the seven
Rome.
1
See p. 36.
See also
p. 42.
EOS.
HEB&.
seen, reappears
in
Gs
as
we have
the
and Ushas is a being who, ever young herself, Eos is a daughter of Hype- xviii.eos. Tuhonos. rion, the soaring sun, and a sister of Helios and Selene and it is perhaps a reminiscence of the old Vedic tradition which represents her as forgetting to ask for youth when she obtained immortality for Tithonos, whose couch she leaves every morning to spread light over the world of men. Tithonos is thus oppressed by a perpetual old age but Tithonos is not the only one who has the love of Eos. In the legend of Kephalos she is the rival of Prokris.^ She is also the lover of Orion, of Kleitos, and of Asterios and
makes
others old.
among
non,
Mem-
whom
to an endless
In Hebe, the ever young,^ the daughter of Zeus and Here, we have another dawn goddess, whose transparent
name prevented
the growth of
much mythical
xix. Heb6.
Like Ushas, she Canymedes. cannot grow old, and she ministers to the gods the lifegiving nectar and ambrosia. She is spoken of as Ganymede, the brilliant and thus the relation of Iris to Hermes is that of Hebe to Ganymedes, the lovely Trojan youth who becomes in Olympos the cupbearer of the gods. In the Hesiodic Theogony she is a sister of the Harpies according to others, she was the wife of Zephyros, and mother of Eos, the morning. In the story of Europe ^ we see the dawn, not as fleeing from the pursuit of the sun, but as borne across the heaven by the lord of the pure ether. It is, however, only one of the many forms assumed by the myth that the sun and the dawn are soon parted. The scene is here laid in the
tradition around her person.
; ; '
See
p. 22.
The name Hebe is akin to the Latin Hephaistos we have the same word in the
-
In
p. 55.
65
Her
xx.Europa. father
AglSr'
Teiephassa.
Agenor
is,
^f ^j^^ Vedic Bhuranyu, or god of fire. But in Agenor is her brother, and therefore Phoroneus himself becomes her father a parentage corresponding closely with that of Athene in the myth which makes the
some
versions
fire-god
dawn
ever,
to leap forth in
full
splendour.
From
fire,
is
howthus
come
also
the father not only of Europe but of Niobe, the snow-cloud, who weeps herself to death on Mount Sipylos. In the
is
the husband of
name Telephos, a
word conveying
precisely the same meaning with Hekatos, Hekate, Hekatebolos, well-known epithets describing the His children far-reaching action of the solar or lunar rays.
are
Kilix,
some made Europe herself a daughter of Phcenix. On this maiden Zeus looks down with love, and in the form of a white bull comes to bear her away to a new home in She becomes the mother of Minos, Crete, the western land. Rhadamanthys, and Sarpedon. But in the house from which the bull has borne her away all is grief and sorrow. There can be no rest until the lost one is found again.
until he sees again the which greeted his eyes in the morning. Kadmos is therefore bidden to go in search of his sister, with strict charge not to return imless he finds her. With him goes his mother, and a long and weary pilgrimage brings them at length to the plains of Thessaly, where Telephassa, worn out with grief and anguish, lies down to But Kadmos must journey yet farther westwards die. and at Delphi, where he finds his sister, he learns that he must follow a cow, which he would be able to distinguish
THEBAN MYTHS.
by
certain signs
;
67
and where she should lie down for weariThe cow lies down on ness, there he must build his city. the site of Thebes but before he can offer the animal in sacrifice to Athene, he has to fight with the dragon offspring of Ares,^ which slays the man whom he sends to bring water from the fountain. Kadmos alone can master it but his victory is followed by another struggle or storm. He sows in the earth the dragon's teeth, which produce a harvest of armed men, who slay each other, leaving five only to become the ancestors of the Thebans. Kadmor.
; ;
has now,
a time as a
bondman
and after this servitude, Athene makes him King of Thebes, and Zeus gives him Harmonia as his bride. Harmonia becomes the mother of Ino, wife of Athamas, of Semele, the mother of Dionysos, and of Agave, who tore her child
Pentheus to pieces for opposing the introduction of the Dionysiac worship. There are few other features in this Theban legend. The wars in which Kadmos fights are the wars of Kephalos and Theseus, with fewer incidents to mark them and the spirit of the old myth is better seen in the legend that, when their work here was done, Kadmos and his wife were changed into dragons, and so taken away Whether the Semitic names ^ found in these to Elysion. Boeotian legends furnish evidence for the colonisation ot that country by the Phenicians, it might be rash to say but it seems to show with sufficient clearness the large influence exercised by Phenician thought, ritual, and even theology
;
Tammuz
See Appendix I. is simply the Semitic Kedem, the east ; Athamas is the god Melikertes, the son of Ino, and therefore grandson of Cadmus, is undoubtedly the Phenician Melkarth (Moloch). The sacrifices of children \\\ his honour, and the horrid nature of his worship generally, are thus at once Adonis is the Semitic Adonai. With these undoubtedly Semitic explained. names before us, it would be imprudent to deny the possibility that other names in the myth, which have an Hellenic or Aryan look, are not, after all, Semitic also. This may be the case with Europe herself, and probably is so with Palaimon. Agenor, which is indubitably Greek, may yet, in this instance, represent the Semitic Chnas. It would be merely an example of the process which turned the French chaude melee into the English chance medley.' See Brown, Great Dionysiak Afytk, i. 247.
'
Kadmos
;
'
'
F2
68
Western Hellas. The precise limits of this open question but the fact that Semitic names and Semitic rites found their way into the territories of some Greek tribes may, perhaps, enable us to account for some strange beings in Greek mythology, which cannot be explained by referring them to any Aryan
in this part of
influence remain an
sources.
Among
myth
XXI.
Wete^gros.
dawn
is
a child whose
life
is
brand.
This story
oigertheDane.
was taken
home.
His purpose
is
in telling
it is
that Achilles
may see in
it
poet imagined
to be.
is
The
chief point
bound up with the preservation of a piece of wood which was burning away. As the child lay
ence of Meleagros
sleeping in his cradle, the Moirai (Moerae),
fortunes of men, stood suddenly,
it is
who shape
the
mother,
and pointing to a log burning on the hearth, told her that as soon as the brand had burnt itself out, her child would
die.
The phrase
must disappear when he sinks below the western horizon but from failure of memory the notion might arise that it was possible to interrupt the waste of life, and that the burning brand might be quenched in water and stored away. This work is therefore done by Althaia and like
;
the multitude
of
heroes,
who
share
his
divine origin,
Meleagros grows up strong, brave, and beautiful. Like them he achieves great exploits, taking part especially in the Argonautic expedition and the great Kalydonian boar hunt. This last enterprise was undertaken to destroy a monstrous boar which Artemis had sent to punish CEneus,
the father of Meleagros, for neglecting to give her her portion
69
Foremost among those who were gathered together for this chase was Atalante, the daughter of the Arkadian chieftain Schoeneus. This beautiful maiden first pierced the boar, which was afterwards slain by Meleagros, But the sequel brought disaster. Meleagros wished to have the head, and the Kouretes (Curetes) of Pleuron, who had aided the Kalydonians in the hunt, were not content to have the skin only. Thus a strife arose, in which Meleagros slew thechief of the Kouretes, who was also a brother of Althaia. This was followed by a war between the peoples of Pleuron and Kalydon, in which, after a little while, Meleagros refused to take part, because Althaia in her grief for the loss
No sooner had he withdrawn himself from the contest than the men of Kalydon lost ground, and remained utterly dismayed until his wife Kleopatra induced him to go forth. As soon as he reappeared, the enemy was routed. But the men of Kalydon would give him no prize, and Meleagros again withdrew to his secret chambers. As he refused altogether to give further aid to his countrymen, Althaia, enraged at his suUenness, brought out the brand and flung it into the fire. As the wood burnt away, the strength of Meleagros decayed, and as the last spark flickered out, he died. His death v/as by a mythical necessity soon followed by that of Kleopatra and Althaia. The twilight cannot long survive the setting of the sun. So passes away the hero who can only thus be slain and his sisters, who are changed into guinea-hens, weep for his death, as the sisters of Phaethon shed tears of amber over their brother's grave. His short and chequered life is one of the many forms which the course He is capricious and of the sun may take in any land.
of her brother laid her curse upon her son.
;
sullen
others of
and periods of complete inaction alternate with vehement and violent energy. Sometimes he reappears in wonderful splendour at others he is hidden away and refuses to be seen. It is the career of the sun on a day when the clouds and vapours are hurrying across the
;
;
70
sky,
by
whatever way the time may be spent, the hours are hurrying on and if the brand is allowed to burn itself out, his life must end with its last This torch reappears in the Danish legend of Olger,* spark. the mighty hero who rescues the land of the Franks, after spending generations with Morgan le Fay in the enchanted
intervals of
heavy gloom.
But
in
valley of Avilion.
It is this fairy
him the
it
fatal torch
you live for ever should break out and burn, cherish the fire with care, for the measure of your days is the last spark of the torch.' But these possibilities of deathless life are never realised, and as long as we are speaking of the phenomena of the outward world, they never can be. The Danish Olger is
not, so shall
saved from the doom of Meleagros, only because at the moment of his marriage with the Frank queen he is snatched away by Morgan le Fay, who bears him off to her charmed
paradise.
We
xxii.
Athlife^and
of heaven-inhabiting deities,
In
Athcuc wc havc, iu one form of the myth, a being Ahana. \y\\o comcs iuto cxisteuce without a mother, springing armed from the forehead of her father Zeus, when, according to some versions of the legend, Hephaistos had split
it
dawn as it bursts forth from the dark forehead of the broad heaven, of which it was easy to speak as cloven by an axe of fire. We find the name itself in the hymns of the Rig Veda, where it still bears its old meaning of the morning light. 'Ahana comes near to every house, she who makes every day to be known.' ^ As springing thus from the forehead of the heaven, this dawnstory tells us simply of the
^
tlic
Dane.
p. 58.
ATHENE.
gTiddess remains fresh, pure, and undefikd for ever.
7C
Like
the sun
who
and
and
fills ail
with her
wisdom
notion of light became inseparably connected with that of knowledge. So too in a hymn of the Rig Veda, the Dawn, as waking every mortal to walk about, receives praise from every thinker and Ushas also is here spoken of as born without a mother from the head of Dyu.' The Hesiodic Theogony,^ it is true, assigns Metis, another name denoting wisdom, as a mother to Athene but this story is reconciled with the other m3/th by saying that by the counsel of Ouranos and Gaia Zeus swallov^^ed Metis before her child
; ;
was born.
It is possibly
Athene was known as Koryphasia^ in Messene, and as Akria"* in Argos, while Minerva was called AthSneKory,^. T\ "ri- phasia and Capita or Capta^ in Kome. But even if this Akna. was the idea present to the minds of Greek or Latin worthat
,r~.
r^
T->
must
first strike
simply to the way in which the morning light the highest peaks before it reveals the
myth Lykosoura
cities,
is
and the
first
by Helios, the sun.^ With the myth of her birth the idea which found exTritogeneia, as
applied to this
^^^^^^^^ x^j^o.
There were some who took it as meaning that seneia. she was born on the third day but this explanation exnor is anything gained by tracing it to the plains nothing Libyan Jake Tritonis, or even to the Boeotian stream Triton,
;
''
2 Line 886. * From Ko:>v(p-f), a head or summit. p. 58. s ^ See p. 41. Topmost. Lat. caput, a head, quantity of the first syllable would be a grave, if not an insuperable, difficulty in the way of this interpretation.
'
See
*
'
The
17
on the banks of which we may note that towns sprang up called Athens and Eleusis. We are on firmer ground, when we remember that Trita was the Vedic god of the water and the air. We thus see that Tritos had been a name or an epithet of Zeus, forgotten probably in the long migration which brought the ancestors of the Greeks from their home in Central Asia to the coasts of the Egean Sea, and we can understand the relations of Athene to Triton, Amphi trite, and the Tritopatores or lords of the winds. The first work of the Vedic Ushas or Ahana is to rouse men from their slumbers that of Athene is precisely the
:
Athine GUukCpis.
same.
Qf
^.j^g
Hence next
morning, is specially sacred to her. The epithet by which she is best known in the Iliad and Odyssey is Glaukopis and the word denotes simply her bright and gleaming countenance. With us the full grey eye is properly an eye which has not a dearth but an ex;
called Glaux, either from the plumage, or from the brilliancy of its eyes. But in truth the word Glaukopis points to a radiance almost too intense for mortal eyes to rest on, just as Glaukos, the bright hero of the Lykian land, the sun in his noonday strength, is the avenger of Sarpedon, who was slain in the first promise of his youthful beauty. In the same way she is called Optiletis, Oxyderkes, Ophthalmitis all of them signifying the overpowering glory of her countenance. It is, however, not difficult to look at the dawn goddess from other points of view. Regarded as the pure light of
;
cess of light
flashing w^hiteness of
momlug
.
.
^.
srie IS
the virgm
Springing from the bright blue heaven, ^ ^ ^. ^ ^ who can know nothmg of the
.
tumults and the agitations of love. But she may be looked upon not only as the child of the dark night, but as the precursor of the sun. In the former case we find her spoken
of as a child, not of Zeus, but of the winged giant Pallas
or of Poseidon or Hephaistos.
In the
latter,
the deity,
ATHENE.
y^
whom
who knows
no earthly love, becomes the lover of Prometheus and the mother of the sun-god Phoebus Apollo. Assuredly, he may be her son, as following the dawn but as springing from
;
is
whom
god who was to make them wealthy and famous. Another myth makes her the mother of Lychnos, who reappears
elsewhere as Phaethon.
Inconsistencies of a similar kind
all
may be
gods.
the
Olympian
re-
One by
one, they
may have
Zeus
is
;
a strong reluctance to
lation of
Athene
to her father
that of perfect
harmony
and submission.
conspiracy of Poseidon and Here to dethrone or imprison Zeus,* and she aids Prometheus in stealing fire from
heaven against the will of the father of gods and men. In the Iliad and Odyssey she is the deity who knows most deeply the mind of Zeus, and is the guide, comforter, and counsellor of Achilles, Odysseus, and other heroes but in the legend of Pandora we find her taking part in the plot by which Zeus seeks to add to the misery of mankind. Her task is to teach Pandora the skilful use of the loom, while Aphrodite is to bestow on her all the allurements of physical beauty, and Hermes is to give her a crafty and thievish disposition. In Athenian painting and sculpture, Athene always appears fully clothed, having on her aegis or cloak the face of the mortal gorgon Medusa Avhich turned all who looked on it into stone. Thus arrayed, her colossal statue, carved in gold and ivory by the great sculptor
;
Pheidias, the
friend
of Perikles,
stood
;
in
front
of the
Parthenon or the Acropolis of Athens and as the sun rose, the flashing light of her spear and shield was distinctly seen at a distance of twelve miles by the mariners who might be rounding Cape Sounion (Sunium).
*
//.
i.
400.
74
dawn
is,
beyond
doubt, Minerva
XXIII.
the Greek Athene. The language of the Vedic hymns, which we have already cited, enables us to understand the connexion of the name Minerva with the
Minerva,
Carmen
Saliare
;
and
Mania, an old name of the mother of the Lares, and Matuta, another name for the dawn. To the same source we must refer the name Moneta, applied to Juno as the guardian of
the Capitoline mint.
The
is
Theogony
;
yet
it
resolves itself, none the less certainly, into the XXIV. Aphrodite, early mythical phrases. The life-blood of Ouranos
shed over the sea calls forth from the waters the goddess of love and beauty. By her side walked Eros,^ and Himeher.^ It has been doubted ros, longing, followed after whether her name is Greek, and whether it belongs to any of the Aryan languages but although the Greeks believed that she was so called because she sprang from the seafoam, this of itself goes for very little.^ For the same reason she is also called Anadyomene, the being who rises from the waters a name which it would be absurd to as;
is
known
as
was the
day.
case she
'
child of
The
is
Ouranos and Hemera, the heaven and the In either is one of names only. and as the dawn is the the image of the dawn
difference here
;
See
p. 63.
^ The Greek aippos, foam, seems certainly to contain the same root with our word /rotA but Aphrodite may nevertheless be referred to it by a false analogy. Agenor is undoubtedly Greek, so is Palaimon. But in the story of Kadmos
;
the
Hamon.
See
APHRODIT&.
7j;
most lovely of the sights of nature, Aphrodite became to the Greek, as she was to the Hindu, the goddess of perfect beauty. On her was lavished all the wealth of words denoting the loveliness of the morning; and thus the Hesiodic poet, having spoken of her birth, goes on at once to say that the grass sprang up under her leet as she moved, and that all earthly things rejoiced to look upon her. She is also spoken of as Enalia and Pontia, the deity who sheds her glory on the deep sea and, again, Ourania and Pandemos, as the goddess, in the one case of pure, in the other of gross and sensual, love. In the Odyssey she is the wife of Hephaistos, the firegod and in this poem she is attended by the Charites,' who wash her and anoint her with oil at Paphos. Aphrodite and
;
;
is
Charis
Hcpbaistos.
;
and thus we are brought back to the old myth in which both Charis and Aphrodite are mere names for the glistening dawn. Between the language addressed by the Greek poets to Aphrodite and the phrases applied in Vedic hymns to Ushas there is a close correspondence. The latter is Duhita Div^ah, the daughter of Dyaus, just as Aphrodite is the daughter of Zeus. Another Sanskrit name for the morning was Arjuni,^ the brilliant but of this word the Greek in his westward journeyings had forgotten the meaning, and Argynnis became for him a beautiful maiden loved by Agamemnon. The idea of the morning embodied in Aphrodite exhibits none of the severity which marks the character of Athene. She is the dawn, not as unsullied by ^j^^ child. en any breath of passion, but as preserving and fos- f Aphrodite. tering all creatures in whom is the breath of life. She would thus be associated with those forms under which the phenomena of reproduction were universally set forth. She is, therefore, the mother of countless children, not all of them beautiful like herself, for the dawn twilight may be
;
'
See
p. 63.
See
p,
u^
76
Hence Phobos and Deimos, and dread, are among the children born by Aphrodite to Ares, while Priapos and Bacchus are her children by Dionysos. As rising from the sea, she was loved by Poseidon and as the lover of Anchises, she became the mother of Aineias, vEneas, whom Latin poets arbitrarily
ing as the parent of the night.
fear
;
Roman
people.
As
and
such, she takes part in the action of the Iliad, throwing her
it is,
when
the
in the dust
behind the chariot of Achilles, it is Aphrodite who cleanses it from all that is unseemly, and brings back to it the beauty of death, anointing it with the ambrosial oil which makes all decay impossible. Of this war she may, indeed, be regarded as the cause. Her beauty led Paris to adjudge to her the golden apple, flung on the table by Eris at the marriage of Thetis and Peleus, as a gift for the most
^
fair
instilled
by her promise
as his wife
strife
women
made him
which ended in the downfall of Ilion. But Aphrodite is more particularly the lover of Adonis. This name is clearly the Semitic Adon, Adonai, lord? Aphrodite and ^hc influcttcc of Asiatic thought in the later outAdoms. growths of the myth cannot be denied, and the consequences of the admission may be indefinitely important but the myth itself is one which must spring up wherever there is any visible change or alternation of the Adonis, as denoting the fruitfulness and fruits of seasons. the earth, must spring from its plants and so the story went that he was born from the cloven body of his mother, who had been changed into a tree, as Athene sprang from the cloven head of Zeus. The babe, anointed by the Naiads with his mother's tears (the dews of spring-time),
;
;
'
See
p. 60.
See note
2,
p. 67.
VENUS.
-jf
was placed in a chest and put into the hands of Persephone, the queen of the under-world, who, seeing his loveHness, reThe latter fused to yield up her charge to Aphrodite.
carries her complaint to Zeus,
shall
who
remain during four months of each year with Persephone, and for four he should be with his mother, while the remaining four were to be at his own disposal. In a climate like that of Greece the story would as certainly relate that these four months he chose to spend with Aphrodite, as on the fells of Norway it would run that he must spend them in Niflheim. Still the doom is upon him. He must beware of all noxious and biting beasts. The savage boar was ready to pierce him with his tusk and, as some said, this boar was Ares disguised. The myth of Adonis links the legends of Aphrodite with those of Dionysos. Like the latter, Adonis is born
;
only on the death of his mother, while, like Adonis, Dionysos is placed in a chest which
carries
^pj^rodits and
dionysos.
where the body of his mother is buried. But hke Adonis or the Syrian Tammuz, Semele is raised from the under-world, and, receiving the name of Dione, becomes the mother of Aphrodite.
to the spot
him
Of
the Latin
that her
name
is
Venus it is unnecessary to say more than not borrowed from the Greek. It is the
^xv. Venus.
genuine growth of Italian speech, being connected with venia^ grace, favour, or pardon, with the verb
venerari, to venerate,
and with the English winsome. But it remained a mere name, to which, as to Fortuna or others, any epithet might be applied according to the taste or the wants of the worshipper. Thus she might be Venus Cloacina, or the purifier barbata, the bearded, militaris, eqiiestris, and many more. The stories told about her by later Latin poets were simply borrowed from the traditions of the Greek Aphrodite and as the latter was said to be the mother of ^neas, the anso far as the Latin tribes were concerned,
;
;
78
protector of the
Roman
state.
is
the queen of
heaven
XXVI. Hrd.
whom Kronos may be taken as a Zeus had been Kronion, the ancient of days but the word had a patronymic form, and so Kronos was
of beings of
.j-ype.
;
In like manner he must have and her name must denote her abode in the brilliant ether. The word belongs probably to the same group with the Sanskrit Svar, the gleaming heaven, and the Zend Hvar, the sun, which in Sanskrit reappears in the kindred form Surya, the Greek Helios, the sun. Little is told about her beyond the story which she tells of herself in the Iliad,* namely, that like the rest of his progeny she was swallowed by her father Kronos, and that she was placed by Rhea in the charge of Okeanos ^ and Tethys, who nursed and tended her after Kronos had been dethroned and imprisoned by Zeus beneath the earth and sea. But Greek tradition had different versions for almost. every tale; and according to some Here was brought up by the daughters of the river Asterion, while others gave to her as nurses the beautiful Horai (the hours as meaning the seasons), who guard the gates of heaven. When she became the bride of Zeus, she brought him the golden apples which had been guarded by the hundred-headed offspring of Typhaon and Echidna.^ Although compelled to submit to Zeus, Here is by no means always in harmony with his will. Her love is Relations of given exclusively to the Argives and the story Zeus. of the judgment of Paris was devised to furnish a reason for this exclusive favour. According to this tale, when the gods were assembled at the marriage board of Peleus, Eris flung on the table a golden apple to be given In the trial which followed, Here, to the fairest of the fair.
'
14. 202.
See
p. 49.
Apollod.
ii.
5. 11.
HERE.
79
Aphrodite, and Athene appear before Paris, the Trojan shepherd, as claimants of the apple, which is given to
Aphrodite as the embodiment of the mere physical loveliness of the dawn, apart from the ideas of wisdom and power which underlie the conceptions of Athene and Here, From that time forth Here and Athene are said to have hated the city of Priam. But the way was not so clear to Zeus as it seemed to be to Here. Hektor himself was the darling of Apollo and this of itself was a reason why Zeus could not eagerly wish to bring about the victory of the Achaians but, beyond this, there were among the allies of Priam some in whose veins his own blood was running the Ethiopian Memnon, the child of the morn;
;
ing
all,
Sarpedon. Here were ample causes of strife between Zeus and his queen and in these quarrels Here wins her ends partly by appealing to his policy and his fears, and in part by obtaining from Aphrodite her girdle of irresistible power. Once only we hear of any attempt to use force and this is in the strange story which tells us of the plot of Here with Poseidon and Athene to put Zeus in chains a tale which seems to point to the struggles consequent on the attempt to introduce the foreign worship of Poseidon into the west.' The pendant to this story may be found in the legend which says that Zeus once hung up Here in the heaven, with golden handcuffs on her wrists and two heavy anvils suspended from her feet. In the same way she quarrels with Herakles, and is wounded by his arrows. Otherwise she is endowed with attributes equal to those of Phoebus himself. Thus she imparts to the horse Xanthos the gifts both of human speech and of prophecy, and sends the unwilling sun, Helios, to his ocean bed, when Patroklos falls beneath the spear of Hektor.
;
Brown, Great Dionysmk Myth. I do not wish to commit myself to Mr. Brown's conclusions but I am bound to admit the great ability with which he has brought together all the evidence bearing on this very important subject.
' ;
So
enough to
is
her
office as
This idea
on his flaming noontide cross), who, after being purified by Zeus from the guilt of blood, seeks to win her love, and is cheated by Zeus with a cloud, which is made to assume
specially brought out in the story of Ixion (the sun
her shape.
Among
the
is
This word was supposed to describe ^cr as the guardian of citadels but it was apThe chiid.en ofHere. plied, wc havc seen, to Athene as denoting the bright sky of morning. Thus viewed, Here is the mother of Hebe, the embodiment of everlasting youth. But, as the source of like convulsions with those of Ouranos, from whom sprang the giants. Thunder and Lightning,' Here is the mother also of Ares,^ the crusher, and of Hephaistos, the forger of the thunderboks. By the Greeks she was especially regarded as instituting marriage and punishing
the epithet Akraia.
those
who
violate
its
duties.
is
The Latin
The Latin
deities
but the affinity of Here and Juno is manifest for as the xxvn. Sanskrit Dyavan represents the Greek Zeus, so ^
,
Juno.
t^Latm Dianus
or
anus,
while the feminine forms, Diana and Juno, would correspond to the Greek Zenon. The Latin Juno, however, not
only presides over marriage, but is the special protectress of women from the cradle to the grave, and, as such, is
both Matrona and Virginalis. Without attempting to decide the order in which the XXVIII. conceptions of the several gods arose in the savitar." human mind, we advance from the survey of the
incipient consonant
Hes. Thcog. 140. Bronte and Sterope. Like the Greek &\eiipov for fidXevpov, ground corn, Ares has lost See note, p. 28. which reappears in the Latin //nzrs.
its
SURYA, SAVITAR,
that of the beings
AND SOMA.
8r
who have
which are seen moving in the heavens the sun, moon, and Of these some remain inseparable from the orbs with which they are associated, while some, Hke the Vedic Indra and the Hellenic Phoebus, simply show in their general characteristics the sources from which they derive their personality. In the Rig Veda the actual sun-god is Surya or Savitar, the former name denoting the splendour of the
stars.
Surya,
we
are
and notes the good and evil deeds of men. He is the husband of the dawn, but the dawn is also his mother and here we have the germ of the myth which in Greece grew into the terrible history of CEdipus and lokaste. The most active of all the gods, he is the third in the earlier Trimurtti, or trinity, in which he is associated with Agni and Vayu. Savitar, when distinguished from Surya, is especially the glistening or golden god and the story went that once when Savitar cutoff his hand at a sacrifice, the priests gave him instead of it a hand of gold.^ His power is irresistible. Age cannot touch him, and nothing can withstand his will. Shining forth, he rises from the lap of the Dawn, praised by singers he, my god Savitar, stepped forth who
;
'
The chariot of the sun-god is drawn, as we have seen, by the immortal horses, who are called Vahni or Harits.^ His strength is said to come from his parent or xxix.
generator,
Soma, which
and
in the
Vedic mythology
it
Soma,
But
flexible
indefinite
though
may
be.
Soma
has a
sensible personality.
Of
the
mode of preparing
sii,
^
it
as an intoxicating
It
to drive or stimulate.
See
See
p.
62
82
and others, again, speak of him as a god higher even than Varuna or Indra. The word thus denotes not merely the gladdening power of wine, but the life-giving force from which the sky and the sun derive their strength and splenIt dour, and which is embodied in the Greek Dionysos.^ becomes even the beatific vision for which the pilgrims of
drink
this earth yearn.
'
Where
is
there
is
where the
sun me,
'
Soma.
there
is
Where
make me
immortal.'
In som.e of the
hymns
all
from his divine seed, and like Varuna and Indra, Soma is In Called Skamblia, the sustainer of the world. Correlative ^'^^ later mythology Soma, as the supreme spirit, Soina ami uma. ^^.ji-j^ Uma, as divine knowledge, falls into the ranks of the correlative deities. This idea of correlated gods is one which arose ver>' early in the human mind, and it seems especially to have impressed itself on the mind of It is easy to see a duaHsm in nature until the Hindu. knowledge assumes a strictly scientific form. The earth reposes under the heaven, therefore she is his bride and this relation the Vedic poets expressed, as we have seen, in
;
the single word Dyavaprithivi.^ It is the same with the morning and the evening, day and night, light and darkWe cannot by a sharp line mark where one begins ness. and the other ends. Hence the dawn and the gloaming may be easily described as twin-brothers or sisters standing side by side, and having the same home. Such a twin we find in the Asvins or horsemen, the Hindu representatives of the Greek Dioskouroi, or sons of Zeus. Difficult though it may be to interpret all that is said
'
5.
See
p. 31.
CORRELATIVE DEITIES.
S3
about them, their general character seems to be shown with sufficient clearness in the statement that their time is after xheAsvins. midnight, whilst the break of day is yet delayed. The two Ahans, or dawns, are born, it is said, when the Asvins yoke their horses to their car. The twain are born when the Night leaves her sister the Dawn, when the dark one gives way to the bright' After them comes Ushas, followed by Surya, the sister of the sun, then by Saranyil, and lastly by Savitar. As to the meaning of this sequence there can be no question and when we are told that the Asvins are ihcJiajdtc, born here and there, as appearing in the east, and again at eventide in the west, we have a clue to that notion of alternate manifestation which marks the Hellenic myth of Kastor and Polydeukes (Pollux). As such, they are called children of Prajapati, or of Savitar, and as ushering in the light, they are healers and physicians, like Asklepios, the son of Phcebus. So also like Proteus, and other beings of Western tradition, they can change their shape at will. The twain adopt various forms one of them shines brightly, the other is black.' These, it is possible, may be connected with the white and black eagles mentioned in the Agamemnon of ^schylus.^ The impulse being once given, the multiplication of Gemini, or couples, might be carried to almost any length. Vama. We have already had the two Indras, the two Agnis, and others. These are in the Veda Yama or Yami,
'
;
'
' Line 113. It is worth noting that in the Norse tale of Dapplegrim we have the Asvins in their original form of horses, for when the lad who has won his wonderful victories on his unearthly steed is told that he must produce its match or die, he tells his steed in despair, ' Your match is not to be found in the wide world.' The horse answers that he has a match, although it is not easy to get at him, for he abides in Hell. Here, again, we have the altej-nate manifestations of the Asvins and the Dioskouroi. It is impossible not to notice the coupling of brothers in Western tradition. In many of these instances the dualism involves complete antagonism in others, there is the closest harmony. Such couples are seen in Achilleus and Patroklos, Theseus and Peirithoos, Phaethon and Helios, Pelias and Neleus,
;
Prometheus and Epimetheus, Romulus and Remus, Odj sseus and Telemachos. Eteokles and Polyneikes, with many others. G 2
84
twin-brothers or twin-sisters.
over.
making known the paths on which our fathers crossed He thus becomes specially the god of the blessed in
sengers
summon
the children of
is
men from
the world
when
come.
Answering to Surya and Savitar, Phoebus Apollo and Helios represent the sun-god, the latter being inXXX. Phoebus
The name
.
of
explamed with certamty. The word Phoibos has been connected with the Greek Phos, light. It may, perhaps, more plausibly be compared with the Sanskrit Bhava and Bhavani, names which denote The epithet life and the producing powers of nature.
ApoUo.
and averting disaster.^ It is possible that at first Phoebus may have been, as Helios remained, a god who had his dwelling in the solar orb but in the earliest Greek traditions we find him regarded as the god of light, who was not confined
;
He
is
in the morning from the sky and of Leto, because the night, as going before the sun, may be conHer name, denoting the oblivion of sidered as his mother.
dawn, springs
world, which
makes men
as well as in that of
i.
460.
PHCEBUS APOLLO.
sleep
;
85
(Dioscuri).
The Ionian legend of his birth, embodied in the hymn addressed to the god,^ tells us the simple tale that Leto, when about to become the mother of Phoebus, TheDeiian
could find no
Delos.
resting-place until she
came
to
^^^*"'^-
To
wealthier and
;
more
fertile
lands she
made her
and when she addressed herself to the little cliffs and hills, Delos trembled The unborn child, she knew, would be a being of mighty power, and she dreaded lest he should despise his sterile bi rthplace, and spurn it with his feet into the sea. It remained only for Leto to make a solemn covenant with Delos, that here should be the sanctuary of her child for ever, and that here his worshippers, coming from all lands to his high festival, should lavish upon her inexhaustible wealth of gold and treasures. Here, then, Phoebus was bo^-n, and at his birth the earth laughed beneath the smile of heaven, and Delos, though in itself a hard and stony land, covered itself with flowers. The nymphs wrapped him in a spotless robe, and placed a golden band round the body of him who, though now weak and helpless, was to be Chrysaor, the lord of the golden sword. But no sooner had Thetis touched the child's lips with the drink and food of the gods than, like the striding Vishnu,^ he became possessed of irresistible strength, and his swaddling bands fell off him like flax, as, taking harp in hand, he proclaimed his office of declaring the will of Zeus to men. He is, then, born in Delos merely because the word Delos denotes the bright land. For the same reason he is Lykeios and Lykegenes, born in Lykia, the realm Mythical geography. of light and in some legends Ortygia is mentioned as the birthplace both of Phoebus and of his sister Artemis. But Ortygia is merely the land of the quail,'
prayer in vain stony island with its rugged with mingled joy and fear.
;
Hymn,
1-178.
Seep. 34.
86
and the names of mythical geography refuse to be confined within the borders of any one country. There might be an Ortygia in the Egean, another near Ephesus, and another but the true Lykia and close to the Sicilian Syracuse Ortygia of the myth belong to the regions of cloudland, like the wonderful Lykosoura of Pausanias.^ But the sojourn of Phoebus in Delos was necessarily short. The sun cannot linger long in the east after his rising and thus ^o the hymn which related his birth was added another hymn speaking of his westward wanderings,- telling us how he went from land to land, and how he loved the tall seacliffs and every jutting crag, and the rivers which hasten to the broad sea, although he came back with ever fresh delight to his native Delos, as the sun reappears morning
; ;
soon as he burst the bonds of his cradle (the white when he first becomes visible), Phoebus is armed with irresistible weapons, and
mists which are swathed round him
^13 quivcr
phoeUis and
leiphoiis^a.
As
is filled
their mark.
with arrows which never miss These are the unerring weapons
which belong to all the heroes who share his nature to Herakles and Philoktetes, to Achilles and Odysseus, to Perseus, Bellerophon, and many others in Greek tradition to Rustem in Persian story to Sigurd and Siegfried in the Volsunga Saga and the Nibelungenlied. So armed, he goes on his westward journey, which brings him to the fountain of Telphoussa, where he wished to build himself a home but Telphoussa, saying that her broad plain, filled v.'ith horses and cattle brought to her for their daily supply of water, could give him no peaceful abode, urged him to go on to the more favoured land of Krisa. Thus warned, he betook himself to Parnassos, where Trophonios and
;
' See p. 40. I.ykia, it is almost needless to say, contains the same root with the Gr. KevKus, vvliite, and the Lat. lux, luc-eo, and luc-na, luna, the
moon.
-
This second
hymn
87
But, lilce Agamecles raised his world-renowned home. Kadmos (Cadmus) and Indra, Phoebus must have his Vritra or Ahi to fight with and to slay - and it is at this point
;
hymn
of the
worm
name
its
of Pytho,
carcase in
the sun.
wreak
his
cheated him of a bright home beside her glancing waters. The temple which rose in his honour beneath the twin summits of Parnassos became the greatest of all the oracles
in Greece,
and
its
all
Apoiion
^'^'^'""'o-
invaded Greece, the force which he sent to plunder the sanctuary at Delphi
lands.
When Xerxes
is
said to
have been smitten and destroyed by the god, who hurled on them great rocks from the sides of the mountain.^ The first priests of this shrine were furnished by the crew of In the a Cretan ship sailing with merchandise to Pylos. guise of a dolphin,^ Phoebus urges the vessel through the
' These two builders also raise the treasury of Ilyrieus, placing one of the stones so that they could remove it from the outside. Astonished at the lessening of his wealth, Hyrieus sets a snare, in which Agamedes is caught, and Trophonios cuts off his head to save him from torture and himself from disThis precaution seems in this instance superfluous, since Pausanias, covery. ^- 37) 3j fidds that the earth opened and received Trophonios, as it received Amphiaraos. But the incident recurs not only in the Arabian Night's story of Ali Baba and the P'orty Thieves, but in that of the Treasuiy of Rhampsinitos, related many centuries before by Herodotus, and in the West Highland tale of
See Appendix
I.
Herod,
viii.
37.
thus becomes ApoUon Delphinios. Whether the name of the sanctuary suggested that of the fish, or the latter suggested the former, we do not know ; but apart from the name, we see Phoebus here invested with the power of changing his shape, which is possessed by Proteus as well as by the Syrian fish-god Dagon or Onnes. If it could be proved that this idea is an importation from Semitic mythology, we could have no motive for resisting but we need not travel away so far from Aryan sources for the conclusion comparisons of the sun to creatures which belong to the waters. By the Hindus the sun resting on the horizon was called Blieki, or the frog, which squats by the water-side and Bheki was spoken of as a maiden who marries a king on Bheki reappears as the condition that he never shows her a drop of water. Frog Prince in the German popular tale. In that of the Sick Queen in Campbell's collection of West Highland stories, it is the Frog alone which can heal her with the water of life. In the Vishnu Purana the demon Sambara
; ;
He
88
on the deck
in terror,
moves on without
coasts of Peloponnesos,
gulf,
As
the ship
on the sands of Krisa. Then Apollo leaped from the vessel like a star, while from him flew sparks of light till their radiance reached the heaven, and hastening to his sanctuary he showed forth his weapons in the flames which he kindled. This done, he hastened with the swiftness of thought back to the ship, now in the form of a beautiful youth, with his golden locks flowing over his shoulders, and asked the seamen who they were and whence they came. In their answer, which says that they had been brought to Krisa against their will, they address him at once as a god, and Phoebus tells them that they can hope to see their home, their wives, and their children again no more. But a higher lot awaits them. Their name shall be known throughout the earth as that of the guardians of Apollo's shrine, and they shall have all their hearts' desire, if only they will avoid falsehood in word and violence in deed.' Between Phoebus and Helios there is essentially no distinction. Both are beings of unimaginable brightness t)oth havc irrcsistiblc and unerring weapons, and Apollo and Daphne. ^^ powcr of awakcuing and destroying life both have inexhaustible wealth and treasures and both can mar the work which they have made. Each of these qualities might and would furnish groundwork for separate stories. But although the sun may have unbounded power, he may also be regarded as a being compelled to do his work, even against his will.^ He must perform his daily journey he must slay the darkness which is his mother he must be parted from the dawn which cheered him in his course and after a few hours he must sink into the dark-
was
casts
fish,
'
Pradyumna, the son of Vishnu, into the sea, where he is swallowed by a from whose belly he is born anew. Myth. Ar. Nat, i. 400; ii. 26. Hymn. Apo/L 540. See p. 7. The punishment of Sisyphos.
ASKLEPIOS. ALSCULAPIUS.
89
In strict ness from which he had sprung in the morning.' accordance with these ideas, we see the sun in the myth of Daphne as the lover of the dawn, to whom his embrace is,
as
it
must
be, fatal.
As
deepening splendour of the sun, so Daphne flies from Apollon as he seeks to win her. The more eager his chase, the more rapid is her flight, until in her despair she prays that the earth or the waters may deliver her from her persecutor.
laurel tree
Daphne
That Apollo himself has to submit to an irksome yoke is shown by the myths relating to Poseidon.^ Not only is he compelled with that god to
incorruptible wreath.
is
Admetos, whose
wife, Alkestis,
and
is
'
Hence
See
p. 39,
and Appendix
I.
90
rately to beings
whose united qualities make up his knowledge of things to come healing and life-giving powers to
culapius).
divinity.
Thus
;
given to lamos
his
The
less instances in
which the sun is faithless to his love, or his love is faithless to him and the doom of Koroni'^, the mother of Asklepios, only reflects the fate which cuts short the life of Daphne. Her child, like all other fatal children,^ is born at the moment of her death amidst a blaze of light, and rescued from the flames. The dawn cannot long survive the birth of the sun. Hence, in the Northern Saga, the mother of Volsung dies as soon as she has kissed her child and the same lot befalls the mother of little Snowwhite, and of other dawn maidens in the popular stories of Germany. Like CEdipus, Romulus, and other
; ;
is
discovered
by the splendour
which surrounds him, and he is hence called Aiglaer, the shiner, a mere name for the sun. The wonder is noised abroad, and over land and sea the tidings were carried that Asklepios healed the sick and raised the dead.^ But, like almost all the other beings to whose kindred he belongs, Asklepios must soon die. Either Zeus feared that man might conquer death altogether, or Hades complained that his kingdom would be left desolate. So the thunderbolt smote down the benignant son of Phoebus, and the sun-god in his vengeance slew the Kyklopes (Cyclopes), the fashioners of the fiery lightnings for the lord of heaven, and thus
'
Seep.
14.
The notion of his healing powers is found in germ Pausanias, ii. 26. 4. The sun was regarded naturally as the restorer of all vegelegends. table life after the sleep or death of winter and as such, his power was extended over all human ailments, and finally to the restoration of the dead to With the exception of Hestia, there were few divine personages more life. His most celebrated widely honoured than this son of Apollo or Paieon.
-
in
many
temple was perhaps that at Epidauros and all his temples were practically large hospitals where something like the aid of Christian charity was given to the sick and afflicted by physicians, whose knowledge raised them fjr above the general run of empirics oaring the Middle Ages.
;
91
brought down upon himself the sentence which made him a bondman first of the Trojan Laomedon, and then of the
Thessahan Admetos. But Apollo is not merely Hekatos and Hekaergos,' the god whose rays reach to the furthest corners of the earth he is also the lord of song. But the Greek Apoiioand knew well that the sun must live in a world of "^^^absolute stillness without mist and without clouds, until the breath of the wind stirs the stagnant air. We might, therefore, pronounce it simply impossible that the power of song and the mastery of melody assigned to Phoebus could have originated with himself, or have been his from the first and when we turn to the Hymn to Hermes, we find
; ;
is
fully justified.
air,
hymn
is
and
is the maker of the lyre and the true power is born with him, and is in fact himself,^ and the main object of the hymn is to account for the harmony existing between Hermes and Phcebus, from whom he receives charge over the bright and radiant clouds which
float
It is
impossible to
showing the rigid conditions which the primitive mythoimposed on the poets of later generations.
yield
Hermes may
return
rival
but willing though the latter may be to grant the prayer so far as he can, he tells him that it is impossible for him
to give to the
god of the
air
of Zeus.^
in
See
It.
p. 62.
See
p. 4.
'
is
Phoebus Apollo. He is not a Latin god at all. The name of his mother Latona was only a Latinised variation of the Greek Leto. The true Latin
god of
light
is
Vesta.
92
Amphikty-
its meetings and the answers given by the Delphian priestess are said to have changed more than once the current of Greek history. We have seen in Phoebus the destroyer of the serpent, But the myths related of or worm, or dragon at Pytho. different lamos and the ^im bring before us serpents of a very laraidai. kind, the serpents who bestow wisdom, and who are as beneficent as the others are deadly.' These serpents appear in the story of lamos, a son of Phoebus and Evadne, born on the banks of the Alpheios. On his birth, Evadne,
^^^^
child
away, and Phoebus sent two serpents, who guarded the Aipytos, after a long and fed him with honey.
;
child soon
babe lying in a bed of violets and the showed himself possessed of a marvellous wisdom, for Phoebus, touching his ears, made him understand the voices of birds, and underneath the waters of Alpheios lamos ^ had gained a knowledge of things hidden from the minds of men. His children, the lamidai, became, it was said, the famous seers or prophets of Olympia. Like lamos, Amphiaraos, a descendant of the wise seer Malampous, was a being whose ears, being cleansed by
search, found the
Amphiaraos and Aikmaion.
Hc took part, we are told, in the Kalydonian boar hunt and the Argonautic expedition, and finally in the war at Thebes, waged by Polyneikes against
'
are the
demons of
But the word dragon, Gr. Spcifaiv, denotes simply any keen-sighted thing, as the word Dorkas or Zorkas, belonging to the same group, denoted a It may be noted that the names of many of the mythical lawgivers gazelle. have a similar meaning. The Athenian Drakon, Draco, is merely one who sees ; the Spartan Lykourgos is the light-bringer, and the Lokrian Zaleukos is the gleaming and dazzling one. 2 The name lamos seems to belong to the group of words which includes lole, lason, lasion, lokaste, Ion, lolaos, and others, pointing to the violet
darkness.
tints of
morning.
SECONDARIES.
his brother Eteokles.
93
Amphiaraos wished but his wife, Eriphyle, bribed by to have nothing to do the necklace which Cadmus gave to Harmonia, betrayed her husband's lurking-place. When, in the fight which followed the death of the two sons of QEdipus, Amphiaraos
this strife
;
With
who caused
But he had taken care to leave with his son Alkmaion commands Eriphyle was accordenjoining him to avenge his death. ingly killed by Alkmaion, who, after long wanderings,
found rest in the islands at the mouth of the river Acheloos. Alkmaion was afterwards the leader of the Epigonoi (the sons of the chiefs who had fought in the war of Eteokles and Polyneikes) in that attack upon Thebes which ended
in the destruction of the city.
Of myths which describe the perpetually varying phenomena exhibited by the course of the sun throughout the
year, there
,
.
is,
in truth,
an inexhaustible wealth,
, ,
xxxi.
Even we can speak of the angry or the threaten- Pkaethon. Class of ,, ,, mg, the kmdiy or deadly, the young, the strong, Secondaries. or the tired sun and if we can do so in spite of scientific
, ;
knowledge, which tells us that these impressions do not correspond to or represent the facts, we can well understand the exuberant energy with which the human imagination would work on these phenomena, when such science as the primitive Aryans possessed was itself founded upon these impressions of their senses. The sun to them might be a deceiver of those whom he loves, a fugitive from the bride v;hom he deserts, or the destroyer of his parents. He might be the wanderer or the bondman, he might be wise or he might be mad, or in times of raging drought he might have sufi"ered some one to take his place who was incapable of controlling his fiery steeds. This last idea is fully drawn out in the story of Phaethon, who becomes in it a being distinct from Helios, although his name, like Phanaios,^ was
'
From
the
<|)oiV
94
originally nothing
more than an epithet of the sun-god. But the same process which made Helios a son of Hyperion, though, as we have seen, he was Hyperion himself, made him also the father of Phaethon. In the Iliad we have both Helios Phaethon and Helios Hyperion but elsewhere Phaethon is a son of Helios and Klymene, and the word which had now come to denote a distinct personality served
;
some of the phenomena of the year. The hypothesis of madness was brought in to explain the slaughter of Eunomos the son of CEneus by Herakles
to account for
but
it
was
and flowers which his genial warmth must be because an unskilled hand was holding the reins of his chariot. So the story grew up that in an evil hour Phaethon asked his father to let him drive
scorched up the
life, it
his
horses
Helios,
much
against
his
will, suffered
him
little
plunged down towards the earth, and the ground, with all its fruits and streams and rivers, was parched and dried up. Seeing that unless his course was stayed all living things must soon die, Zeus smote Phaethon with his thunderbolts, and the daughters of Hesperos, the evening star, built his tomb on the seashore where he fell. But as a distinct person and not as a mere epithet, Phaethon is simply a reflexion of his father. He has some of his brightness, but he lacks his power and his wisdom. In this respect he answers precisely to
their driver's weakness,
Patroklos,
who
in
the Iliad
is
armour of Achilles and placed in his chariot, which is drawn by the immortal horses Xanthos and Balios (the golden and speckled), the same steeds, indeed, which were
harnessed to the car of Helios.
Patroklos, like Phaethon,
receives directions which he neglects to obey, and, like
Phaethon, he
to his father
is
slain.
is
what Patroklos
to Achilles, or
Phaethon to
SECONDARIES.
Helios.
aries.
95
With
known
as Second-
The image of the tired sun, sinking to sleep in the west and facing the rising moon, is embodied in the myth of Endymion and Endymion, which, as we have seen,^ can scarcely ' Narkisso< be said to have passed beyond its primary stage. (Narcis:.u.s). The story was localised in Elis merely because Elis was the most westerly region of the Peloponnesos, just as Kephalos is said to sink into the sea from the cliffs of Leukas, the most westerly point of northern Hellas. But although there were slight variations of detail, none were apparently of any importance. By some he is said to be the father of fifty daughters by Asterodia, the moon, whose pathway lies among the stars, and who thus answers to the Teutonic Ursula with her band of virgin followers others gave him Neis and Iphianassa as his wives, or made him
...
The simplest
form of the myth is that of Apollodoros,^ who merely says that when Zeus offered him anything that he might desire, he chose an everlasting sleep in which he might remain
youthful for ever.^
The same
idea
is is
embodied
in
the
who
described as the
by the nymph
Echo, who, failing to win his love, died of grief. As a punishment, Nemesis'* made Narkissos fall in love with his own image reflected in the waters, and the youth in his turn pined away from unsatisfied longing. On the spot
where he died the flower sprang up which is called by his name. Later versions said that he was himself turned into a narcissus, as they also said that Daphne was changed into This story the geographer Pausanias rejects on a laurel. account of the absurdity of the notion that Narkissos was unable to distinguish between a man and his shadow, or
> - I. 7. See p. 9. S. ^ We have here a contrast to the bhmder of Eos, who asks immortality for Tithonos without adding the condition of youth. ^ See p. 60.
96
known
own twin
sister,
and that on her death he found a melancholy comfort in noting the likeness of his own face and countenance to those of his lost love. But in truth, as in the myth of Endymion, we have here hardly crossed beyond the borders
of mythology.
sleep
As Endymion
name
face
his
own
still
gazing
on
it.
Like Selene and Endymion, Hesperos is a being without a mythical history. Pie was so clearly the evening star, Hesperos. that there was nothing to say of him except that
he was the father of the Hesperides, whose beautiful gardens are in an island which no earthly ship ever approaches, and where the ambrosial stream always flows by the couch of and so the Zeus. It is the land of the evening twilight myth goes on to tell us that this enchanted region is hard by the land of the Gorgons, and near the bounds of that everlasting darkness which is the abode of Ahi and the Panis, of Vitra and Echidna.
;
The myth
He
Ixion.
is
ment answering
as
By some
is
he
is
called
but he
himself Phlegyas,
much
as Helios
is
As
of Hesioneus, to
He is said to have married Dia,^ the daughter whom he promised rich gifts, which after he refused to send. To show his sense of the
See
p. 7.
name belonging
to the
Tyr, &c.
IXION.
97
gleaming chariot of Ixion, who thereon bade him come and take the gifts if he wished to have them. Hesioneus went accordingly and when he insisted on seeing the treasurehouse in which the gifts were stored, Ixion opened the door, and Hesioneus fell into a pit full of fire.' This crime was followed by a time of drought and wretchedness, until Zeus purified Ixion from his guilt. But Ixion is hurried on from one offence to another by the necessity which suggested to a Greek the idea of a moral destiny.^ He now offers his love to Here, the queen of heaven, and to meet this new danger Zeus made a cloud assume the likeness of his wife, and thus deceived Ixion, who became the father of the Kentaurs (Centaurs).^ To punish him still further, he bound him to a four-spoked wheel, which bears him round This wheel of the sun is mentioned in for ever and ever.^ many of the Vedic hymns, which speak of the battle waged by Dyaus, the heaven, to snatch it from the grasp of night. His wife Dia is one of the company of dawn-maidens, for all of whom there is the early lover and the speedy parting in a drama which is perpetually presenting itself in new In Hesioneus we have the counterpart of Laios,'' aspects. the darkness from which the light springs, and which is utterly unable to withstand the blinding splendour of the treasure-house in which Ixion kept his much-coveted gifts.
;
But forsaking Dia, Ixion loves Here, because the sun, as it in the heavens, may be said to woo the blue sky, which was specially her abode. At this point of the myth Ixion is said to be sojourning in the house of Zeus, and this sojourn is the long pause which the sun seems to make
rises
- See p. 61. iv., 69. certainly cannot be explained by referring it to any word, or to any word belonging Greek to the western Aryan dialects. But in the Rig Veda we have a class of beings called Gandharvas, who are manifestly the bright sunlit clouds, probably cumuli with their heads illuminatedi
'
See Diod.
'
tical.
while the other parts are in shade. M. Breal, in his analysis of the myth of CEdipus, has no doubt that the two names Kentaur and Gandharva are idenSee Myth. Ar. Nat. ii. 35, note 3. * See * Tales of AiicieiU Greece, p. 52 ; Pind. Fyth. 2. p. 14. 74.
9B
in
The phantom which Here is the beautiful cloud which reposes on the deep blue sky, and the Kentaurs or Gandharvas are its children, the vapours which expand from the
cheats
him
in the guise of
and float across the heaven. The fourspoked wheel, which Zeus had snatched from the powers of darkness in the morning, becomes the instrument of torture to which Ixion is bound at noontide, the fiery cross which is seen in the sky by those who look on the noonday sun.* There seems to be good reason for thinking that the name itself bears out the meaning of the story, if it be only another form of the Sanskrit word Akshanah, denoting one who is bound to a wheel. The word Ixion would thus be akin to the Greek axon, the Latin axis, and the English
solitary cloud
axle.
The
Tamaios.
gems and
where Niobe wept herself to stone. He was as widely known for his wisdom and power as his wife Euryanassa, whose name corresponds with a crowd of names for the morning or the dawn,'^ was for her beauty. Indeed, Tantalos was admitted to share the secret counsels of Zeus, and thus gained a knowledge beyond the reach of mortals. In short, he is pre-eminently Sisyphos,^ the wise man and the idea of transgression and punishment is brought into his story as it is into that of Sisyphos. In course of time he stole some of the food and drink of the gods, and gave them to his people; and he also refused to give up the dog Pandareos, which had guarded Zeus as an infant in the cave of Dikte. Finally, when Zeus and all the gods came down to feast in his banquet hall, he cut up his own child Pelops, and placed his roasted limbs before them as a repast.
;
This wheel reappears in the Gaelic stoi-y of the Widow and her Daughters, Campbell, ii. 165, and in Grimm's German tales of the Iron Stove and the Nix of the Mill-p .nd. Myth. An Aat. ii. 302. 3 See See p. 14. p. 7.
'
'^
TANTALOS.
Pelops was restored to
life
c^g
by Zeus, who doomed Tantalos to gaze on beautiful fruits which he might not touch, and on clear waters which he might not taste. If he bowed his head to drink, the waters fled away if he put forth his hand to pluck the fruit, the branches which bore them vanished, and a huge rock appearing above his head threatened to crush him to powder. This myth is one of the most transparent in the whole range of Greek mythology. The palace of Tantalos is
;
sj^Hes of
'^"'"sht.
Tantalos,' in
His frequent converse with Zeus represents the His theft of nectar and ambrosia answers to the theft of fire by Prometheus, for the benefit of mortal men and the wealth which he bestows on his people is the wealth which the warmth of the sun draws forth from the earth. But as the sun, when the heat becomes too great, burns up these fruits, so, when such drought came, men said, Tantalos is slaying and roasting
possesses.
'
his
own
child.'
The
restoration of Pelops to
life is
the
power which restores freshness to the earth after drought, and which is wielded specially by Asklepios, the healer. The sentence passed on Tantalos agrees closely with the same idea. His stooping to drink the water which shuns his approach, and to eat the fruits which elude his grasp, points to the drying up of streams and the withering of herbage by the fierce rays of the sun. The rock which threatens to crush him is the dark storm cloud which rises, beetling like a crag abo\'e the sun into the highest heaven, or broods like the Sphinx over the mountain summit. As the earth is the more scorched in proaction of that mighty
portion as the sun
may be
down
all
to
it,
be tantalised'
applied to
dis-
* His name is a reduplication of the syllable which appears in the words Atlas and Atalanta. It denotes the ideas of strength and endurance.
loo
But the palace of Tantalos is seen again in the rosegardens of the Phrygian King Midas, whose wisdom is ^"^^^ ^o come from Seilenos. Being told by the The gardens of Midas. latter that he shall have anything for which he may express a wish, Midas asks that everything which he
touches
may be turned into gold. The phrase may almost from the first have had the double meaning which is The connexion of gold expressed by it in later times. and wealth is close enough, and early rising is a condition
for acquiring
it.
couplet
is,
:
however,
Morgen-
much
X^
is
supposed to confer on man. But the granting of the wish of Midas would not add to his happiness, if he be regarded as a being of human form with human appetites and accordingly he finds to his dismay that it is as impossible for him to swallow his food as the dishes on which it is laid. To his prayer for deliverance, the answer is that he must go and wash in the stream of Paktolos, which has ever since This is but one of the almost countretained a golden hue. less forms of the myth as given in popular stories, which speak of the quenching of the sun's light on his coming His ass's ears are accounted for into contact with water.' as a punishment for adjudging the prize to Marsyas in his The deformity now becomes a contest with Phoebus. mysterious secret but his servant discovers it, and being unable to keep it to himself, digs a hole and whispers into reed growing 'up on the it that Midas has ass's ears. spot repeats the words and the rushes all round take up In all likelithe strain and publish the fact to the world. hood the Eastern version of the myth described his pos; ;
>
See
p. 79.
HERAKLES.
session of ass's
ears as the
lor
symbol of
his
wisdom, and
of Sisyphos exhibits the sun as an unwilling under a penal sentence. Apart from the notion of punishment, the idea of enforced labour is that xxxii. which underlies and runs through the whole Herakies.
toiler
The legend
conspicuous, of
all
the
He
is
some
in
we
Here
On hearing this, Here, urged on by Ate, the spirit of mischief, caused Eurystheus to be born before Herakles, who was thus doomed to be
should be the mightiest of men.
kinsman. So wroth, it is said, was Zeus when Here told him that Eurystheus must according to his oath be king of Argos, that he seized Ate by the
the servant of his
hair of her head, and, swearing that she should never again darken the courts of heaven, hurled her from Olympos. The whole life of Herakles thus became a long servitude to a master meaner and weaker than himself, and one continued self-sacrifice for the good of others, his most marked characteristic being an irresistible bodily strength, which is always used to help the weak and suffering, and for the destruction of all noxious things. The great harvest of myths which has sprung up round his name may be traced to the old phrases which had spoken of the glorious sun as toiling for so poor and weak a creature as man as born to a life of toil as entering on his weary tasks after a brief but happy infancy, and as sinking finally to his rest after a fierce battle with the storm clouds which had sought to hinder his journey.
; ;
'
Brown,
G)-cat Dio7tysiah
Mvth.
is
vol.
i.
p. 65.
is,
The
first
part of his
name
therefore,
102
may
in his cradle
but the
The
toils
known
labours of Herakies.
^ssigncd
jjj^^
periods of his
life.
In the
is
^^^
Odyssey,
however,
no attempt
made
The
stories of his
tell us that as he lay sleeping in his cradle, two snakes coiled themselves around him, and that the child on waking placed his hands round their necks, and gradually tightened his grasp until they fell dead upon the ground. These snakes are the serpents of the night, on which the sun may be said to lay his hands as he rises, and which he
infancy
Exposed by
picked up by
plain,
he
is
the
dawn goddess Athene, who beseeches Here, the queen it. The child bites hard, and Here flings it back to Athene, who carries him to his m.other. The boy grows up in the perfection of human
of the blue heaven, to suckle
strength
His teachers are Autolykos and Kastor the twin brother of Polydeukes (Pollux), and the Avise Centaur Cheiron, who is also the teacher of Asklepios, lamos, and other heroes. Thus far we have a time answering to that in which Phoebus is tended by the nymphs in his infancy, when his We The apologue ^^^c is unsoilcd and his raiment all white. of Prodikos. ^^j^ readily understand that the myth may at this point be made to assume the moral aspect of self-denial. The smooth road of indulgence is the easiest for men to But he who travel on, or it may seem to be so at first. takes the rugged path of duty must do so from deliberate choice and thus Herakies, going forth to his long series of labours, suggests to the sophist Prodikos the beautiful apologue in which Arete and Kakia, virtue and vice, each claim his obedience. The one promises endless pleasures
and power.
''
The
is
HERAKLES.
here and hereafter
;
105
the other holds out the prospect of hard days followed by healthful slumbers, and warns him that nothing good was ever won without labour, nothing great ever done without toil. The mind of Herakles is made up at once and the greatest of all mythical heroes is thus made to enforce the highest lessons of human duty, and to pre;
human
action.
With
this
great career.
lion of
high heroic temper Herakles set forth on his His great fight is with the lion of Kithairon
(Cithseron), from
Theweapons
of
he
is
is
Nemea) he obtains the skin with which ^^^rakies. commonly represented. In many of the tales which
of constant wanderings in which the
are told of his later career the idea of lofty moral purpose
lost in the notion
any enjoyments of the is guarded by invulnerable armour. The coat of mail is brought to him by Athene, as the armour of Achilles is brought to him by Thetis, and that of Sigurd in the Teutonic epic by his mother Hjordis. His bow and arrows he receives from Phoebus, the lord of the spear-like sunbeams and from Hermes he obtains his sword, whose stroke may split the forest trees. The arrows, it must be especially noted, are poisoned and these poisoned barbs are used by Philoktetes, who receives them from Neoptolemos, the son of Achilles, and also by Odysseus. But we have no historical evidence that poisoned arrows were used by any Hellenic tribes, or that they would not have regarded the employment of such weapons with horror. How then comes it to pass that the Iliad and Odyssey can attribute to any Achaian heroes practices from which their kinsmen would, so far as we
toil-worn hero gives himself to
The can form a judgment, have shrunk with disgust mystery is easily solved. The equivocation which turned
.^
the violet-tinted rays of morning into spears was inevitable the change of the spears or arrows into poisoned barbs
104
and Ion, which furnished a name for the violet hue, for a spear, and for poison, being really homonyms, traceable to two or three roots. Nor are these the only derivatives from His these roots which occur in the myths of Herakles.
stoutest ally
is
his
earliest
daughter of Eurytos, from whom, like Apollo from Daphne, he is parted in the spring-time of life, to see her again once more just when his career is ended. As the conquest of the lion of Kithairon is the first great exploit, so, according to the later mythographers, who Herakles and took delight \Vl classifying his labours, the bring(c.rb.rus). ing up of the dog Kerberos (Cerberus) from Hades is the last. This story is mentioned in the Odyssey, in which Herakles tells Odysseus that his sufferings are but a reflexion of the toils which he had himself undergone through the tyranny of the mean Eurystheus, and that this task of bringing up the hound of Hades had been achieved by the aid of Athene and Hermes, the dawn and the breeze of the morning.2 The dog of Yama,^ the Indian Hades, thus brought back is, of couise, carried down again by Herakles to the lowest world.
love
is
lole, the
But the sun, as he rises in the heavens, acquires a fiercer power and hence Apollon becomes Chrysaor, and Herakles Thc raging heat burns up the Herakles and bccomcs Uiad. L.omedon. fj.yjj.g ^f ^j^^ ^^^.^j^ whlch thc gcuial warmth had fostered and so, in accordance with the idea which underlies the myths of Tantalos and Phaethon, Herakles slays his own children by Megara, and two also of the sons of Iphikles. On Laomedon, King of Ilion, who had refused to pay the promised recompense to Poseidon and Phoebus for building the walls of his city,' and then cheated Herakles by giving him mortal horses in the place of the deathless steeds for which he had covenanted, the hero takes ven;
Iphikles is the twin brother of Herakles. He belongs thus to the class of Secondaries, or correlative deities. See p. 93. - Odyssey, ii. Seep. 623. 83.
'
HERAKLES.
geance
in the first
105
Trojan war mentioned in the Ih'ad, which relates how, coming with six ships and a few men, he
shattered
its
towns, and
desolate.
Of
number
would be rash to venture on an interpretation. The vast mass of Herakies and i^'=^""''atradition which has gathered round his name contains probably a certain amount of Semitic material, and some of the myths seem to reflect the feeling expressed in such legends as those of Pentheus and of Orpheus.
The Nemean
lion
is
Another child of the same horrid parents is the Lernaian Hydra, a monster who, like Ahi, Vritra, the Sphinx, or the dragons of Pytho and Thebes, shuts up the waters and causes drought. The stag of Keryneia is, according to some versions, slain, in others only seized by Herakles, who bears it with its golden antlers and brazen feet to Artemis and Phoebus. The story of the Erymanthian boar is in some accounts transferred from Argos to Thessaly or Phrygia the monster itself, which Herakles chases through the deep snow, being closely akin to the Chimera slain by
;
Bellerophon.
lets loose
In the myth of the stables of Augeias, Herakles appears simply to play the part of Indra when he
the imprisoned waters and sweeps away the filth accumulated on the land. The myth of the Cretan bull brings before us a dark and malignant monster driven mad by Poseidon but Crete lay within the circle of Phenician influence, and the bull may be the savage and devouring Moloch of Semitic theology. Although Herakles carries this monster home on his back, he is obliged to let it go again and it reappears as the bull which ravages the fields of Marathon, till it is slain by the hands of Theseus, who is also the slayer of the Minotauros. In the noisome birds which take refuge in the Stymphalian lake because
;
; >
The Greek form of the Vedic Vritra. The representative of the Vedic Ahi.
See See
p. 32.
p. 34.
ic6
they are afraid of the wolves, we have perhaps a picture of the dark storm clouds dreading the rays of the sun,' which can only appear when they themselves have been defeated. The fertilising rain clouds appear yet again as the cattle stolen by Geryon, and recovered by Herakles in the story of Cacus. The legend of the golden apples guarded by
the Hesperides
is
word, Mela, denoting in Greek both apples and sheep. The bondage of Apollo connects the story of Herakles
happy husband of Alkestis, the most beauti^^ ^^^ t^^ most lovlng of wivcs, and the lord of a house enriched by the labours of Phoebus, who has brought him health and wealth and all good things. One thing alone is wanting, and this even Apollo cannot grant to him. On the day of his marriage Admetos has made Artemis angry by neglecting her in a sacrifice. The goddess, however, promised that when the hour of his death came, he should escape his doom, if his father, mother, or wife should die for him. Alkestis agreed to do so and it was her life Thus in that he could not win even from Phoebus himself. the very prime of her beauty she is summoned by Thanatos,
'^^
;
home and
;
children,
and
to cross with
and although Phoebus intercedes for a short respite, the gloomy being whose debtor she is lays his icy kands upon her, and will not let her go
until the
by main
disaster
'
to her husband.
is
word furnished a name for wolves, \vkqi, and for the The growth of a myth converting the rays into wolves, would rays of the sun. connexion of these ideas is prominent in the story of The inevitable. thus be Lykaon, see p. 42. The comparison of the Myrmidons of Achilles to wolves
The same
root or
is
See p. 42. especially striking. 2 shall see, later on, that a similar equivocation turned the seven stars into seven sages or seven bears.
We
HERAKLES.
when Admetos
enters his bridal
J07 his
on the bed a knot of twisted snakes. But akhough Alkestis may die, Death cannot hold her in his keeping and the story thus resolves itself into the simple phrases which said that the dawn or twilight, which is the bride of the sun, must die, if she is to live again and
marriage, he sees
;
all
The
some
b
Thus
in
HeraU'es
journey to the land of the Hesperides, he is b"'^^setormented by the heat of the sun,' and shoots his arrows at Helios, who, admiring his bravery, gives him his golden
sea.
It
is
a time of
many
from Avhich he is told that he can be loosed he consents to serve for a time as a bondman. He is now sold to Omphale, and assumes a half-feminine guise. But even with this story of subjection a vast number of
only
if
among
donian boar.
He
and refusing to accept the pardon which is freely offered to him, he departs into exile with his wife. At the ford of a river he entrusts her to the charge of the Kentaur (Centaur) Nessos, who acted as ferryman,
;
boy Eunomos
' A curious but In reference to such incidents as these, Mr. Paley says well-known characteristic of solar myths is the identification of the sun both with the agent or patient, and with the thing or object on or by which the act Hercules is is exercised. Ixion is the sun, and so is Ixion's wheel. the sun, who expires in flame on the summit of Mount OEta but the fiery Now this, so far from robe which scorched him to death is the sun-cloud. It is the unconscious being an objection to the theory, goes far to confirm it. blending of two modes of representation the sun as a person, and the sun as a thing. To construct a story, there must be both agents and subject-matter for action and both, from different points of view, may be the same.' ('On the Origin of Solar Myths,' Dublin Revieiv, July 1S79, p. 109.)
:
'
io8
and who,
fatally
is
wounded by
In his last
bids
When
The deaih
Herakks.
of
at
was come,
tumiug
|-,y^
whom
Remembering
the words
from Trachis. The hero is about to offer sacrifice to the Kenaian Zeus, and he wishes to offer it up in peace, clad in a seemly robe of pure white, with lole standing by his side. But so it is not to be. Scarcely has he put on the robe, when the poison begins to course through his veins and to Once more rack every limb with agony unspeakable. the suffering hero is lashed into madness, and seizing the Borne at last to luckless Lichas, he hurls him into the sea. the heights of CEta, he gathers wood, and charges those who are round him to set the pile on fire, when he shall have Only the shepherd Poias venlaid himself down upon it. but when the flame is kindled tures to do the hero's will the thunder crashes through the heaven, and a cloud comes down which bears him away to Olympos, there to dwell in everlasting youth with the radiant Hebe^ as his bride. It is the last incident in what has been called the Tragedy of Nature the battle of the sun with the clouds, which gather round him like mortal enemies at his setting. As he sinks, the fiery mists embrace him, and the purple vapours rush across the sky, like streams of blood gushing from the hero's body, while the violet-coloured evening clouds seem to cheer him in his dying agony. There is, however, a comae as well as a tragic side to
;
'
See
p. 65.
HERAKLES.
the career of Herakles.
109
of as one
who
toils for
us
but he
is
may
also be said to
enjoy in
every land
Hence
^erakies.
in
many
stories
Herakles
;
The comic
and drinking
house of
Admetos he
'
he
why he
The same
(death), in
his grasp.
is
said,
on the surrender of
his sons.
Hyllos,
away with
and after wandering to many found a refuge in Athens. This was only saying 'onunes. in other words that on the death of the sun the golden hues of evening are soon banished from the sky, but that after many weary hours they are seen again in the country of the Dawn,^ as indeed they could be seen nowhere else. Eurystheus now marches with his hosts against Athens but the
;
Athenians are led on by Theseus, by lolaos, and by the banished Hyllos. Eurystheus is slain, and Hyllos can-ies his head to Alkmene. After his death the Herakleids return to the Peloponnesos, but after a year they are driven out again, and are forced to retreat once more to Athens. Their next return ends in the slaughter of Hyllos by Echemos, and the children of Herakles are bound by a compact to forego all attempts at return for fifty or a hundred years. At the end of this time preparations for regaining their old home are made on a scale almost equal to that of the armaments which were to assail and destroy I lion. The narrative which follows resembles in many of its most important incidents the story of the Trojan expedition, and the result is a success not less complete. The Herakleids share the Peloponnesos between them Argos
'
See
p. 89.
no
falling to the lot of Temenos, Sparta to the sons of Aristodemos, and Messene to Kresphontes. Of the Latin god Hercules it may be enough to sayhere that Livy tells of him a story in which, undoubtedly,
Herakiesand
Hercules.
^6 has
all
Hellenic
Hcrakles.
But
it
is
Latin Herculus or Hercules answers strictly to the Greek Zeus Herkeios, and is in short Jupiter Terminus, or the god
of inclosures and boundaries.
With
must
Niebuhr
into
at the first
have been
some god
whose place
his
phonetic resemblance between it and that of the Greek The introduction of the name is, therefore, Heracles.
simply a result of that wholesale system of borrowing which extended practically to the great mass of Greek mythology but the story of Hercules and Cacus is nevertheless a Latin myth, and we shall see its importance when we deal with the traditional legends of drought and dark;
ness.
The myths relating the fortunes of the Herakleids show how easily myths might be made to go round in cycles, ^^^ children of the sun-god are expelled from xxxiii Perseus. \\\q\x home in the west only to reappear in the dawn city of the east, from which they repeat their efforts to
us
tition
gain possession of their western inheritance. But the repeseems never to have left the impression of sameDifferences of names and of local colouring invariably ness.
sufficed to maintain the conviction that legends substantially
but we might be identical were wholly independent tempted to suppose that the faith of the Argives must have been sorely strained when they were called upon to believe that the myth of Herakles was not a reflexion of The measure the career of his mythical ancestor Perseus. of correspondence between the two may perhaps be best
;
seen by taking the story of the latter after that of his more
PERSEUS.
conspicuous descendant.
Ill
But we are justified on other grounds in reversing the Argive order, Herakles is sprung from Perseus only in the mythology of Argos and the names which occur in both the myths furnish conclusive evidence that we have in them a history of phenomena connected with the sun in its daily course, and in the revolution of the seasons. In either case we have a hero whose
;
life, beginning in disaster, is a long series of labours undertaken at the behest of one who is in every way his inferior, and who comes triumphantly out of- his fearful ordeals because he is armed with the invincible weapons of the dawn, the sun, and the winds. Like Q^dipus, Romulus, and a host of others, Perseus is one of the fatal children.^ Akrisios, the King of Argos, was accordingly warned by the Delphian oracle perseusand that if his daughter Danae had a son, he would ^'^'ydektes. be slain by that child. So he shut her up in a dungeon but Zeus entered it in the form of a golden shower, and Danae became the mother of Perseus. Akrisios thereon placed Danae and her babe in a chest, which the waves of
and strength.
Like all other Perseus grows up with marvellous beauty His gleaming eyes and golden hair made
;
him like Phoebus, the lord of Hght but the doom which was on him was as heavy as that of Herakles, and his
troubles began through the sufferings of his mother,
who
On
come
out until Perseus brought back the head of Medusa, the youngest of the three Gorgon sisters, the daughters of
See
p.
14.
Dik-
word Polydektes
is
112
her immortal
where the sun never shone, and where no hving thing was ever to be seen. Yearning for human love and sympathy,
she visited her kinsfolk the Graiai
;
no
So when Athene came from the Libyan land, Medusa besought her aid. But Athene refused it, saying
help.
that
shrink from the dark countenance of the and when Medusa answered that in the light of the sun her face might be as fair as that of Athene herself,
men would
;
Gorgon
all
mortal
her
hair
was turned
Argive
^oil,
mirror in which he might see the face of Medusa and thus know where to strike, for upon Medusa When he awoke he herself he could not gaze and live. saw the mirror by his side, and knew that it was not a dream. So with a good hope he journeyed westwards, and on the following night he saw in his sleep Hermes, the messenger of the gods, who gave him the sword which slays all mortal things on which it may fall, and bade him
reflected,
When
he awoke he took up the sword, and went to the land of the Graiai, where Atlas bears up the pillars of the high heaven. There, in a cave, he found the three sisters, who had but one eye between them, which they passed from one This eye Perseus seized, and thus compelled to the other. them to guide him to the dwelling of Medusa. By their advice he went to the banks of the Ocean stream which flows round all the earth, and there the nymphs gave him
^ *
See
p. 99.
PERSEUS.
the helmet of Hades,' which enables the wearer to
113
move
unseen, and a bag into which he was to put Medusa's head, and the golden sandals of Hermes, which should bear him more swiftly than a dream from the pursuit of the Gorgon sisters. Thus armed, Perseus drew nigh to the dwelling of the Gorgons, and then, while the three sisters slept, the unerring sword fell, and the woeful life of Medusa was ended. On waking the two sisters saw the headless body, and rushed in mad chase after Perseus but with the cap of Hades he went unseen, and the golden sandals bore him
;
like a bird through the air. Onwards he went, until he heard a voice asking him whether he had brought with him the
head of Medusa. It was the voice of the old man Atlas, who bore up the pillars of heaven on his shoulders, and who longed to be released from his fearful labour. On his entreaty Perseus showed him the Gorgon's face, and his rugged limbs soon grew stiff as ridges on a hill side, and his streaming hair looked like the snow which covers a mountain summit. Thence Perseus rose into the land of the Hyperboreans, who know neither day nor night, nor
storm, nor sickness nor death, but live joyously
beautiful gardens
among
In spite
fade.
all its bliss, he could not tarry here long. He remembered his mother in her prison-house at Seriphos, and once more, on his winged sandals, he flew to the Libyan shore, where he saw a fair damsel chained on a rock, while a great
of
dragon approached to devour her. But before he could seize his prey, the unerring sword smote him and, taking
;
Andromeda. In a little while there was a marriage feast, where the maiden sat as his bride. But among the guests was Phineus, who
off his cap, Perseus stood revealed before
II. 5. 845. The Teutonic tamkappe. The powers of this led to the notion which explained the name Hades from the This explanation might suit the form "Ai's, "AiSos but it is not easy to apply it to Hades, for which probably there is no Greek comparison. The name may perhaps be connected with that of Hodr, the slayer of the Teutonic sun-god Baldur.
"AiSos
Kwh,
cap
may have
invisible world.
MYTHOLOGY AND FOLKLORE.
to
114
had wished
this
man
reviled
There remained no more enemies to trouble him, and Kepheus, the father of Andromeda, would gladly have kept '^^^ ^ero with him but the work of Perseus was Perseus and Aknsios. j^Qj. (^Qj^g \m\}\ he had freed his mother from her prison. He must, therefore, hasten back to Seriphos, where Danae was brought forth from her dungeon, and the glance of the Gorgon's face turned Polydektes and his abettors into stone. Thus his task was at length accomplished. The gifts of the gods were no longer needed, and so Perseus gave back to Hermes the helmet of Hades and the sword and sandals, and Athene took the Gorgon's head and placed it upon her yEgis.^ On this follows the return of the hero with his mother to Argos, whence Akrisios, remembering the warning of the Delphian god, had fled in great fear to Larissa, where he was received by the chieftain Teutamidas. Thither also came Perseus, to take part in the great games to be held on the plain before the city. In these games Perseus was, throughout, the conqueror but while he was throwing quoits, one turned aside and killed Akrisios. The sequel is given in two versions. In the cne Perseus returns to Argos, and dies in peace in the other, grief and shame for the death of Akrisios drive him to abandon his Argive sovereignty for that of the huge-walled Tiryns, where his kinsman Megapenthes is king. Thus, as
;
the unwilling destroyer even of those whom he loves, as the conqueror of monstrous beasts and serpents, as toiling for
' By the Greeks the /Egis was regarded as a buckler or shield covered with the skin of a goat, alf^, o^^yis, or a mantle of the same material, borne by the virgin-goddess Athene. But the Iliad speaks also of Zeus Aigiochos, who was first the btorm-bringer (the idea of tempest being expressed in the word Kardi'l, Karoo is) and then the ^Egis-bearer. The Homeric poet, M. Breal remarks, ' semble se souvenir de la premiere signification, quand il nous montre, au seul mouvement du bouclier, le tonnerre qui eclat, I'lda qui se couvre de nuages, et les hommcs frappes de terreur. Hcrciile ct Cecils, ^. 1 16. Compare also the yligis-hialm of northern myths, p. 49.
'
PERSEUS,
a mean and cruel master, yet as
father
It
115
coming
forth in the
end
much
in
explanation
of this legend.
we have
^^'^'''"
of
all
The
comes
to
name Polydektes
is
who
greedily seizes
all
that
To
who
necessarily
Hades
we have probably
in its beauty,
an image of the
solemn
it
but
doomed
to die
when
the sun
rises.
Her immortal
sisters
The journey
journey of Herakles to the land of the Hesperides. The Graiai represent the twilight or gloaming, the region of
doubtful shadows and
is
only
by the spear of
Indra.
have to mark, follows immediately on the slaughter of the monster who threatens her life and we have already had
evidence enough to show that these incidents are common to a large number of legends of all the Aryan
The weapons with which Perseus is armed have come before us in Vedic and other traditions and Perseus, so armed, is pre-eminently, as his name seems
nations.
already
and noxious
things.
He
^
is
who
is
of
phontes
is
eyes.
Gr.
(pivui, (p6i'os,
I
ii6
is forced on us that the story of Perseus only one of that large class of traditions in which one and the same person reappears under different names, and with
The
is
some modification of his surroundings, and that the idea of this person has grown out of phrases which described
originally the course of the sun in
its
The myth
XXXIV.
even
He is the son of Aigeus (^geus), the Athenian king (or, as some said, of Poseidon), and of ^Ethra, the pure air. But Aigeus himself is only Poseidon under a name denoting the dash of the waves on the shore. The tale which makes him the son of Poseidon goes on to say that during his childhood his father gave him the three wishes which appear again and again in Teutonic popular stories, and sometimes in a ludicrous form.^ The favour of the sea deities to Theseus is also shown in the anecdote told by the geographer Pausanias, that when the Cretan king Minos cast doubts on his being a son of the sea-god, and bade him, if he were such, to bring up a ring thrown into the sea, Theseus dived, and reappeared not only with the ring, but with a golden crown which Aphrodite herself had placed upon his head. His youth was passed at Troizen, where he was to remain until he should be able to lift a great stone, under which his These have, father had placed his sword and sandals. of course, marvellous powers, and they are, in fact, the sandals of Hermes and the sword of Apollo Chrysaor, The very mode in which he has to win them is repeated in many stories, as in the tale of Herakles and Echidna, in the English legend of King Arthur,^ and in the tradition which first took shape in the story of the Volsungs, and afterwards grew up into the Lay of the Nibelungs (or children
of the mist).
'
In this
myth Odin,
or
Woden,
driving to
its
Myth. Ar. Nat. ii. 62. Popular Romances of the Middle Ages, p
2.
THESEUS.
hilt in
1^7
it
man who should be able to draw it out. It is drawn out by Sigmund, and when afterwards broken it is forged afresh for Sigurd by Regin, the smith, who answers to the Hellenic Hephaistos,' Having recovered the sword and His journey is the sandals, Theseus goes to Athens. signalised by exploits which later mythographers, who
assigned twelve labours to Herakles, regarded as six in
number.
Among them
is
who
His
soft
Theseus and
mockery of some workmen, who pause in their children. task of building to jest upon the maiden who is unseemly enough to walk about alone. It is the story of Dionysos, Achilles, and Odysseus in woman's garb but Theseus is mightier than they, and without saying a word he unspans the oxen of the builder's waggon, and hurls the vehicle as
;
pillars
He
is
in the city
which ought to be
home
but he
for the
may
Attic
soil,
death of his son Androgeos, who had been slain on the Cretan king had been the conqueror. With
and thus the men bound them for nine years to send yearly a tribute of seven youths and seven maidens as victims to feed the Minotauros. Twice
pestilence,
Sodom
* Jl/j/k. Ar. Nat. ii. 63. See p. 65, note 2. This notion seems scarcely Greek. The story is told of the men of in the Arabian myth. (S. B. Gould, Legends of Old Testament Characters, i. 200.) But generally in stories in which Poseidon is prominent, the
>
existence of Semitic influence is at least possible ; and this possibility must be always taken into account in the examination of details, which seem to be Pausan. i. non-Aryan in character. 19. I.
ii8
doomed
freight,
when Theseus
do battle with the monster. In this task he succeeds, but only through the aid of Ariadne, the
tribute children, to
daughter of Minos, as we shall find lason in the Argonautic tradition performing the bidding of Aietes (yEetes) only because he has the help of his daughter Medeia. The thread which Ariadne places in his hand leads him through
all
cunning
Daidalos
it is
orgies within
murky labyrinth, the work of the and when the monster who held his slain, she leaves her home with the man to
;
whom
is,
she has given her love. But she herself must share the
all
woes of
who
Beautiful as she
way, and in his stead comes the vine-crowned who places on her head a glittering diadem to Theseus himself fulfils shine among the everlasting stars. the doom which places him in the ranks of the Fatal Children. He forgets to hoist the white sails in token of victor}-', and Aigeus, seeing the black hue of the ship, throws himself into the sea, which after him is called the
upon
iJionysos,
Egean.
In another adventure, Theseus
is
the
enemy
of the
Amazons, mysterious beings who are slaughtered not only "^Y Thcscus, but by Hcraklcs and Bellerophon. Theseus and the Amazons. Qf thgsg Amazons, Antiope becomes the wife
^
who
Deceived by
the
lie of Phaidra, who plays the part of Potiphar's wife in the story of Joseph and of Anteia in that of Bellerophon,
Theseus lays his curse on his son, and Hippolytos is slain by a bull which Poseidon sends up from the sea. But
hold
Hippolytos, like Adonis, is a being whom death cannot in his power, and Asklepios raises him to life, as in the
goddess of the
THESEUS,
groves,
is
119
care of the
nymph
is
Egeria.
is seen almost everyone of the chiefs who sail in the divine Argo to recover the golden fleece. He joins the xheseus and princes of Etolia in the hunt of the Kalydonian P^'"'fiesboar, and he takes part in the war of the Epigonoi before Thebes. But a more noteworthy myth is that which takes him, like Orpheus, into the nether world to bring back another Eurydike in the form of the maiden Persephone. His friend Peirithoos had already aided Theseus when he took Helen from Sparta and placed her in the hands of his mother ^thra, an act requited in the myth which takes yEthra to Ilion and makes her the bondmaid of Helen. The attempt of Peirithoos ends in disaster, and Theseus himself is shut up in Hades, until Herakles comes to his rescue. The presence of the Dioskoroi, the bright Asvins or horsemen of the Vedic hymns, complicates the story. These carry away Helen and ^thra and when 'Theseus comes back from Hades he finds that Menestheus is king in Athens. He therefore sends his sons to Euboia, and hastens to Skyros, where the chief Lykomedes hurls him into the sea. But though his life thus closes in gloom, his children return at length with ^thra from Ilion, and are
where.
He
This is the Theseus who in the pages of the historian Thucydides consolidates the independent Attic Demoi, or boroughs, into one Athenian state, over which he xheseus and rules as a constitutional sovereign, confining him- com'^'on-''"'
self strictly to his constitutional functions.^
The
'^^''''''
truth
is
picture,
real
had not the Athenians, looking on Theseus as a man, gradually made out his life to have been like that of real men, by leaving out of sight the marvellous tales which were told about him. Some even said that the
>
Thuc.
ii.
15. 3.
120
doubling of his person they had no more warrant than others had for stripping the story of Theseus, the son of
^thra, of
all its
The
XXXV.
CEdipus.
story of Oidipous, a
familiar in
its Latin form, GEdipus, exhibited in the Boeotian Thebes, with sufficient differences of names and \0Q_2X colouring to insure belief in its complete
Argos and of Theseus His father Laios is said to have received from the oracle at Delphi the same warning which was given to Akrisios. The child, therefore, was exposed immediately after his birth on the side of the hill Kithairon (Cithseron) but some said that, like Dionysos and Perseus, he was placed in a chest which was cast into the sea. Like them he was rescued and taken to Corinth, where he passed as the son of Polybos and Merope. But the doom which was on CEdipus and his sire was not to be thus averted. As CEdipus was journeying from Corinth to Thebes, he met on the road an old man in a chariot, and was ordered to get out of the way. On his refusing to do so the old man struck him, and was instantly slain by CEdipus. Going on to Thebes, CEdipus found the city in great distress from drought and sickness, caused by the Sphinx, who, sitting on the brow of the hill over the town, uttered dark riddles, and who could not be overcome except by one who should expound them. Many had essayed the task, but all had failed, until CEdipus solved her enigmas. With a wild roar the Sphinx threw herself from the cliff, and the parched soil was refreshed with abundant rain. CEdipus must now receive the reward due to his prowess. It had been proclaimed that whoever should deliver the city from the Sphinx should marry the beautiful lokaste, who had been the wife of Laios. CEdipus wus thus wedded to his own mother, for he knew not who his parents were. Here probably, in
originality, the legend of Perseus at
at Athens.
CEDIPUS.
its
121
myth ended
and thus
far
it
resolves
itself into
as looming over the city from day to day, while the waters remained imprisoned in its gloomy recesses of the sun, as alone being able to understand her mysterious mutterings, and so to defeat her schemes and of his union with the mother from whom he had been parted in his infancy. In
;
;
and Phoebus
in
of Ushas.
But the Greek mind would dwell upon the moral aspects There would be the fact of the parricide and the incest, and so a further narrative would say that
of the tale.
Erinys, the revealer of secrets,' brought a plague cE^ipus and on the city for the murder of Laios that the Del- Theseus. phian oracle charged them to get rid of the guilty man and that when, after long search, it turned out that CEdipus was the murderer, lokaste slew herself in her bridal chamber, and CEdipus tore out his eyes that he might not see the misery which he had wrought. In other words, the sun has blinded and shrouded himself in vapour, clouds and darkness have closed in about him, and his gleaming orb is lost to sight. But if lokaste, the tender mother who had watched over him at his birth, is gone, the evening of his life is not without its consolation. His sons fill the city with strife and bloodshed, his daughter Ismene wavers in her affection, but there yet remains one who will never forsake him, and whose voice shall cheer him to the last. Guided by Antigone, CEdipus draws nigh to the haven of rest. His feet tread the grass-grown pathway, over his head the branches sigh in the evening breeze and when an Athenian in holy horror bids him begone from the sacred grove of the Eumenides, CEdipus replies that their sanctuary can never be violated by him. He is not merely their suppliant but their friend, and it is they who will guide him peace;
; ;
'
See
p. 59.
122
through the dark valley of the shadow of death. One prayer only he has to make, and this is that some one will bring Theseus, the Athenian king, to his side before he
fully
dies.
The wish
is
realised,
all
the
most striking of
mythical groups
the blinded
man who
dawn-
goddess Athene, and feels the gentle touch of his daughter's hand, while over him wave the branches in the grove of the Eumenides, benignant always to him, and now reflecting more than ever the loveliness of the Eastern Saranyu.
Then comes
when he encountered the Sphinx, GEdipus alone can understand. Without a murmur he makes ready to obey the summons, and with Theseus alone, the son of Sea and Air, by his side, calmly awaits the end. With wonderful although, we can scarcely doubt,
thunder, which now, as before
with unconscious
poet
tells
by no touch of
glorious form,
whirl-
or de-
scending into the kindly earth where pain and grief can
Such was the myth which the genius of Sophokles has embodied in, perhaps, the noblest of his tragedies. In the Yardage of the mother with the child the poet Moral aspect
tEdipuTand^
lokaste.
which might yet be lightened by the true human feeling, the genuine shrinking from impurity, which marks the unconscious and unwilling offenders in this awful drama. But this moral world was one into which the mythical phrases about the dawn and the sun never led the earlier poets who composed the hymns of the Rig Veda. Nor could they do so, for with them the myths had not reached
Soph. (Ed.
Col.
1658-1663.
CEDIPUS,
the secondary stage,' in
123
employed has been wholly, or almost wholly, forgotten. could speak of Indra in one hymn as the child of Dahana, in another as her husband. For them these beings had the feelings and affections of mankind but they were not human. They were not clothed in definite human forms, and they might be regarded indiiTerently in one
They
unspeakable horror, but as the result of a necessity against which it was impossible to struggle.^ In utter unconsciousness of the misery in store for him, CEdipus is hurried on by a power which he cannot resist and the notion of this strong compulsion was likewise the natural result of the old myth-making phrases. The sun cannot pause in his journey. He has no free action, and he must be greeted in the evening by the twilight from which he had been parted in the morning. The expressions used in speaking of this inevitable doom acquired, when applied to human action, a notion of moral necessity called by the Greeks Ananke, or of destiny, which they called Moira. Of the names which occur in this myth, some explain themselves of the meaning of others we nust be content to express our ignorance. That Laios is a being cEjipusand who answers to Leto, the mother of Phoebus, and '^^ ^p^'"'^thus represents the darkness from which the sun springs, is manifest. The word itself reappears in that of the Vedic Dasyu, an enemy, a name frequently applied to Vritra, the enemy of Indra. It is seen again in the name Leophontes,
;
;
some have
connected
can have nothing to do, as in that case the word must have been Leontophontes. It reappears also in
it, it
See
p. 9,
See
p. 61.
124
name CEdipus
far
less
clear.
Of
the Greeks,
;
some
thought that it denoted a man with swollen feet others supposed that it meant the man who knew the riddle of
the
feet, this
when
in later
What creature goes on two during the day, and on three in the evening } It must, however, be remembered that in the drama of Sophokles nothing is said of any riddle at all. The utterances of the Sphinx are there strictly dark sayings, or words uttered in a language which none can understand except CEdipus and this riddle of the feet may have been suggested by the fancy that the termination of the name was really the word for foot.^ Of the name Sphinx we can speak more positively. It means one who binds fast,^ and who thus, as imprisoning the rain clouds, causes drought and sickness. The Sphinx, therefore, belongs to that class of beings of which the Vedic Ahi (Echidna), the throttling serpent of darkness, and Vritra,
enigma, or puzzle, only, namely
four feet in the morning, on
' :
'
who
That the notion of the Sphinx came from Egypt, was the mistake of a later time. The Greeks had the idea and the name,"* which is purely Aryan, for ages before Egypt was thrown open to Greek merchants or travellers. The Greek Sphinx has the head of a woman, with the body of a beast, the claws of a lion, the wings of a bird, and a serpent's tail, and might be represented in any attitude but when Greeks came into Egypt, and found figures with a woman's head
; '
is \d<Tios,
rough, hairy.
The name,
therefore,
had
Aryan invaders.
name
for slaves.
^ If the word is related to the Greek olSa, the Latin mdz, the English wtf, then the name CEdipus has exactly the same meaning with that of Sisyphos. ^ Gr. cr(t>iyy(, Lat. pango. * This conclusion is strengthened by the existence of the cognate form Phix, answering to the Latin figo, fix-i, to fix.
CEDIPUS.
joined to a lion's body, they called idea itself from the Egyptians.
125
them naturally by the same name, and afterwards fancied that they had got the
The
can be scarcely necessary to say, by the mutterings and rumblings of the thunder, which men cannot understand, CEdipus alone knows the strange language, because he has
the wisdom of Phoebus, the lord of
or reflect his powers.
light,
The
by
CEdipus
is,
who
smites his
Vritra, and immediately brings rain on the thirsting and so we are told that the rain pours down on Thebes as soon as the Sphinx hurls herself from the cliff; and either the same or like effects follow the smiting of Python by Phoebus, and of Fafnir by Sigurd. In each
enemy
;
earth
QEdipus dies
in the
known as
the
Eumenides or gentle beings. It was commonly supposed that the name was given to them by way of cEdipus and Euphemism, or, in other words, for the purpose 'heEumemdes. of averting their anger by ascribing to them qualities the
very opposite to those which characterised them. We have, however, no reason for thinking that this was the case at
the
first.
Indeed,
it
when
the fore-
home
in
Central Asia.
When
Eumenides, they meant the beings whom they also called Erinyes and there is no doubt that for the Greeks of the age of iEschylus and Sophokles the Erinys was an object of awful dread. But terrible though she be, she is still in the Iliad Eerophoitos, the being who wanders in the air, and thus reflects still the Vedic Saranyu,' the morning light,
;
But, as
we have
'
Saranyu
will find
you
out,'
See
p, 59,
125
gloomy and
;
fearful colours^
The
akin to that of QEdipus, they could not but welcome him to their home. The death of the Theban king is thus the
death of the Sun in the Groves of the Dawn, which are otherwise called the Hyperborean gardens, and represent the fairy network of clouds which are the first to receive and the last to lose the light of the sun in the morning and the evening. Hence, although his last home is ushered in
by
full
Eumenides
to be,
still
are to
his last
him what
their
and
moments
of a deep peace.
With the death of QEdipus the life of his devoted child Antigone draws towards its close. In this bright and beautiful being some have seen the light which The children sometimes flushes the eastern sky Vv'hen the sun "f^^ipus. The name must undoubtedly sinks to sleep in the west.' be compared with such names as Anteia, Antiope, Antikleia and the love of Antigone for CEdipus seems to answer to that of Selene for Endymion or of Echo for the dying
;
Narkissos (Narcissus).
When
in their
unnatural
strife
the
two sons of GEdipus slew each other, the body of Polyneikes, who had attacked the city with the aid of foreign foes, was cast forth unburied by the commands of Kreon, and in deKreon, fiance of those commands, Antigone buried it. therefore, ordered her to be buried alive and when his son, Haimon, to whom she was betrothed, found her dead, he slew himself over her body. The motives and feelings which animated Antigone in her defiance of Kreon are elaborately analysed by Sophokles in the great drama which bears her name but it is enough to say of them that they seem to belong rather to the Eastern than to the Western world. They may be a genuine portion of the Persian legend which Herodotos has clothed in a Greek
;
;
Ereal,
Mythc cTEdipc,
21.
TELEPHOS.
dress in the story of the Seven Consph-ators.^
127
But we cannot well avoid noticing the many instances in which those who mourn for mythical heroes and heroines taken away, put an end to their own lives by hanging. It is thus that Haimon ends his misery, when he finds that he has come too late to save Antigone it is thus that lokaste hides her shame from the world it is thus that Althaia and
; ;
it
is
thus
that Deianeira dies for the unwitting act which has brought
about the death of Herakles. They are, in fact, choked or strangled and thus the death of these beings is strictly the victory of Ahi, the throttling or strangling snake and the tradition may have determined for the tragic poets the mode in which these luckless beings must die. The main features of the myth of CEdipus are reproduced in that of the Arkadian Telephos. The former is the son of Laios. the darkness with its shaggy and re- cEdipusand pulsive garb, and of lokaste, the dawn-light. The I'^'^nhos.
;
and
CEdipus is left to die on the slopes of Kithairon. Telephos is laid on the side of Mount Parthenion. There the babe is suckled by a doe (as Romulus and Remus are nourished by a wolf, and Cyrus in the Persian story by a dog), and brought up by the Arkadian king, Korythos. Like CEdipus, he goes to Delphi to learn who is his mother and at Delphi he is bidden to go to the Mysian king, Teuthras, in whose house he finds Auge, whom Teuthras promises to him as his wife. From lokaste Auge differs only in this, that she will not wed Telephos, although she knows not who he is. Telephos thereon resolves to slay her, but Herakles reveals their relationship, and Telephos leads his mother back to her own land, as Perseus brought back Danae. In another version of the myth he becomes the husband of Argiope, another of the goodly company of dawn maidens, and is
brilliant
Auge, the
morning.
'
Ilciod.
iii.
70
d scq.
128
come
to Ilion to
take vengeance for the misdeeds of Paris. In this war he is smitten by Achilles, and is told that only the man who
inflicted
the
wound can
heal
it.
Traumata denotes wounds which cannot be cured but Achilles was at length persuaded by Agamemnon to falsify the proverb by undoing his own work. He healed Telephos by applying the rust of the spear which had pierced
him.*
It
seems strange to
find Paris amongst the ranks of the day or the dawn and there is no ^oubt that as the seducer who takes away not
;
merely Helen, but her treasures also, the treasures which play so prominent a part in the Volsunga Saga and the Nibelungenlied, Paris represents strictly the Vedic Pani, both in his name and in his acts. He is in this aspect the thief of the night, who brings destruction on his city and his kinsfolk but the disintegration of myths produces strange results, and beings whose names and exploits point clearly to their solar origin, are found ranged by the side of others who are akin rather to the night and the darkness. There is no sort of doubt that Telephos, whose name, answering to Hekatos, Hekate, and Hekaergos,
;
light,
reflects
the
among
of Helen.
They
allies
'
The remedy
denoting
to heal.
is
ios, ion,
rust, poison,
suggested by the equivocation of the homogeneous words an arrow, and the violet colour, and the verb
Idofiai,
MOON-GODDESSES.
;
129
heightened between nor friends and thus the contrast his career after his sojourn in the house of Menelaos and
is
it.
In Paris, there-
would seem that two conflicting notions are not so much combined as placed side by side. His exposure as an infant on Ida, his preservation, the splendid promise of his youth, his prowess and his gentleness, are features common to almost all the stories of popular heroes which we have thus far examined. The parallel might be pushed closer. In the later time he is sullen, capricious, and uncertain but so also are Meleagros and Achilles, and
;
is is
at the demand for the surrender of Helen and her treasures. Either then we must make a distinction between Paris the Ilian hero and the subject of local Eastern myths, and Paris in his relations with the Western Achaians or we must conclude that his beauty and brightness are those of the night and not of the day.' There is seemingly nothing beautiful or attractive in the Vedic
;
Panis,
or
who belong
all beautiful,
;
whether
it
be Selene, whose
or Kalypso detaining Odysseus as a not-unwilling captive in her cave or the queen of the Horselberg enticing Tanhaiiser into her paradise or the lady of Ercildoune drawing Thomas the Rimer away from the haunts of men or Ursula moving placidly amongst her eleven thousand virgins. The solemn and sombre beauty of the night, lit up only by the stars, is embodied in the image of the mortal Gorgon Medusa and
titude of children, the countless stars
; ;
;
the view of Preller, GriecJiischc ATythologie, ii. 413 ; the Max Miiller. Paris is also called ywaifj.av7}s but this as well as the gods of later Hindu mythology. The epithet Alexandros applied to Paris has an equivocal meaning ; and it might be rash to lay much stress upon it.
'
The former
is
feature
I30
we may,
we
kinsman to any or
all
lie
who can belong only to between the morning dawn and the
and infancy of CEdipus and
evening
twilight.'
The
Telephos
Peiias and
Neicus.
Poseidon.
Her children
They
also, like
Dioskouroi or the Asvins, belong to the class of correlatives,^ who sometimes appear as bound together in
Pelias
and Neleus,
like
left
to
die
but a mare suckles the one, a dog the other, and they
live to
avenge the wrongs of their mother Tyro on the ironwho had taken her place in the house of Salmoneus. The sequel of the tale, in which Pelias drives his brother from the throne of lolkos, belongs to the legend of lason and the Argonauts. similar twin appear in the Latin Romulus and Remus, who, like Perseus and Dionysos, are exposed A wolf,^ drawn to their cries, Romulus and ^u the watcrs. Kamus. sucklcs them till they are found by Acca Larentia, In his house the wife of a shepherd named Faustulus. they grow to be as stalwart and beautiful as any whose nature they share. But the friendship between the two is not life-long. Romulus delivers Remus from Amulius, into whose hands he had fallen, and slays the usurper but in the building of the walls of Rome, Remus shows his contempt for the work, and is killed by his brother, who thus becomes sole king of the new city. After a reign the length of which is determined carefully by the thoroughly artificial chronology of the Roman kings,* Romulus is
hearted Sidero,
of Ar.
A'at.,
ii.
77 &c.
lupus is akin to the Greek Xvkos. * See History of Greece, vol. i. p. 607.
*
The Latin
ROMULUS AND
CYRUS.
131
taken away in a thunderstorm, wrapped in the clouds which are to bear him in a fiery chariot to the palace of Jupiter.^ From the legend of Romulus the myth of Cyrus differs Cyms. only in the fact that it has gathered round an unquestionably historical person. But Charles the Great is
as historical as Sir Walter Raleigh, while there
is
also a
whom
no
sort
of authority or credibility from the former.^ So far as the myths are concerned, they teach us nothing either as to
we
the
usual materials of
is
such narratives.
As
in the
Theban
or bright gods, so
Astyages seems to be only a Grecised form of Asdahag, the Azidahaka or biting snake of Hindu legend, and the Zohak of the epic of Firdusi.* Like Akrisios in the Argive legend, he is told that if his daughter Mandane has a son,
that child will live to be king in his stead.
The babe
is
born
is
wife of the
herdsman in whose hands Cyrus is placed with an order for his destruction. Under his roof the boy grows up with the true
spirit
of kingship.
he plays the part of the despot so well that the father of a boy who has been scourged by his orders complains to Astyages of the insult. The inquiry which follows leads
'
a late age.
rivalry
the twin Romulus and Remus are the creation of Remus and Romus are both an older form of Romulus and the might be suggested, when the two forms of the same name were re;
garded as denoting two persons. 2 See further Myth, of Ar. Nat. book ^ Dasyu, Arjios. See p. 123.
*
i.
ch. ix.
others, express themselves without any doubt. I have qualified the statement, because it is now said that Assyrian cylinders exhibit the name in a form which can scarcely be reconciled with this interpretation. The point is not one of g^ eat moment.
this point Professor
On
Max
Miiller
and
132
to his detection,
and Astyages takes an awful vengeance own fears are lulled by the Magi, who assure him that the election of Cyrus as king of the In due village boys fulfils the terms of the prophecy.^ time Harpagos requites Astyages for his cruelty by inciting Cyrus to revolt. The sequel is merely an institutional legend, of much the same value as the legend of the establishment of the Median monarchy by Deiokes, in whom we have apparently the Dahak, or biter, of Hindu
on Harpagos
but his
mythology.^
To
Minos and
the
same
class with
mus and
others,
we may
havc already seen that Cretan myths bring jvianu. yg very near to Semitic ground, and that therefore we have to move warily in the attempt to analyse legends belonging or supposed to belong to this island. But his name is unquestionably Aryan. He is pre-eminently and simply man, the measurer or thinker, the Indian Manu
^^
and
ark
if in
the
enters the
or sages
at the
time of the
in
great deluge, so
as
whose
the West.
Minos, therefore,
merely
Manu
In the
and
this notion
' In the CEd. Tyr. of Sophokles, 972, the prophecies about aidipus are treated in a precisely similar fashion. have already seen how closely the sentiments put into the mouth of Antigone in reference to the burial of her brother's body correspond with those which we find in Herodotos, iii. 70 et seq. It is not easy to withstand the infein the story of the Seven Conspirators. rence that Sophokles may have received both stories from the historian. - The stoi7 of Chandragupta agrees essentially with that of Cyrus. To save him from a chief who has slain his father, his mother places him in a vase leaves him at the entrance of cattle-pen. bull, named Chando, and a guards the child, and a herdsman, noting the wonder, rears him as his own. Chandragupta, like Cyrus, takes to playing the part of king ; but instead of scourging his companions, he has their hands and feet struck off with axes made of goats' horns for blades, and with sticks for handles. The lopped limbs are restored whole at his word when the games are over. Max Miiller. Sanskr. Lit. 290. See also Myth, of Ar. Nat. ii. 84.
We
MINOS.
to the idea of the naval greatness
133
But Minos in the Western tradition is the son either of Zeus and Europe, the heaven and the morning, or of Lykastos and Ida, the brilliant heaven-god and the earth his bride and as such, he boasted that whatever he desired, the gods would do. We are now brought to a series of incidents, which are seemingly of Phenician growth. At
;
'
who promises to offer it in sacrifice, Poseidon sends up a bull from the sea. Minos offered one of his own cattle in its stead and Poseidon not only made the bull mad, but filled Pasiphae, the wife of Minos, with a strange love for the monster. From these springs
;
the Minotauros,
who
in his
den hidden
falls
far
away within
from
Theseus,'-^
by the sword of
is
Minos,
we
are told,
met
his
end
in the distant
He
allies
killed in Sicily
night."*
of the Trojans in
war with the Achaians, are the solar heroes of Lykia, the land of light, Sarpedon and Glaukos. The former sarpedOn. ciaukos. is the creeping light of heaven, and he is doomed to die young. The charge of avenging him he leaves to his But friend Glaukos, the sun-god in his brilliant strength. although Sarpedon must fall, no decay must be allowed to
mar
The tears of Zeus fall like drops of blood his beauty. from the heaven in his grief for the death of his child, and Phcebus is charged to bathe the body in Simoeis, and wrap while Sleep and Death, Thanatos and it in ambrosial robes
;
1
See
p. 41.
2
_ _
See
p. 123.
^
^
ii.
122.
that of Horatius Codes, and with the Latin adjective ccpciis, blind, a word made up of hi, a particle denoting separation, and the root oc, which we find in the Latin oculus, the German Auge, and the English eye half, halt, and probably the Latin ccElebs being formed in the same way. Bopp, Comparative Grammar, 308. ) The name may also be akin to Cacus, with which we shall have to deal in the Latin myth of Recaranus.
We can
scarcely
fail
to connect this
name with
134
Hypnos, are bidden to bear it away to his Lykian home, which they reach just as Eos is spreading her rosy Hght through the sky. According to the poets of the Iliad, his cairn was raised high to keep his name ahve amongst his people. But another version of the myth spoke of him as risen again and this earlier stage of the story is seen in the legend of Memnon in the same poem. This Ethiopian chief is the son of Eos, the morning and the phrase was On so transparent that he must be made to rise again. his death his mother weeps tears of dew, until her prayers constrain Zeus to bring him up from the nether world and two flocks of birds meet in the air and fight over Memnon's funeral sacrifice, until some of them fall as victims on the altar. Of Memnon's head the story was told that it retained the prophetic power of the living Helios or of Surya. The story is found in the myth of the Teutonic Mimir, and it might have been related of Kephalos, the head of the sun. Kephalos, as we have already seen,' is the hero of the legend of Prokris, the daughter of Herse, the dew, and Her K-phaiosand Ereclithcus the mythical king of Athens. Prokris. father, whose name occurs also in the form Erichthonios, is called a son of Hephaistos and Ge, the fire and the earth. Like Kekrops (Cecrops), he was born in the form of a serpent and was brought up by Athene. The birthplace of Prokris is the city of the dawn and while her mother is the dew, she herself is simply a dewdrop.^ The jealousy of Eos prompted the temptation of Kephalos, who, going away from Prokris, whose love he had won, re;
: ; ;
'
See p. 22.
* It is wonderful that such a man as Preller could regard the name Prokris as an abbreviated form of t] -rrpoKeKpifxdvrj, on the ground that -KpoKpiv is used in But Prokne, the other form of Prokris, the Hesiodic poems for TrpdKpiaiv. cannot possibly be referred to }fn-poK(KpLnivi\. Preller [Gncchiscke Myihologie, ii. 145) further adduces the phrase, Trjv irepi iravraiv TLivs Y^oovilr\^ rifi-rjcrf, as applied to Hekate, in support of his etymology, and of his belief that Prokris is But far from being honoured, Prokris is throughout neglected ami the moon. despised, and at last killed and the notion of her being the moon fails to explain any one of all the incidents of the myth.
;
135
turned in disguise (as Sigurd in the Volsung tale returns to Brynhild)/ and having won her love, again in his altered
In an agony
away
to Crete,
and there
who gave her the spear which never missed its mark, and the dog who never failed to track his prey. So with the hound and the spear Prokris came back to Athens,
and was there always the first in the chase. Filled with envy at her success, Kephalos begged for the spear and dog, but Prokris refused to give them except in return for his love. This Kephalos gave, and immediately discovered that it was his wife, Prokris, who stood before him. Fearing
still
smote her as she lay hidden in the thicket. Kephalos left Athens, and aided Am_phitryon in ridding his land of noxious beasts. Then journeying westwards, he reached the Leukadian cape, where his strength failed him and he fell into the sea. Such is the simple tale which relates the loves of the sun and the dew, loves marred by the rivalry of Eos, the ever youthful bride of the immortal but decrepit Tithonos, from whose couch, drawn by the gleaming steeds Lampos and Phaethon, she rises into heaven to announce to the gods and We have seen that to mortal men the coming of the sun. in the very phrase which speaks of the love of Eos for the sun we have the groundwork for her envy of Prokris and so again, when we are told that though Prokris breaks her faith, yet her love is still given to the same Kephalos, and only given to him, we have a myth which could not fail to spring up from phrases telling how the dew seems to reflect many suns which are yet the same sun. That this myth might take a form which, interpreted by the conditions of human life, would state a mere impossibility, is strikingly shown by the legend, already noticed, of Krishna and the
until his spear
'
See p.
7.
136
tale
more
marvellous truthfulness
all
phenomena.
has placed beyond
The
great work of
fo^"^ of
Grimm
doubt
Aryan, tradition with that of the TeuNone probably will be found to question now the close affinity of Teutonic or German with Norse mythology but the tests which Grimm applied to the subject nearly fifty years ago are precisely those which have been applied by comparative
Aryangods.
The
first
of these
is
the
spoken by all Teutonic and Scandinavian tribes the second is their joint possession of terms relating to religious worship the third is found in the identity of mythical notions and nomenclature, which can be traced in a comparison of their popular traditions. But Grimm saw further the greater prominence of certain characteristics in one system as contrasted with another, and he drew the conclusion that where these characteristics had faded into the background, this had not been their condition from the first. Thus the gods of the whole Aryan world eat, drink, and sleep but beings who eat, drink, and sleep must die. The Northern mythologies kept this notion before the people with startling clearness the Southern disguised it, and practically put it out of sight, but it was there nevertheless. The Olympian gods feast on ambrosia, and are refreshed by nectar, the Soma of the Hindu but they can be wounded and suffer pain, they may hunger and thirst and to the Norse mind the inference was oppressively plain. The beautiful Balder has his yearly death and resurrection but the tim.e will come when the great enemy of the gods will be let loose, and Asgard shall be desolate. This enemy is Loki, the fire-god, who, in punish;
; ;
>
See
p. Si.
GODS.
137
ment of his misdeeds, is put in chains Hke Prometheus, and whose release just before the coming on of the twihght of
agreement with the release of the whom the empire of Zeus is to be brought to an end. It is true that the Northern Odin or Woden is the All-Father, from whom men may expect substantial justice in the Promethean tradition Zeus is an But arbitrary tyrant, with a special hatred for mankind. it would, perhaps, be difficult to determine how far the purely spiritual colouring thrown over the myth is due to the mighty genius of .^schylus nor is it a hard task to imagine a Prometheus in whom we should see simply a counterpart of the malignant and mischievous Northern firegod. On the other hand, even in the case of Loki himself,
the gods
is
in
close
chained Prometheus, by
conceptions in which he
day among the common people many is taken by turns for a beneficent
and
for sun,
fire,
giant, or devil.
myth of Balder he appears in his most malignant aspect. The golden-haired Balder is the most beautiful
In the
but, like Sarpedon xxxvi. and Memnon, he is doomed to an early death, a Balder, death which takes place yearly at the winter solstice. In
High
German
Paltac.
Paltac
is
we have
Paltar.
It is possible, therefore, that the two parts of the word may be separated, and thus the name Balder may be connected
This conclusion is strengthened by the fact that the old English Theogony gives him a son, Brond, the torch of
day, and that Balder himself
was
also
known as
Phol.
The
being by whom he
Hodr, a blind god of enormous strength, whose name may be traced in the forms Hadupracht, Hadufians, and many more, to the Chatumerus of Tacitus, and which may perhaps be connected with that
is
slain is
138
of the Greek Hades.^ He is simply the demon of darkness triumphing over the lord of light. As in the case of Sar-
pedon and Memnon, we have two forms of the myth. The one ends with his death the other brings him back from
;
the under-world.^
The former
every day. The cause of his death is related in a poem of the older Edda, called Ealder's Dream. In this poem Odin
goes as Wegtam, or the Wanderer, to the house of the Vola, or wise woman, whose knowledge exceeds even his own but his efforts to save Balder from his doom are vain. All
:
Balder no harm
is
forgotten,
and of
this
plant Loki puts a twig into the hand of Balder's blind brother
it
bright hero, while the gods are practising archery with his
body
as a mark. Soon, however, another brother of Balder avenges his death by slaying his involuntary murderer.^ The shooting of arrov.'s at beings pre-eminent for their
is
an incident
common
in fact
tribes.
^ast
andTeii.
to a be con-
When
the
man who
determined that the kingdom shall belong to could shoot a ring from the breast of a child
Laodameia, the mother of Sarpedon, This is the foundation of the story of William Tell, which is now on all hands acknowledged to have no historical basis whatever and it is enough to say of it, that the hat set upon a pole before which all passers-by were to do obeisance is another form of the golden image set up to be worshipped on the plain
without hurting him.
offers her
Teutonic Mythology,
i.
246.
English
See p. 72. ' Balder belongs to the class of murdered and risen gods. Bunsen, Godin History, ii. 458. See also Myth, of Ar, Nat.
-
On
ii.
these, see
96.
DWARF
of
INCARNATIONS.
139
Dura
and
Three Children,
so here the
men who
The
story
was famihar to
in
in
Enghsh hearers
the cloud-land,
is
in the ballad of
who
in the English story the king expresses his hope that he himself may not serve as a mark for Cloudeslee's arrows. But Cloudeslee with Adam Bell and Clym of the Clough form another group of three, answering to the Swiss trio.' We may thus look on Tell as the last reflexion in Europe of the sun-god, whether we call him Indra, or Apollo, or Ulysses.^ We have seen in the myth of Phoebus Apollo how the newly-born god reaches his full strength and majesty as soon as the golden sword, from which he has his xxxvii. title Chrysaor, is girded to his side. This mighty The cwarF bound from helplessness to power is exhibited, in^^^^^'io"as we might expect, still more strikingly in the expressions applied to the Vedic Vishnu.^ Regarded strictly, Vishnu is nothing but a name for the supreme and all-powerful
is
slain
it is
manifestly used in
is
many
passages of
both Indra and Agni. He is a son of Prajapati, the lord of light and he is also Prajapati
the Rig Veda.
himself.
Thus he
So interchangeable,
theism* of
theistic conviction
' Grimm remarks that Cloudeslee's Christian name and Bell's surname together give us the two names of the Swiss hero. Deutsche Myihologie, 355. For other forms of the legend see Myth, of Ar. Nat. ii. lOO. 2 Max Miiller, Chips from a German Workshop, ii. 233. ' Mr. Dowson, in his Classical Dictionary of Hindu Mythology, assigns the name to a root ish, to pervade. It may be compared with the Greek h, jSia, fiios, and the Lat. vis, vita.
vol.
ii.
p. 102.
Uo
which had no meaning except with reference to the phenomena of the outward world and in this aspect Vishnu is pre-eminently the being who traverses the heaven in
regarded by some as deform of fire on the earth, of lightning in the atmosphere, and of the sun in the heaven in other words, as showing his identity with the Trimurtti of Agni, Vayu, and Surya. It is far more likely, as other commentators asserted, that they refer to the rising, culmination, and setting of the sun and this conclusion seems to be placed beyond doubt by the myth of the Dwarf Incarnation with which the name of Vishnu is most closely associated. This incarnation cannot fail to suggest a comparison with the myth of the maimed Hephaistos. The fire at its birth is weak, its flame puny and it was an
three strides
how mighty
Thus when
a power
Bali, the
enemy of
Vishnu to take the form of a dwarf, and so to deceive the foe. Vishnu accordingly obtains from the Asuras as much ground as he can lie upon, or as much as he can cover in three strides. Having obtained this boon, he assumed a miraculous form, and with three paces took possession of the worlds.' With one step he occupied the whole earth,
'
In later traditions, Bali has no sooner granted the seemingly moderate request of Had, the dwarf, than the body of Vishnu expands until it fills the whole universe, and Bali is bound with the nooses of Varuna. In some, again, the dwarf appears as the child Kumara, the son of Aushasi, the daughter of Ushas, the dawn, and thus we find ourselves dealing with phrases which the Hindu commentators knewto be mere phrases, no disparagement being done to Varuna or other deities by saying that it is their part to do the bidding of
Vishnu.
this
'
VISHNU.
ruler,
:
141
attended by the Maruts Vishnu possesses excellent wisdom, which knows the proper day, and with his friend
The divine Vishnu, who has chosen companionship with the beneficent Indra, himself more beneficent, the wise god has gratified the Arya.' So when Indra is about to smite Vritra, he beseeches
'
sky, give
room
for the
vishnu and
^"'^''^'
thunderbolt to strike
loose the waters.'
let
Vishnu is described as making power of Indra. When, Indra, the gods placed thee in their front in the battle, then thy dear steeds grew. 'When, thunderer, thou didst by thy might slay Vritra, who stopped up thy streams, then thy dear steeds grew. When by thy force Vishnu strode three steps, then thy
But
his three
'
To
mortal
we
man
who
'
No
one who
tained,
The
He
where the many-horned and swiftly moving cows abide. Here that supreme abode of the wide-stepping vigorous god shines intensely forth.' But the worship of Vishnu is noteworthy chiefly for the symbols employed in it the upright and oval emblems denoting the active and passive powers in nature, xheworship This worship might easily assume the most gross fVishnu. and horrible forms and there is no doubt that it became
'
'
V. R. V.
i.
156.
viii. viii."
12 12.
Muir, Sansk. Texts, part iv. p. 66. Muir, Sansk. Texts, part iv. p. 77.
142
far
than
In the Jewish temple itself under the idolatrous kings these emblems appeared as the
the
among
Hindus.
Ashera on the circular altar of Baal-peor, the Priapos of the For this Ashera the women wove hangings, as the Athenian maidens embroidered the Peplos for the ship presented to Athene at the great Dionysiac festival. Before this emblem at the winter solstice they wept for Tammuz, the fair Adonis, and rejoiced when he rose again. Hence in the Ashera we have the symbol under which the sun, invoked with a thousand names, has been worshipped throughout the world as the restorer of the powers of
Jews.
conquest by the deadly winter. As such, became a protecting power, like the Palladion, which guarded the city of Troy the rod or staff of wealth placed in the hands of Hermes,* the budding Thyrsos of the worshippers of Dionysos, and the Seistron of the Egyptian priests. The rod thus grew into a tree of
nature after
also,
its
the symbol
life,
and
in
emblem became
the
stauros or cross
mortality, the god himself being crucified to the tree which denoted his fructifying power.^ In the form of a ring inclosing a four-spoked cross this emblem is found everywhere, and especially in the legends which turn on the rings
In a late version of
dismay not only that he cannot dislodge it from her stony finger, but that the goddess herself claims to stand to him in the relation of Aphrodite to Adonis. In its dis-
myth
and the knight whose ring she refuses to surrender looks on himself as betrothed to the mother
for Aphrodite,
*
Mary
Hymn
to
Hermes, 529.
ii.
115,
and Ajpendix C.
143
When we add
that from
its
physical characteristics
emblem
of the serpent,
we have
much
not
It is scarcely
necessary
the
tree thus
form of a freely growing tree, while the serpent in this aspect certainly not the deadly creature which is commonly supposed to be denoted in this cultus. The Phallic serpent was never regarded with dread, or looked upon as having any but a beneficent and life-giving power and the tree never had any more branches or foliage than a Maypole, The emblems employed with which it is in fact identical. in the worship of Vishnu represent, therefore, the sun and the earth, the Linga denoting the former in its active life-
was
The
latter
containing
all
the generations of
and
this
the Achaian
which
is
Golden Fleece. This mystic endowed with the powers of reason and
borne to the Parthenon at Athens in the solemn procession of the Panathenaic festival. It is also the vessel of which Tacitus speaks as the ship of Isis in the worship of the Teutonic Suevi; and this ship is also the vehicle of the
earth-goddess Herth or Aerth, which was covered with a robe not to be touched with profane hands.^ In Hindu
and Egyptian mythology it takes the form of the Lotus, the symbol of the earth and its fecundation. We are thus brought to the multitude of myths which speak of cups and
drinking vessels inexhaustible in their supplies.
'
Among
ii.
109.
144
the horn of Amaltheia, the nurse of Zeus in the cave of Dikte, of Bran, and Ceridwen, and Huon of Borthese
deaux
Frodi
;
;^
and the well of Apollon Thyrsis in Lykia.^ To these must be added the goblet of the sun bestowed in the Persian legend on Jemshid, and the Sangreal brought into Europe, it is said, by Joseph of Arimathjea.^ In most of the shapes assumed by the myths connected with the symbols employed in the worship of Vishnu, no Eastern and idea is morc prominent than that of a mysterious Mysteries. knowlcdgc and the possession of a knowledge hidden from the profane was supposed to be imparted to
the
lamp of Allah-ud-deen
The
nature and extent of this knowledge have been long and earnestly debated but of the general character of the Eastern mysteries we can be under no doubt. The wailing
;
of the
fixion
Hebrew women
at the death of
Osiris, the
Tammuz,
the cruci-
and resurrection of
and crescent of Isis, the rites of Baal-Peor, are features which speak for themselves, when we consider the great
festivals or mysteries of Phenicians, Assyrians,
Egyptians,
have no reason for supposing that those of the Hellenic tribes were essentially different in their character and it is clear that in these mysteries the effects of foreign influence would be far more deeply felt than in myths which did not so immediately touch the religious There is no doubt that the Hellenic instincts of mankind. mysteries were not less dramatic than those of the East. Every act of the great Eleusinian festival reproduced incidents in the legend of Demeter. The processions of Athene and Dionysos exhibited the same symbols which were seen and from the in the worship of Vishnu, Isis, and Hertha
;
;
and Hindus.
We
'
Herod,
Paus.
iii.
i8.
vii.
21. 6.
ii.
150.
KRISHNA.
substantial agreement of rites
identity of doctrines.
145
we may
When from Vishnu we are led naturally to the sungods of the later Hindu mythology, we find the same flexibility of attributes which marks the deities xxxviii. of the Rig Veda. In the Mahabharata, Krishna, KrisHna. the most prominent perhaps of the later gods, is himself
Vishnu, and, as such, performs his special
'
feats.
Thou, Krishna, of the Yadava race, having become the son of Aditi, and being called Vishnu, the younger brother of Indra, the all-pervading, becoming a child, and vexer of thy foes, hast by thy energy traversed the sky, the atmosphere, and the earth in three strides.' Krishna is thus Hari, the Dwarf. He is also Govinda, the son of the bull, and the protector of cattle and, again, he is the son of Hari, from whose black hair he is said to spring. At the same time he is called 'the soul of all, the omniscient, the all, the all-knowing, the producer of all,' and he is made to speak of himself as the maker of the Rudras and the Vasus, as having Dharma (righteousness) as his beloved first-born mental son, whose nature is to have compassion upon all creatures.' In his character,' he says, I exist among men, both past and present, passing through
^
;
'
'
many
varieties
of
mundane
existence.
am
Vishnu,
Brahma, Indra, and the source as well as the destruction While all men live in unrighteousness, I, the of things. unfailing, build up the bulwark of righteousness, as the ages So, clearly, may even Krishna be simply a pass away.' name for the One Ever-living God. Like the Hellenic and Teutonic solar heroes generally, Krishna is one of the fatal children. Kamsa, the tyrant of Madura, warned that his sister's son shall deprive The birth and infancy of -,. ,. ,,.,.him of his throne and his life, seeks to slay Knshna. her, but is pacified by her husband's promise to deliver all her children into his hands. Six children are thus sur,
,
iv.
p.
18.
146
but the tyrant nevertheless shuts up Devaki and her husband in prison. When the seventh child was about to be born, Devaki prays that this one at least may be spared and it is rescued by Bhavani, the Eileithyia of the Hindu.^ But the suspicions of Kamsa are still active and when Devaki was to become a mother for the eighth time, he is eager to destroy her offspring. As the hour drew near, her form became more beautiful and brilliant. The dungeon was filled with a heavenly light, like that of the golden shower which visited Danae in her prison house,^ and the air rang with the music of the heavenly choir, as the gods with Brahma and Siva at their head poured forth their gladness in song. The report
;
:
Kamsa
to the highest
is
but while he
is
born,
and with all the attributes of that god. In the words of the Vishnu Purana On the day of his birth the quarters of the horizon were irradiate with joy, as if more light were diffused over the whole earth. The virtuous experienced more delight the strong winds were hushed, and the rivers glided tranquilly when Janarddana was about to be born. The seas with their melodious murmurings made the music, while the spirits and the nymphs of heaven danced and sang.' For a moment the veil is lifted from the eyes of his parents, who behold the deity in all his majesty but when it falls on them again, they see only the helpless babe in the cradle. The father then hears the voice of an angel, bidding him take the child to Gokala, the land of cows, where in the house of Nanda he would find a new-born maiden, and charging him to bring back this child, and to leave Krishna in her place. To enable him to do this, the fetters fall off from his limbs,
like Vishnu, with four arms,^
'
'^
1 It is Slightly modified, Bhavani is the more modern name Bhowonee. akin to the Greek <^{ju>, ipv-cris, the Latin fu-i, &c. - See p. III. ^ These four arms may be compared with the four-spoked wheel of Ixion. ^ J/)'t/i. of Ar. Nat. ii. 134, note I.
KRISHNA.
and the prison doors open of their done as the angel
147
own
accord.
Having
when
selves
on his wrists. The cry of the mfant thus brought back instead of Krishna rouses the warders^ who carry the tidings of its supposed birth in the dungeon to the king. At midnight Kamsa enters the prison, and Devaki vainly beseeches mercy for the babe. But before Kamsa can slay it, the child slips from his grasp, and he hears the voice of Bhavani, who tells him that his destroyer has been In a fever of born, and placed already beyond his reach. rage and fear, the tyrant summons his council, who advise him to order the death of all the children under two years
old throughout his dominions.
is
The
order
is
is
issued, but
it
ineffectual.
dangers.
suck, the
;
doom
of
all
who
are
it
so
with
such force as to drain Putana of all life. As the child grew In these up, he became the darling of th-e milk-maidens. some have seen the stars of the morning sky and it may
;
be noted that Krishna is described as stealing their milk, a phrase which may perhaps point to the putting out of the light of the stars by the sun, and which seems to be illustrated by the Greek myth which connected the formation of the Milky Way with the nursing of Herakles by Here. The maidens resented the wrong done to them but Krishna opened his mouth, and revealed his full splendour, so that they saw him receiving the adoration of all created things. The myth goes on to tell us that in the harvest feast of Bhavani, the Greek Demeter, the Gopias, or milk-maidens, pray that they may become the brides of Krishna Krishna and and as playing on his lute in their company, he ''"' '^'^v^'^becomes Apollon Nomios, while each maiden supposes that she alone is his partner in the dance a fancy which
;
;
'
>
ii.
135, note 2.
148
Naraka,
In
we
as he
away
all,
leav-
a like
when Brahma
When
Krishna after this slew the Dragon, or Black Snake, Kalinak, the old serpent with the thousand heads, who, like
Krishna and
kahiiak.
until he has crushed them all. His death, was brought about by a huntsman, who shot the foot with an arrow, thinking that he was aiming The god had placed himself among the at a gazelle. bushes, so that his heel, in which alone, like Achilles, he was vulnerable, was exposed, and he thus incurs the doom of Balder, Adonis, and Osiris. Osiris is the same god as Ra, the Sun, and the Egyptian mythology greatest of the Egyptian deities.' Osiris.. lies strictly beyond the limits of our present subject but although we are not committed to theories which rest on evidence obtained from the land of the Nile valley, it is yet worth noting, that while some of the Egyptian myths seem to have a more direct reference to
upon
its
heads
we are him in
told,
The Egyptian Amen-ra, or Kneph, the ram-headed and horned god, who reappears in the horned Zagreos, is the deity known to the Greeks as Zeus Amnion, whose name they erroneously connected with the sand, aminos, with which his temple in the oasis was surrounded. Of this Amnion or Amoun, Alexander the Great proclaimed himself the son ; and as such, placed the
'
EGYPTIAN RELIGION.
facts of
149
astronomy than may be found generally in Greek tradition, they had their foundation, as a whole, in phrases which described the phenomena of the outward world in all its parts. The origin of the Egyptian people and of their civilisation is a question into which we cannot enter but probably none will be found to assert that the Egyptian people come from the stock which has produced the Aryan nations of Europe and Asia. The character of this wonderful valley would go far towards accounting for the forms assumed by the religion, laws, and customs, which grew up within it and it is enough for us to mark that their growth betrays no working of Aryan influences, while in their turn the institutions and traditions of the Aryan tribes were but little affected by those of Egypt. That there was some interchange of thought as well as of commerce in prehistoric ages between Greeks and Egyptians, is proved by the presence of Egyptian words in a dress which seems altogether Hellenic and Aryan and such words as Harpokrates and Rhadamanthys justify a like inquiry to that which names like Melikertes, Athamas, and Kadmos, warrant, when we deal with the myths and legends of Boeotia. Speaking generally, however, we may safely say that between the main body of Greek and Egyptian myths there was no direct connexion, and no points of likeness which cannot be explained by the working of independent minds on the same facts or the same materials. lo, for instance, was the horned maiden of the Greeks, and her calf-child was Epaphos but the Egyptians worshipped the calf-god Apis, and had Isis as their horned maiden. There was nothing here which might not have grown up independently in Egypt and in Greece nor is any notion of borrowing needed to account for the likeness of myths suggested by the horns of the new moon. But after Egypt had been thrown open to Greek commerce, the Greeks were so impressed with the grandeur of the country and
;
; ; ;
150
they were tempted not only to identity their own deities with those of Egypt, but to fancy that their names as well as the actions ascribed to them were derived from that country. When for this fact no evidence was asked or
furnished beyond the mere assertions of Egyptian priests,
there was clearly no difficulty in
making any one Greek mythology of Egypt, carry away with him the conviction that the name of the Greek and Aryan Athend was only that of the Egyptian Neith read backwards. Nor need we hesitate to say that the mystical system
in the
made
so profound an imin
the
process of ages on simpler myths, which corresponded essentially with the phrases
at the root of
Thus the
sleep of
Hindu, Uasar
who is waked up and answers to the sojourn of Balder in the unseen world, and to the imprisonment of Kore or Persephone in Hades. It is of this Osiris that the horned maiden Isis is both the mother and the wife, and the dog-headed Anubis, Anupu,, is their companion. Osiris is killed by his brother Set or Sethi, as Balder is killed by Hodr but after his imprisonment beneath the earth he rises to a new life, and becomes the judge of the dead. This office is denoted by his title Rhot-amenti, king of the under-world, and this name was manifestly borrowed by the Greeks, who made Rhadamanthys, Minos, and Aiakos The the judges before whom all must appear after death. son of Isis and Osiris was Horos, who is represented as a boy sitting on a lotus flower with a finger in his mouth. His name, Har-pi-chruti, Horus the child, was thrown by
spring,
by
Sigurd,
The
calf-god
whom
own
; ;
LUNAR MYTHS.
time
in a bull,
151
which was recognised by certain signs. This bull was then consecrated, and received high worship. It was not suffered to live more than twenty-five years, and his burial was followed by a general mourning, until a new calf with the proper marks was discovered. Apis deified after death becomes Serapis. The Egyptian Neith, whose name, in the belief of Herodotus, when read backwards became that of Athene, was a
veiled deity, often associated with Phthah, the
Nekhand
pigmy god, answering, perhaps, to the Hari of ^hePhemx. the Hindu. Of the Phenix the historian speaks as a bird in which the Egyptians saw the emblem of immortality
but he says nothing of the resurrection of the Phenix from
its
own
new
Phenix sprang full-grown from the funeral pile of the old one, spoke of a worm which came out from the dead body, and gradually grew up into another Phenix. Although, in the mighty harvest of myths which described the impressions made on primitive man by the heavens and the light and the objects seen in The moon them, those which relate to the sun and the ^^^^s^ars. great company of solar heroes are much the most prominent and important, the moon and the stars were nevertheless not forgotten. We have seen the moon already in the primary myth of Endymion and Selene and whatever else is told us of her, harmonises exactly with the appearances of nature. She moves across the heaven in a chariot drawn by white horses, answering to the goldencoloured steeds of the flaming sun-god. She is said to love the crags, the streams, and the hills, and she herself is loved by Pan, who entices her into the dark woods under the guise of a snow-white ram. Lastly, she is Asterodia, the queen
of the
starlit
heavens.
distinctively lunar
A
in the
more
myth
lo,
is
is
brought before us
is
lo.
who
said
lo and Argos.
152
and of much
to the
suffering.
her Hfe
is
that of the
moon
the
full
new again.
from the new to the full, and from She is the pure priestess of heaven,
love.
on
whom
But
this
love
wakens
the jealousy of Here, and, to save lo from her hands, Zeus vainly changes the maiden into a heifer, the symbol of the young or horned moon. Here gains possession of
the heifer, and places her in the charge of Argos Panoptes,
who has
some of which he opens when the he closes others when their orbs go down. These phrases, it is obvious, point simply to the revolution
a thousand eyes,
stars arise, while
of the starry heavens. Whether the eyes of Argos are placed on his brow and on the back of his head, or whether,
as in
some
represents the star- lit sky watching over the moon, which
He is thus Aste-
From this bondage she is rescued at the bidding of Zeus by Hermes, who appears here as the god of the morning-tide. By the power of his magic rod, and by the music of his lyre
morning breeze), he lulls even the Argos into slumber, and then his sword falls, and the hundred eyes are closed in death, as the stars go out when the morning comes, and leave the moon alone in the In revenge for the slaughter of Argos, Here sent heaven. a gadfly, which stung the heifer lo, and drove her in agony from land to land, through Thebes into Thrace, and onwards until she reached the desolate crags of Caucasus, where the Titan Prometheus hung chained to the rock while the
(the soft whisper of the
sleepless
vulture
gnawed
his liver.^
From Prometheus,
'
Whether Shelley was thinking of the story of lo and Argos, or not, the antagonism between the moon and the stars is clearly expressed in his lines which speak of the former as wandering companionless among the stars that have a different birth. See further Myth, of Ar. Nat, ii, 139. 2 See p. 137.
THE WANDERINGS OF
little
lO.
153
more than begun. She must cross the heifer's ford, or Bosporos, which was said to bear her name. The wanderings r She must journey through the country of the ofio. Chalybes she must trust herself to the guidance of the Amazons, who will lead her to the rocks of Salmydessos she must encounter the Graiai and the Gorgons in the land and finally, she is to see of the gloaming and the night the end of her sorrows when she reaches the wells or fountains of the sun. There in the Ethiopian land will be born her child Epaphos, and the series of generations will roll
f-.i
111
on,
descend-
ant Herakles.
of Ethiopia was regarded by the Greeks connexion between Greece and Egypt, lo being identified with Isis, and Epaphos with the j^ Epaphos. calf-god Apis. No objection need be raised ^"i-Ap'sagainst this identification so long as it is not maintained that the Hellenic names and conceptions of the gods were borrowed from those of Egypt. The great Athenian poet would naturally introduce among the regions visited by lo places which excited his curiosity, his wonder, or his veneration.' Of the strange results produced by the method
as pointing to a
Mr. Bunbury, in his History of Ancient Geography, has conclusively shown any definite geographical s):stem in this or in other mythical voyages or wanderings mentioned by the Greek epic, lyric, or tragic poets, and that indeed great mischief has been done by ascribing even to professed geographers and historians a knowledge greater than they possessed or could possess. The ancient writers erred purely from ignorance we fall into no less serious errors from supposing that they had before them accurate delineations of the form of the earth, such as only exact scientific determination of latitude and longitude has rendered possible. Tlie bearing of these remarks on a multitude of speculations relating to the geography of the ancient world is obvious and unless the objections thus raised can be refuted, no room is left for the decision of any geographical question on the mere weight of statements made by any ancient authorities. The blow falls not merely on the poems which we now receive as Homeric, nor merely on the assertions of Herodotus or Thucydides or Xenophon, but even on scientific astronomers like Hipparchos, and systematic geographers like Strabo. Not any one of these had any adequate guarantee against mistakes and blunders of the most serious kind ; and in some respects the men of science were rather worse off than those who made little or no pretension to it. In the words of Mr. Bunbury, Instead of at once drawing the line, as would be done without hesitation in the case of a mediaeval writer, between what was accurate and
'
The mention
'
154
it is
His story
that
when
;
come
to Argos, lo
went on board
make
choice of things to be
purchased that the captain of the vessel carried her away either with or against her will; and that this offence led the
Greeks to make reprisals by carrying off Medeia from Kolchis. Between this tale and the genuine tradition there and we might not have known is no likeness whatever that he was even speaking of the same lo had he not called her the daughter of Inachos. This meagre caput vwrhmm, or dead head, was the natural result of stripping the old
;
and extraordinary incidents, and then regarding the skeleton which remained as a framework for a real history. It must be remembered, however, that Herodotus was not the only offender after this sort. Adopting the same fashion, the historian Thucydides makes a very plausible narrative of the Trojan war by leaving out all that is said about Hektor and Helen
stories of all their marvellous
trustworthy, and what was vague and inaccurate, the most fanciful suggestions have been made, and ingenious theories invented, to account for what was Even the supposition of vast physical changes has been simply erroneous. introduced or adopted, rather than aclcnowledge that Herodotus or Strabo can have made a mistake.' The absurdity of looking for clear geographical statements in epics like the Hiad and Odyssey is shown by the fact that the poets had no words for the points of the compass but the vagueness with which even such terms as they had are used has led to controversies which are as unprofitable A larger amount of geographical information seems as they are wearisome. to be blended with the traditions of the Argonautic expedition; but these
;
details are the additions or inventioris of comparatively late ages, while the Orphic Argonautica must be assigned to a time subsequent to the first century of
The later versions placed the voyage in the Black Sea. the Christian era. In the Odyssey the story is connected chiefly with the dangers of the rocks called and the poet places these rocks between the shoals of the Seirens Pianette and the whirlpools of Skylla and Charybdis, which were generally connected It may of course be said that with the western parts of the Mediterranean. but this was Planctas and Symplegades were two names for the same thing not the idea of the Homeric poet, and, as Mr. Bunbury insists, nothing is gained by the attempt 'to combine into one narrative stories originally quite unconnected with one another, and to give a definite form to what the earliest poets and their hearers were contented to leave wholly vague and unsubstantial. This remark applies with special force to the utterly indefinite wanderings of lo.
; ;
'
BELLEROPHOK
155
and Achilles, and almost all the other actors in the tale. We have already seen the effect of this treatment in the case of the story of Theseus.^ The method and the results
are alike worthless.
lo, Argos Panoptes i^ by Bellerophon, the slayer or bane of Belleros. But hero, whose name is said to be Hipponoos, Hipponoos
is
and who
called a
son of Glaukos,
is
is,
also
Beiierophontes.
the slayer of
name
Theban
Laios. His father Glaukos is called a son of Sisyphos and the nature of Sisyphos, like that of Tantalos, has been explained already.^ But we must not forget that in Sisyphos the idea of unrighteous craft has displaced
;
to Phoebus
and the
a slayer of monsters
and
in
name
is
enemy
of Indra.
Both contain the same root var, to cover and so to hide. But the same source furnished also a name for wool, the Greek eiros and erion, the Sanskrit urna, and through these for the goat, urnaya, and the spider, ar-achne, the one as supplying wool, the other as serving to weave it. Then we have aitvjiavabha, the wool-weaver, one of the enemies slain by Indra, and so we come through the Russian volnay the Gothic viilla, and the Latin villus arid vellus, to the English wool dSid Jicece. From the notion of hairiness and woolliness we pass easily to that of mere roughness and so we find that the term varvara was applied by the Aryan invaders of Europe to the negro-like aboriginal tribes, and varvara is the barbarian as known to the Greeks and Romans. But the Sanskrit Varvara transliterated into Greek would also yield the word Belleros, and thus we can form some idea
;
'
Seep. 119.
See pp.
8, 98.
156
of a being of
account whatever.
Corinthian of this
but the explanation is worth no more than the derivations given by the Greek poets for such names as QEdipus and
Belleros, then, is some shaggy and hairy monster and as Indra is Vritrahan, and the Teutonic Sigurd is Fafnirbana, so is Bellerophon the bane or slayer of Belleros. But among the chief enemies of Indra is the black cloud which is sometimes called the black skin, while the demon of the cloud appears as a ram, or a shaggy and hairy creature, with ninety-nine arms. This wool-covered animal is, therefore, reproduced not only in the monster Belleros, but in the Chimaira (Chimera),' another monstrous being slain by Hipponoos, which has, like Kerberos and Orthros, a triple body. His victory over this foe is won by means of the winged horse Pegasos, from whose back he
Odysseus.
;
pours
down
his
myth
wife,
goes on to
Bellerophon
whose
Antcia,
fcll in
When
Bellerophon
andAnteia.
him him
him
This lobates would not do but he imposed on him some tasks which he thought
to put the bearer to death.
impossible.
The most
conquest of the Solymoi and the Amazons. After this he married the daughter of lobates, and then tried to rise to heaven on Pegasos but Zeus sent a gad-fly, which stung
;
This name may he the result of a confusion like that between Arkshas and Rikshas, Leukos and Lukos see p. 42. The word Chimaira denotes A Chiproperly not goats of any age, but only those which are a year old. maira is thus, strictly, a winterling, that is, a yearling, just as the Latin words bimus and trimus (bi-himus, hiems) denote things of two or three winters old. But the sun slays the winter, and his enemy is therefore necessarily a
'
:
chimera.
MOON-GODDESSES.
the horse and
for
157
his rider,
Bellerophon was
not killed, but his strength was broken, and after wandering
some time alone on the Aleian plain he died. The myth have already been seen in many others. The tasks imposed on him answer to the labours Like of Herakles, Perseus, Theseus, and other heroes. them, he wins his bride after fights with deadly and
chief features of this
monstrous enemies. His attempt to rise to heaven is the attempt of Phaethon to drive the chariot of Helios, or of Ixion to gain possession of Here. The gad-fly which stings Pegasos reappears in the story of lo. The fall of Hipponoos is the rapid descent of the sun towards evening, and the Aleian plain is that broad expanse of sombre light through which his orb is sometimes seen to travel sullenly
and alone to his setting. A moon-goddess of greater majesty and power than lo is seen in Hekate, who stands to Phoebus Apollo, as Hekatos, in the relation of Diana to Dianus or Janus, xxxix
into the rank of correlative Hecate, Asvins and the Dioskouroi.' She is the queen of night, and as such is described as springir/g either from Zeus and Here, or from Leto, or from Tartaros, or again from Asteria.^ According to the Hesiodic poet, she is the benignant being, always ready to hear those who pay her honour. She is the giver of victory in war, the helper of kings in doing justice, the guardian of flocks and vineyards. These were powers which could scarcely fail to throw over her an air of mystery and awe. At times when her orb is dark she would be described as the inhabitant of a dismal region, caring nothing for anyone and the flaming torch which she gives to the sorrowing Demeter would make her a goddess of the dark nether world. Like Artemis, she is accompanied by hounds, akin to Kerberos (Cerberus), and the awful dogs of Yama. Li one more step we reach the notion of witchcraft. It is from a cave
As
such she
falls
'
See
p. 59.
138
away of Persephone and her among the murky mists. She thus becomes the spectral queen who sends and as imparting to vain dreams from her gloomy realm others the evil knowledge of which she has become posform
is
As
to
a sister of Phcebus, and so belonging, like Hekate, deities, Artemis was in the
estimation of the Greeks a moon-goddess.
j^^j.
XL
Artemis,
Like Phoebus, his sister is a child of Leto, Ortygia or Delos and with Athene and Hestia she forms the group of three deities over whom Aphrodite has no influence. Like her brother, she has the power of life and death, and those who honour her are Like him, she takes wealthy, and reach a happy old age; and as he destroys the Python, so she is delight in song Between the Delian and Arkadian the slayer of Tityos. Artemis there are but few points of difference. The latter is attended by fifty ocean and twenty river nymphs, with whom she chases her prey on the heights of Erymanthos, Her chariot is the workmanship Mainalos, and Taygetos. of Hephaistos, and her dogs are provided by the wind-god.
Hellenic deity.
born
like himself in
Pan.
Artemis is very different from the worshipped under this name in Asia Minor and elsewhere. The Artemis, called Taurian or Artemis Tau- Tauropola, is z. dcmon glutted with human sageneia, Brito- crificcs, aud IS, iu fact, the Semitic Moloch in a The ideas associated with her female form. D^ktynna.
But
this Hellenic
cosmical
deity
were ideas essentially Semitic, the result of processes of thought which had reached to certain definite notions of The Ephesian Artemis was thus lorces at work in nature. no fair maiden radiant with the purity of Hebe or Athene,
MOON-GODDESSES.
but a
159
mummied
figure,
and her worship, as we might it was designed to exhibit.* This ideal was embodied in the cultus of Adonis, the god slain by the boar's tusk, and rising again Whatever may have in his ancient splendour and majesty. been the origin of this idea, it exercised a powerful influence both in the West and in the East, and carried with it especial force in the latter. Adonis cannot rise to the life of the gods till he has been slain. Eos, who closes as she had begun the day, must disappear, in other words must die, if the morning light is to be seen again, and the same thing must be said of Endymion and Narkissos, of Sarpedon and Memnon. But these are all children of the heaven or the sun and thus the parents may be said to sacrifice their children, like Tantalos or Lykaon. It is for this reason that Iphigenia must die, in order that Helen may be brought back from Ilion but Helen is herself known as Iphigeneia, and thus her return is nothing more than the resurrection of the victim doomed to death by the words of Kalchas, and Iphigeneia thus becomes the priestess of Artemis, whose wrath her slaughter was to appease. With an unconscious adherence to the meaning of the old phrases, the myth went on to identify Iphigeneia with Artemis in short, to tell us that the evening and the morning are the same, but that the evening light must die at night before she can spring into life again at dawn. Lastly, Britomartis, whatever be the origin of her name, is manifestly another form of Artemis. She, too, is a daughter of Leto, or of Zeus and Karme, and she flies from the pursuit of Minos, as Artemis flies from that of Alpheios. To escape from him she throws herself into the sea, and being rescued by the nets of fishermen, is carried to ^gina, and worshipped there under the name Aphaia. But the word for nets, Diktya, which is supposed
in the
other
'
ii.
14
et seq.
i6o
Diktaian cave
which Zeus
is
kindly Diktys of Seriphos,^ and we are left in little doubt that Artemis Diktynna is simply Artemis the light-giving,
is
It is
fairyland,
Kirke (Circe) and Kalypso.
and treachery.
We may
more
in
Their abode is the enervating home in which the bright heroes are tempted to pass luxurious days, taking no count of months and years as they roll along. Here they are withdrawn from all intercourse with the world of men and if they reappear, they are regarded with suspicion, dislike, or dread. In short, the fairy realm is the land of slumber, and the palace of the queen is a very castle of indolence, in which Kirke may be more sensual and more treacherous than Kalypso, but in which both make use of spells and charms not easily to be resisted.
;
This
is
the
home
being
Hindu
folklore, the
who can
neither
die,
and the
witchery of whose lulling songs no mortal may withstand. It is the Horselberg to which the Venus of mediaeval tradition entices the ill-fated Tanhaiiser, the Ercildoune where
the fairy queen keeps
prisoner.'*
- See p. 42. ' See p. III. 3 Transliterated into Greek, Tara Bai is the Asteropaios of the Iliad, 12. 102. Frere, Deccan Talcs, p. 44. No one probably will attribute the agreement of the names Horselberg and Ercildoune to accident. In each case we have the berg, hill, or down of the moon-goddess Ursel, or Ursula, a name which through the forms Ursa, Arktos, and Arksha, takes us back to the original word denoting splendour or bright-
Thomas
FAIRY LAND.
i6r
These beautiful beings may not have the malignant cunning by which Kirke seeks deliberately to bring men below the level of brutes but the atmosphere of the xanhauser and palace of Kirke is the air in which each dwells. Ru,^r?' Their abodes are not penetrated by the wholesome
;
know nothing of the pure The men who tarry in their under a spell and thus we
;
Here knowledge may be obtained, but it At the end of seven years Thomas the Rimer is suffered to return to the earth with an accumulation of superhuman wisdom but he returns under an oath to go back to Elfland whenever the summons should come. It came, the story went, when he was making merry with some friends. A hart and a hind were seen moving slowly up the street of the village Thomas knew the sign, and following the animals to the wood, was
can be obtained only under a penalty.
;
:
never seen again.* In the case of Tanhaiiser the myth betrays the working of more marked Christian feeling. Like Thomas the Rimer, he longs after a time to exchange
the sensuous enjoyments of his fairy paradise for the more healthy occupations of the upper earth, and he makes his
escape with an overwhelming sense of sin on his soul, for which he vainly seeks absolution. He goes to the pope, whom the story calls Urban IV. The pope tells him that there is as much chance of his salvation as there is of
his
Messengers are sent to summon the penitent back to the papal presence but it is too late. The minnebegins to bud.
ness which gives us the Hindu raja, and the Latin rex, reg-is, on the one side, and the Hindu Rishi with the Teutonic Bragi on the other. ' For the parallel with Chaucer's Rime of Sir Thopas,' see Myth, of Ar.
'
NaU
i.
411.
62
He has re-entered the fahy land, Olger the Dane, never to leave it again. Here, then, we have the idea of an unbroken or deathlike slumber, such as that of the Cretan Epime^^ Seven ^ " The Sleepers, and nides, who, tending his sheep, fell asleep in a Rishes. But cave, and did not wake for half a century. Epimenides was one of the Seven Sages of Hellas, and these reappear in the seven Manes of Leinster, and the Seven Champions of Christendom. These again are the Seven Sleepers of Ephesus, where the tradition w^ent that St. John was not dead, but only slumbering till the great consummation of the world should come.^ This mystic group of seven is seen, lastly, in the Seven Rishis of anThese wise men were said to be the cient Hindu story. instruments through whom the Veda was imparted to man. They are mortal, but they are united with the immortals. With their hymns they caused, it is said, the dawn to arise and the sun to shine. With Manu, we are told, they entered the ark,^ and there remained until the vessel rested The story ran that these on the peak Naubandhana. Rishis had each his abode in one of the seven stars of the Great Bear. The homonym, as we have seen, is easily Round the same root or base sprang up Avords traced. denoting brightnessand wisdom, and the words so produced might be easily interchanged. In the West a name for and thus we have bears was obtained from the same source the parallel of seven shiners, seven sages, and seven bears.^
singer cannot be found.
like
;
The
The hunter
Orion.
is
;
myth
relating
thc
'Ca'dX.
of Athamas, Melikertes,
source,''
may come
from a Semitic
It is significant that
and Kadmos, he
or thinker. As as the Germans
' For other instances, see Myth, of A)-. N'at. i. 413. ^ See Manu is, of course, 7Ha7i, the measurer p. 132. such, he is the child of Svayambhu, the self-existent, just spolce of their ancestor Manu as the son of Tiu or Tuisco. ^ See note, p. 42. ^ The older form of the name is Oarion. According to by Strabo, he was born at Hyria ; and he is also called a son He is also said to be a iS, of course, the eponymos ot Hyria.
ORION.
163
should be called a son of Poseidon, and that, although they represent the same powers, there is a strong antagonism be-
At
Chios,
we
Aero but when he seeks to make her his bride he is blinded by her father, who, by the advice of Dionysos, comes upon him in his sleep. Orion is now told that he may yet recover his sight, if he would go to the east and look toward the rising sun. Thither he is led by Kedalion, whom Hephaistos sends to him as his guide. On his return he vainly tries to seize and punish the man who had blinded him, and then wandering onwards meets and is loved by Artemis. Of his death many stories were told. In the Odyssey he is slain in Ortygia by
Artemis,
who
is
In another ver-
him unwittingly, having aimed at a mark on the sea, which Phoebus had declared that she could not hit. This mark was the head of Orion, who had been swimming in the waters. Asklepios, we are further told, seeks to raise him from the dead, and thus brings on his own
doom from
another hunter,
who
is
who
is
torn to pieces
by
own
ment,
we
With the myths of these hunters, who probably embody ideas which were much more Semitic than Hellenic, we may compare those which tell us of other mysterious hunters and dancers of the heavens, the Telchines and Kouretes, who with the kindred Kabeiroi and many more seem to be importations from Semitic lands.
and Oiiiopion a deity whose
as
is called a son of Dionysos. He is thus directly connected with ritual was brought into Western Hellas from Asia ; and in him well as in Dionysos we have an embodiment of the cosmical ideas by which Semitic theology is pointedly distinguished from the simpler mythology of the Aryan tribes. Brown, Great JJionynak Myth. i. ch. x. sect. 5. 'Ine hound of Orion became, it is said, the dog-star Senios, who marks the time of yearly drou^^ht. For the significance of the name see Myth, of Ar, Aat. ii. 290, note I.
i64
CHAPTER
THE
FIRE.
III.
which burns upon the earth is closelyperhaps inseparable from, the thought of the fire which, having its seat in the sun, imJ Agni. parts life and heat to the whole visible universe. For these fires, between which at first the Aryan conidea of the
fire
is
The
much care to draw any sharp Hindu name was Agni. Sometimes
in the other,
Hence
spoken of sometimes as the great god who fills all things, sometimes as the light which illumines the heavens, sometimes as the lightning, and sometimes as earthly fire. The flexible and interchangeable characteristics of the old Vedic gods allow them to pass without an effort from one name or thought to another. There Agni, is no rivalry between them, and no antagonism. Varuna, Indra, each is greatest and when each is so named, the others are for the moment unnoticed or forgotten. Or else Indra is called Agni, and Agni Indra, each being Skambha, the supporter of the universe. Agni, however, can scarcely be said to have acquired
Agni
is
The parentage
and
birth of
character.
i
He
is
rarely besought, as
to forgivc sin.
i
In the earlier
hymns
11
which men prize as an indispensable boon. He bears up the offerings of men to the gods on the flames which soar heavenward, and he is therefore,
Agni.
he
IS
the
fire
AGNI.
lilce
165
Hermes, the messenger of the deities.^ He has the wisdom of Phcebus and Indra. He is the originator of all things, but he is also created or kindled by Manu, who thus answers to the Greek fire-givers Hermes, Prometheus, and Phoroneus, the two latter representing the Vedic Pramantha and Bhuranyu. So thoroughly were the Vedic poets aware of the nature of the materials with which they were dealing, that they speak of the sticks which Manu rubbed together to bring forth the sparks as the parents of Agni, who, of course, is said to devour or destroy them, as do all the fatal children. The language
of the
hymns
in reference to
Agni
is
singularly transparent.
The
of
*
phenomena
fire.
whom
in a
moment
army, thy blast goes forth with thy lambent flame thou seemest to tear up the grass. Thy appearance is fair to behold, thou bright-faced
'
Agni, when like gold thou shinest at hand.' But he is also 'black-backed' and 'many-limbed.' He laid hold of with difficulty, like the young of tortuously is
'
twining snakes.'
a beast
is
He
;
is
the consumer of
is
many
forests as
of fodder
but he
puny
at his birth,
and his
is
He
kept
Hermes, as we shall see, is not the fire. But one method of producing was by rubbing pieces of wood together until they are kindled. For this Hindu name was Pramantha, which in Greek became Prometheus, and to which the Greek, interpreting the word with reference only to his own lanBut this process may be performed guage, gave a wholly wrong explanation. by the wind as well as by man. The storm may dash the branches of a forest together till they burst into flame ; and therefore the poet of the Hymn to Hermes says that men praise him as the giver of the great boon of fire to mortals. This coincidence between Hindu and Hellenic tradition with regard to gods so widely differing from each other as those of the fire and the wind is very remarkable, and should be carefully noted.
fire
the
i65
alive at first
Hermes, he soon
while his flames
reaches his
strength.
After a
little
But Hermes, the raging wind, must leave untasted the food roasted by the flames which he has kindled, while Agni devours all on which he
roar like the waves of the sea.
lays his hands,
'
a razon'
He
Agtii and Hestia.
.
. ,
is
and, as
called at
is
Greek Hestia and the Latin Vesta, the deities of the household hearth and sanctuary. Of every one of the worshippers he is once the father, mother, brother, and son. He
the lord of hght.
Vasu,'
He
shields
during
life,
and
of souls, in
death is the Psychopompos, or guide the unseen world. In short, Agni is but a
after
Mitra,
it
which
is
one
the wise
call
many
Agni, Yama, Matari'svan.' But there was, at the same time, in India as elsewhere, the tendency to discern in each name the mark of a distinct personality, and to invent for each a distinct mythical history. This tendency specially affected the popular belief and the popular practice, and the monotheistic convictions of the sacerdotal
Thus, caste were not allowed to interfere with either. because two of the flickering tongues of the black-pathed Agni were called Kali, the black, and Karali, the terrific, these became names of Durga, the wife of Siva and a bloody sacrificial worship was the necessary consequence. Not only is Agni, like Ushas and Eos, a being who
;
He is peculiarly Yavishtha, the can never grow old. youngest of the gods a name which is never applied to any other Vedic deity, but which reappears in the Hellenic Hephaistos.^ In the West no word corresponding to Agni
'
doubt.
On this -word, see Myth, of Ar. Nat. ii. 193, note i. This identification Professor Max Miiller regards as scarcely open to For the evidence, see lilyth. of Ar, Nat. ii. 194, note i.
167
found as the name of any deity. The Greek dialects seem to have lost the word, which in the form of the Latin ignis and the Lithuanian agni denotes only the physical
In
fire.
marked
contrast with
Bhuranyu another deity who is the actual fire, and vv^ho is represented by the Argive Phoroneus.^
Phoroneus.
The
latter
all
is
described as the
to
first
of
men and
his
the father of
mortals.
The names
of
wives,
fire
the influence of
and
to the judicial
on powers of the
Greek Hestia, But neither in the case of Phoroneus nor in that of Hestia was the growth of a secondary mythology possible. n. The phrases applied to them interpret them1
selves.
TT
-1
11
child,
1-11-it is
-1
said,
01
Hestia,
vesta.
on the hearth.
As,
all
regarded as enemies unless by a special compact they had been made friends, so Hestia presided over all true and faithful dealing and as the household
;
men would be
was the centre of all kindly affections, she was described Poseidon and Phoebus, we as always pure and undefiled. are told, sought each in vain to have her as his wife, and
this
is
is
Nor can
we be
Hestia remained to the end, as she had been from the first, the household altar the sanctuary of peace and equity, the source of all happiness and wealth. From this point of view her insurprised that
fluence was more deeply felt, and wrought more good, than that of any other Olympian deity. Her worship She could not be involved direct and practical duties.
we hear no more.
to the
-nvp, iriTrprj^i,
brennen, burn.
i68
fitly
hearths
they had received at their and thus her worship was almost an unmixed good, both for households and for the State. As the State or city, the Polls, was only a collection of tribes, the tribes a collection of clans, and these again of families, so the city, the tribe, and the clan had each its own altar or hearth, where alone the common worship of each might be held. In the Prytaneion of each town, where the Prytanes or elders held their meetings, the sacred fire, burning on the public hearth, was never suffered to go out. If, however, at any time it went out, either from neglect or by accident, it
treacherously with those
;
whom
was restored by
fire
Vedic hymns, as we have by kindling them with a burning-glass, but never by ordinary fire. Through Hestia alone the bond of union was kept up with the parent State, when a portion of the citizens were sent out to form a colony, fire from the pubUc hearth being carried with them to serve as the link which was to bind together the new
seen, the parents of Agni, or
home
The
application of the
same idea
to
surface)
there
however,
we have imagery
rather than
and the Hestia of the Greeks remains as embodied idea as does the Roman or Latin Vesta,* In the latter we have a deity which is, of necessity, as much Latin as she was Greek, having been brought by Greeks and Latins from the common home of the Aryan
tribes.
'
mythology strictly an
Her
purity
demanded a
who
Preller the names Astu and Hestia are referred to the Sanskrit vas, to dwell, and are thus regarded as akin to the Gr. eX^o and i'C'", the name Vesta being thus connected with the Latin Sedes. But probably Hestia may be referred with more reason to Vasu, as a name denoting the splendour of Agni.
By
See note
i,
p. i66.
HOUSEHOLD
GODS.
;
169
and, like the were dedicated to her special services Gerairai at Athens, the Vestal virgins only could handle the sacred fire which was the symbol of her presence.
who
are con-
cerned especially with the interests and welfare The Latin Lares and of the household, even though the conception of Penates, these gods may not be connected immediately with the idea of fire. Among the most important of these are
the Lares, the true protectors of the home, being, in
the spirits of the ancestors
fact,
who had founded and sucThey all belong to the class cessively borne rule in it. known as Penates, or household gods, whose name seems
to be derived from peniis, a store of food.
Hence there
were public as well as private Penates, as there was also a Hestia or Vesta of the city, or tribe, or clan, as well as of separate households, to which the altar in the Prytaneion of the Polls or State corresponded. The Lares were commonly addressed as the Manes, a general name for the spirits of the dead, denoting their goodness or kindness, and answering, therefore, to that of the Greek Eumenides. It recurs in the name of the Italian goddess Mana, and in the word immanis, cruel. The spectres of the dead were termed Larvae, those of them which were supposed to be capable of injuring the living being called Lemures. The term Yavishtha, applied only to Agni, sufficiently explains the name of the Greek Hephaistos as the youngest of the gods, the fire being regarded as newly jjj springing into life whenever it is kindled. Agni, Hephaistos. but too, like Hephaistos, is at times puny and distorted
;
was never so
lost sight of as to
con-
lame and ugly dwarf. This was reserved for the Hellenic fire-god, who must have and thus Hephaistos becomes a being a human shape like Regin, the stalwart but stunted smith of the Volsung legend. He is called the son of Zeus and Here, but some;
lyo
the
His ugliness, it is said, so displeased his mother that she wished to cast him out of Olympos and when afterwards he took her part in a quarrel, Zeus hurled him from heaven, and he fell maimed and wounded in Lemnos. Another tale spoke of him as not knowing his parentage, and perplexed by its mystery. The stratagem by which he discovered it reappears in the Norse story of the Master-smith who, like Hephaistos, possesses a chair, from which none who sit in it can rise Entrapped in this seat, Here is against the owner's will.
;
obliged to
dwelling of Hephaistos is a palace gleaming with the splendour of a thousand stars. At his ^uge anvils mighty bellows keep up a stream of air Th.- home of Hephaistos. ^^ their own accord, and the giants Brontes, Steropes, and Pyrakmon (the thunder, lightning, and flames)
as her son.
With him dwells his wife, who in and in the Odyssey Aphrodite but these poems make no mention of his children. In Apollodoros we have a story which makes him and Athene the parents of Erichthonios, and a legend which represents
aid
him
in his labours.
is
the
Iliad
Charis,
him
the dead
is lost with Hephaistos who, at the prayer of Thetis, forges the impenetrable mail in Hephaistos and Thetis. ^yhich Achillcs is to avenge the death of his friendThe story reappears in the traditions of Northern Europe, which speak of Regin, the son of Hialprek, king of Denmark, as fashioning a new sword for Sigurd at the prayer In English folklore their place is of his mother Hjordis. taken by the limping Wayland Smith.
When
Iliad the
armour of Achilles
it
body of
Patroklos,
is
In the Odyssey the lay of Demodokos tells us that the chains wrought by Hephaistos to entrap Ares and
Aphrodite are so
'
fine that
The two
"
171
more than spiders' webs. We thus see the close affinity of his work to the marvellous artistic skill of Daidalos This name at first was a general Hephaistos (Daedalus). term, denoting qualities similar to those which (D^daius), As we obtained for Odysseus the epithet Poly metis. might expect, there is little consistency in the myths which have grown up around it. The commonly received story calls him a son or descendant of the Athenian king, Erechtheus, the father of Prokris, and says that he was
banished for murdering Kalos, because the latter surpassed
him
in his craft.
made
the
wooden cow
;
Daidalos then went to Crete, where he for Pasiphae, and also constructed
shut up by Minos
For doing this he was and as no ships were left on the coast, Daidalos fashioned a pair of wings for himself, and another Daifor his son Ikaros, and fastened them on with wax. dalos thus made his escape to Sicily but Ikaros mounted too near the sun, which melted the wax of his wings, and falling into the sea which bears his name, he was drowned. Nothing more is recorded of Daidalos, except that he executed many great works of art in the West. Of Ikaros we need only say that he belongs to the class of secondaries, and thus stands to Daidalos in the relation of Phaethon to
;
Of
god of
it
is
is
whose name,
it
like that of
"^^1^^-
When
Greek Hephaistos, they gave him Venus as his wife. He is sometimes called Mulciber, as softening the heated iron.' Of the Teutonic fire-god, Loki, something has been
already said in reference to the vitality of the
*
Aryan
gods.^
Mulciber
note
I.
is
p. 28,
one of the many names belonging to the group mentioned in " See p. 137.
''
172
was
originally Logi, a
word
liiikaii^
name
racter
lohe, glow. The form Loki was from a supposed connexion of the with the verb hikan, to shut or lock and the cha-
modern German
Substituted
of the
He now
becomes, like Poseidon Pylaochos, the being who has the keys of the prison-house, and may be compared with the malignant Grendel in Beowulf, or the fire-demon Grant names connected with the old Norse grind, a grating, and the modern German grens, a boundary. But Loki
never assumed the character of the Semitic devil or the Persian Ahriman. As in the case of Hephaistos, his limping
gait
and misshapen
figure
gods.
He
is
is
but he
bound
provoke the laughter of the heaven; deeds, not to be set free until
He
form of the wolf Fenris, hurry to swallow will war against and overcome the gods.^ The traditions relating to Prometheus nected with the mythology of Zeus.^ But VI. perhaps remarkable chiefly as
theus.
^"
Ages.
"^
the moon,
and
standing out in
Ages.
In the
latter,
the existence of
man on
the earth begins with a golden age, during which sicknesses were unknown and the earth yielded her fruits
without tillage or
toil.
To
the
men
of this
happy time
death came as a gentle sleep, and they themselves passed into a state in which they became the guardians of the good and the punishers of evil doers. The second age was that of silver, in which men incurred the wrath of Zeus for withholding honours due to the gods but these also at their
; '
(Stallybrass), vol.
i.
Grimm believes that the last day of the week, now known as Saturday, Instead of Saturday, the old Norse has originally called after this god. See further Myth, laugardagr, the Swedish logardag, the Danish loverdag.
2
was
of Ar. Nat.
ii.
200.
See
p. 37.
173
death were reckoned among the blessed. The age next following was the brazen, the age of men who ate no corn, and had hearts of adamant. These fought with and slew each other, like the men who sprang from the dragon's teeth in the legend of the Theban Kadmos (Cadmus), and went down unnamed to the under world. Between these ages
there are no periods of transition.
One
race
is
swept away
and another succeeds. The last age was the age of iron, in which the poets supposed themselves to be living, and which was to be commensurate with the duration of man on the earth. But the vast body of epical tradition relatea
to
and who in bravery, immeasurably surpassed the degenerate creatures of the age of iron. It thus became necessary to find a place for them, and so the Heroic age was interposed immediately before that of iron. The heroes themselves were faulty enough, and many of them brought on themselves a dark doom but their better qualities break the ethical order of primaeval ages which otherwise runs steadily from the better to the worse. In the Promethean story, as related by ^Eschylus, this order The ^schylean legend insists that is completely reversed. men had not lost high powers, but that they had never been awakened to the consciousness of the powers with which they were endowed. For them sight and hearing were useless, and life presented only the confused images of a dream. They were utterly unable to distinguish the seasons, or the rising and setting of the stars. From this depth of misery they could be rescued only by bestowing on them the blessing of fire but the very idea of this gift implies that till then fire was a thing unknown to men on the earth. They might see the lightning flash across
gold, the silver, or the brazen ages,
the sky, or the fiery lava stream hurrying down the slopes of a volcano but fire, nevertheless, was a thing which they
;
to their
own
174
use.
being, therefore, than man must bring it to form which should deprive it of its terrors. This being is Prometheus, who, ascending to the palace of Zeus, fills aferule with fire, and by bringing to them this boon, opens a door of hope for the woe-begone race of men. With this story the Hesiodic idea cannot possibly be reconciled. In the Theogony men are deprived of the boon of fire by Zeus, in revenge for the trick which left the fat and bones of victims as the portion of the gods in the sacrifices ^ but they are not deprived of the wisdom and the craft imparted to them by Prometheus. Their condition, in short, has nothing in common with that state of unawakened powers which is the very foundation of the ^schylean legend and this fact
them
more that we may examine the myth. Prometheus, as we have seen, had been an ally of Zeus, for whom he had hurled Kronos and his adherents into the abyss of Tartaros and for this great benefit he might have remained always in Olympos, had not his anger been roused by the gross injustice of which Zeus became guilty
becomes
clearer the
;
securely seated on his throne. To each of the gods he assigned his place and function of men he took no count. His desire was to sweep them altogether from the face of the earth but it is clear that
; ;
he wished this, not because (as the Hesiodic Theogony had it) man was becoming too wise or powerful, but because he was too mean and helpless to be suffered to
' In the contest between gods and men in Mekone, Prometheus, it is said, divided an ox, and placing the meat under the stomach, and ihe bones under the more inviting fat, called on Zeus to mal^e his choice between them. Zeus eagerly placed both hands on the heap of fat, and was enraged on finding that In relating this story the Hesindic poet only a heap of bones lay beneath it. says, strangely enough, that Zeus saw through the tri^ k from the first, and But this is inconsistent with the feverish that it was therefore no trick at all. The gud is really outwitted. eagerness of Zeus to lay his hands on the fat. yEschylus, however, is not less inconsistent in giving his own version. Miserable as men were before they received the boon of fire, they yet had a knowledge of things to come, and could see clearly the course and close of their lives. This power Prometheus takes from them, giving ihem blind hopes and dreams in its place, while he also instructs them in divination, thus restoring to them in some measure the very power of which he had deprived them.
175
and Prometheus for his severity to enemies whom he dreads, but because he feels no pity for beings whose
expresses no
fear,
He
The gift of fire now calls only for compassion. bestowed on man by Prometheus rouses Zeus to fury, and Prometheus is sentenced to a punishment far surpassing the worst agonies of mankind. The name Prometheus represents, as we have seen, the Vedic Pramantha.^ To the Greeks it suggested a connexion with words springing from the root con- Prometheus tained in the names Metis andMedeia. It came, in metheus. short, to mean Forethought or Providence and the idea of Epimetheus, or Afterthought, was at once suggested. But to be wise after an event is often to be wise too late and thus the rashness of Epimetheus brings on him a terrible punishment for the offence which had already brought down the wrath of Zeus on his mightier brother. He had been warned to receive no gifts from the gods but the advice of Prometheus was thrown away. The temptation came in a form which it was impossible to resist. By the bidding of Zeus, Hephaistos took earth and moulded it into the shape of a woman. This image
;
in
Hermes
gave her the power of words and a greedy mind, to cheat and deceive mankind. Zeus then led Pandora (for so she was named, as being, it was supposed, the gift of all the gods) to Epimetheus, who received her into his house. Thus far men had been plagued, it is said, with no diseases but in the house of Epimetheus was a great jar or cask, whose cover could not be lifted without grievous consequences to mankind. Pandora, of course, raised the lid, and a thousand evils, strife and war, plague and sickness, were let loose. The air was filled with the seeds of diseases, which took root wherever they fell and the only possible alleviation of their woe was rendered impossible by the
;
S-e
p. 165.
176
shutting up of Hope, which alone remained a prisoner within the cask, when Pandora in her terror hastily replaced the cover. ^
But
Prometheus
Kon.
mistaken etymology.
^" *'
ne-
Epime-
name The various functions ascribed to him by ^schylus make him virtually the creator as well as the preserver of men and we are thus brought back to the language in which the poets of the Vedic hymns address Agni. This creative
gencies of this error.
will carry us, is
power reappears especially in his son Deukalion, in whose days the flood overwhelmed all Hellas. The wickedness of man, we are told, had reached its height in the iniquity of Lykaon and his sons, and Zeus resolved to punish them. The waters began to rise and Deukalion bade his wife, Pyrrha, make ready the ark which he had built on the
;
warning of his father Prometheus. Then getting into it, he and his wife were borne for eight days on the waterS; and on the ninth the ark rested on the heights of Parnassos. There, having left the ark, they offered sacrifice to Zeus,
* Some have thought that Hope was shut up in the cask out of mercy to men, and not to heighten their misery. But this is clearly not the meaning of She finds the story in Hesiod, for Pandora does not bring the cask with her. it in the house of Epimetheus, and the diseases and evils can do no hurt till Hence the shutting up of Hope makes matters worse they are let loose.
Nor is this the only difficulty connected with the tale. In by yEschylus, Prometheus mentions, as one of his reasons bestow on men the gift of fire, the crowd of diseases and plagues which without it they were unable either to avoid, to mitigate, or to cure. But The mere compathe Hesiodic legend is, indeed, inconsistent throughout. rison between the forethinker and the afterthinker implies that there must be some advantage in the one, some loss in the other. But in the Theogony, and in the Works and Days, there is no more to be said in behalf of one than of The provident and the improvident are alike outwitted and the other. punished ; and the gain, if any there be, is to the man who does not see the coming evils as they cast their shadows before them. In the story of the gift of fire by Prometheus and in that of the letting loose of the evils by Pandora we have two contradictory legends. We can but take them as they are, lor
instead of better. the version given
for wishing to
is
hopeless.
DEUKALION.
who
sent
177
Hermes to grant any prayer that DeukaHon might offer. Deukahon prayed for the restoration of the human race, and Hermes said that he and his wife should
cover their faces with their mantles, and cast the bones of their mother behind them as they went upon their way.
his father
Prometheus
taught him that his mother was the earth, and that they
were to cast the stones behind them as they went down from Parnassos. The stones thus thrown became men and women, who at once began the life of hard toil which ever By some this since that day has been the lot of mankind. flood was assigned to the reign of Ogyges,' a mythical king of Athens but there are many variations in the tale.
;
that
all
men
then perished
Delphi escaped.
So
in the
Babylonish story of
Xisuthros the
Manu,
In some verwe have seen, enters the Rishis, who remain with him
as
they land on the peaks of Naubandhana. The name Deukalion comes from the same source with that of Polydeukes (Pollux), the brilliant son of Leda.
one of the most noteworthy features of Ramificatio ._. .. ,,. lies in its rammcations into others. 01 n.c myitis The legend of his father Prometheus is bound up with the legend of Zeus, lo, and Herakles, of Epimetheus, Pandora, Athene, and others. Deukalion, again, is the father of Minos, and Minos is the Indian Manu (the thinker Minos in his or man), who enters the ark in the east. turn is the father of Ariadne, whom Theseus led to Naxos after slaying the Minotaur with her help, and he is further connected with Argive tradition through the tale of Nisos and Skylla. Deukalion is further called the father of Hellen, the eponymous ancestor of the Hellenes, and of Protogeneia, the early morning. The latter becomes the mother of Aethlios, the toiling and striving sun, who like
,. this
But
myth
'
See
p. 49.
17S
Herakles and Achilles labours for others, not for himself, and Aethlios, as we have seen, is the father of Endymion, who sleeps in the cave of Latmos, and from whom spring the fifty children of Asterodia. The mode adopted by Deukalion in repeopling the earth reappears in the traditions of some savage tribes, who would seem to have nothing in common with any of the Aryan nations. The Macusi
Indians of South America relate that the last
into men.
man who
According to the Tamanaks of Orinoko, it was who cast behind them the fruit of a certain palm, and out of the kernels sprang men and women. The myths of the fire-gods already noticed have shown
a pair of numan beings
us that
Yii_
men may
on the
it
burns ordinarily
from the bowels of the volcano. The lightnings are the mighty flames in which irresistible weapons are forged for the hands of the gods, or they are the weapons themselves. The rivers of fire which hurry down the sides of burning mountains are the floods sent forth by rebellious giants chained to scorching couches in their depths. We have here the simple framework of myths which tell us of the gigantic moulders of the thunderbolts, or of rebels For the to the power and the majesty of the gods. most part the stories do not go far beyond these simple ideas, which are exhibited with an iteration which is apt to become tedious. It is happily unnecessary to go through the cumbrous genealogies with which the Theogonies are overloaded but we can be under no doubt that, when Arges, Steropes, and Brontes are spoken of as Kyklopes, these are the lightning flashes which plough up the stormy heaven. The affinity of these gigantic beings with the Kyklopes, or Cyclopes, of the Odyssey is distant, although it may be The atter have seemingly nothing to do with fire. traced. The Kyklops whom Odysseus blinds is the son of Poseidon
;
THE GIANTS.
;
179
and the nymph Thoosa in other words, he is the child of the waters, and instead of forging armour, he feed his flocks on the hill side.* We are tempted to discern in these shaggy troops of goats the rough vapours which cling to the mountains, and in the Kyklops himself the blackening cloud through which, like a solitary eye,
glares
the
There seems to be every reason to carry us to this conclusion, and none to stand in the way of it. Odysseus, it is true, is a solar hero, and he may therefore be said to be putting out his own eye and extinguishing himself when he blinds Polyphemos. But we have already seen that this distinction between the agent and the patient, when both are identical, is common to a large number of myths ^ and it is exhibited most conspicuously in the stories of Ixion and Sisyphos, where the former is the wheel on which he is stretched, while the latter is the sphere which he is compelled to roll up to the mountain summit. The distant kinsmen of these Kyklopes are seen in
;
Ouranos, who thrusts them down into Tartaros. The Titans, however, remain free and between these and their father
;
another war
waged, which ends in the mutilation of Ouranos and the birth of Aphrodite and the Erinyes. The Kyklopes are now brought up from their dungeons, and Kronos, who swallows the things which he has made and vomits them forth again, becomes the lord of heaven. second imprisonment of the Kyklopes soon follows, and lasts until the Titans, led on by Zeus, hurl Kronos from
is
Mr. Brown regards the Kyklopes as belonging properly to Semitic mythoG7rat and thinks that their name describes. them as circle builders. Uionysiak Myth. i. ill. It seems strange, to say the least, that if the poet wished to say that they raised circular structures, he should say instead that they had round faces. But it does not, therefore, follow that Semitic ideas may not underlie the traditions of these uncouth crea'ures. - See p. 107. N 2
'
logy,
and put the Diktaian, or light-born, king in his place. Zeus now makes use of the Kyklopes for the purpose of crushing the Titans, who are avenged when Phoebus Apollo smites the Kyklopes for slaying his son
The myth is, in truth, running round in circles, with little variation beyond that of names. But in its several versions the two images of the cloud and the lightning are closely connected and this conthe healer Asklepios.
;
nexion may be traced through a vast number of SchlmmSassa- popular stodcs, in which the lightning becomes fras, Sesame. ^^ arrow Capable of piercing and laying open the side of a mountain and displaying for an instant marvellous treasures of gems and gold. These mountains are the cloud-masses which in many stories are converted into As the clouds birds, and especially swans and eagles. carry the lightnings within them until the time comes for using these awful weapons, so these birds carry each a stone capable of splitting the hardest substance. In the end the
Myths of the
The
is
who watches
ing a
worm
which,
when placed on a
it
to pieces.
woodpeckers and hoopoes get at their young by means of a grass which has the power of splitting rocks and thus we reach the class of plants known as Saxifrage or These grasses either reveal treasures or restore Sassafras. life, as in the legends of Glaukos and Polyidos, the SnakeLeaves, and many more.' Of the same sort is the German Luck-flower, which enables the possessor to go down into the rocks which gape to receive him, and to fill his pockets with treasures, while the beautiful queen of the palace bids him take what he pleases, warning him only not to forget the best. This "v.'arning the peasant supposes to
and
Pliny,
'
See
p. 6.
ROCK-SPLITTING PLANTS.
i8i
apply to the stones, and leaving the Luck-fiOwer behind, he finds, when the rocks close with a crash, that the mountain is closed to him for ever.^ In the Arabian Nights story of Ali Baba and the Forty Thieves the flower has disappeared but the spell lies in its name, and the forgetting of the word involves the same penalty which the German peasant incurs by leaving the flower itself in the cave. In the story of AUah-ud-deen the utterance of the charmed word by the African magician, amidst the smoke and vapour of the fire which he has kindled, causes a shock which reveals a way into the depths of the earth and lays bare its hidden treasures. In the story of Ahmed and the Peri Banou the Sassafras is an arrow whose flight
;
fairy
on the
earth,
and
is
suffered, like
for the
flash
This
is
by the myth in the Spanish legend of the Moor's Legacy, by Washington Irving ^ and although, when they
;
may
seem poor and monotonous, the astonishing variety of incident which may be evolved from these magic materials is matched only by the wonderful richness of colouring which marks the folklore connected with the phenomena of thunder and lightning.
'
this
ii.
217.
160.
ii.
219
i82
CHAPTER
Among
Veda
IV.
THE WINDS.
god known in the Rig Vayu, a word denoting the gentler movements of the air, and answering J Maruts*^ to the pipings of the Greek Pan, and the sott andKucira. breath of the Latin Favonius. With Agni and Surya he forms the earher Hindu Trimurtti but the phrases addressed to him never leave us in doubt as to his character. He comes early in the morning to chase av/ay the demons, and the Dawns weave for him golden raiment, while Indra himself is his charioteer. But the more violent forces of the wind, which find expression in the Hellenic myths of Boreas and Hermes, are in the Veda represented by the Maruts who aid Indra in his war with Vritra. The language
the
names given
to the
as
is
in the
one case
is
The
;
and root up
;
forests
they roar like lions and are swift as thought they shake the mountains, and are clothed with rain. In their hands are spears and daggers, the fiery lightnings and the worshipper may hear the cracking of their whips as they go upon their way. After their mightiest exploits, they resume, accordand in this ing to their wont, the form of new-born babes
;
' ; '
phrase
that
said
'
Hellenic
we have very much more than the germ of the myth of Hermes. It is impossible to suppose the poet knew not whom he was addressing, when he
On what
'
THE MASTER^THIEF.
earth
?
1S3
From
men
reeled forward.
Lances gleam, Maruts, upon your shoulders, anklets on your feet, golden cuirasses on your breasts, and pure waters shine on your chariots lightnings blazing with fire glow in your hands, and golden tiaras are towering on your heads.' But more especially, as their name denotes, they are the crushers or grinders.' They are the children of Rudra, the Father of the Winds, who, like the Asvins and Agni, like Proteus and Phoebus, can change ^t's^fy of their form at will. But Rudra, it must be re- *^^ "y"""" membered, is worshipped also as the robber, the deceiver, the master-thief; and thus another point of the closest connexion is furnished between the Eastern and the Western myths. The Hellenic story ran that Hermes, the son of Zeus and Maia, was born early in the morning in a cave of the Kyllenian hill, and having slumbered peacefully in his cradle for two or three hours, stepped forth from the cave. Finding a tortoise, he killed it, and with its shell made a lyre by fastening sheep-gut cords across it. Then, as the sun was going down, he came to the Pierian hills, where the cattle of Phoebus were feeding, and made ready to drive them to Kyllene. Fearing that the track of beasts on the sand might betray his theft, he drove them round about by crooked paths, so as to make it appear that they were going to the place from which they had been stolen and his own feet he covered with tamarisk and myrtle leaves. As he passed he saw an old man at work in a vineyard near Onchestos, and whispered into his ear a warning that he should take care not to remember too much of what he had seen. When the next morning dawned he had reached the stream of Alpheios, and there gathering logs of wood he rubbed the pieces together till they burst into flame. This was the first fire kindled on the earth, and so Hermes
;
'
See note
p. 28.
i84
is
but he did not eat of the roasted meat, although he was Having quenched the fire, he sorely pressed by hunger.
all his might, and hastening on to Kyllene, darted into the cave through the bolt-hole of the door as softly as a summer breeze, and there lay like a babe, playing among the cradle-clothes with one hand,
while with the other he held the tortoise lyre hidden be-
neath them.
the old
When the morning dawned, Phoebus, coming to Meeting Onchestos, saw that his herds had been stolen.
the vineyard, he asked
if
he knew
but the
man bethought
himself of
he had seen cattle moving and a babe walking near them, wrapped in purple mist. Going on to Pylos, Phoebus came on the confused cattle tracks, which he followed till they brought him to the cave of Maia. Entering it he found the babe Hermes asleep, and roughly waking him, de-
manded
his
cattle.
The
child
babe of a day old cannot steal cattle, or even know what As Hermes gave this answer, his sort of things cows are. eyes winked slily, and he made a long, soft whistling sound, Reas if the words of Phoebus had mightily amused him. fusing to take this excuse, Phoebus caught up the child in but Hermes made so loud a noise that he quickly his arms Taking this as a sign that he should find his let him fall. cows, Phoebus told Hermes to lead the way. Then Hermes, starting up in fear, pulled his cradle-clothes over his I know ears and reproached Apollo for his cruelty. but the name. Zeus must nothing of cows,' he said, So the strife was carried decide the quarrel between us.'
;
'
'
who first heard the complaint of Apollo and then listened to Hermes. Winking his eyes, and holding the clothes to his shoulders, the babe protested that he knew not how to tell a lie, and that he could but
to the tribunal of Zeus,
HERMES.
play like other children in his cradle.
185
friends,
Olympian king. At that disobey, and hastening to the banks of Alpheios, he brought out the cattle from the folds where he had penned them. Just at this moment Phoebus saw the spot where the fire had been kindled, and the hides and bones of the slaughtered cattle, and wondering how a babe could flay whole cows, he seized him again, and bound him with withy bands, which the child tore from his body like flax. In his terror Hermes thought upon his tortoise lyre, and called forth from it music so soft and soothing that Apollo, forgetting his anger, besought Hermes to teach him his Take wonderful art. At once Hermes granted his prayer.
'
With a laugh Zeus and then bowed his head as the awful sign Hermes dared not
which to those who can use it deftly will discourse of all sweet things but to those who touch it, not knowing how to draw forth its speech, it will babble strange nonsense, and rave with uncertain moanings.' Apollo took the lyre in his hand and filled the air with its music and Hermes, taking courage, prayed that to him also might be granted the secret wisdom of Phoebus. This, however, he was told, might not be. None but the sun-god could know the hidden counsels of Zeus. Still there were other things which mortal men might never learn, and these he might be taught by the Thriai,* the three hoary-headed
lyre,'
my
he
said,
sisters
who
dwell in the
clifts
of Parnassos.
tale,
which after all is as selfluminous as it is strange, we have first to account for the name. Transliterated into the old language of Hermes and sarama. India, Hermes, through its cognate form Hermeias, would become Sarameyas, and Sarameyas would denote the son of Sarama. But we have already seen that
explain this strange
In the name Thriai we have the softened sound which appears in our may compare the names Thrinakia and Trinakria, and the Treiskephalai, which Herodotus (ix. 39) mentions as another name for Dryoskephalai, thus showing that ihe cognate forms Drus and Tree had both found their way into Hellas.
'
To
three.
We
lS5
Sarama is Ushas or the dawn as creeping along the sky.* Sarameyas might thus at first have been strictly the breeze which comes with the dawn, arid may be regarded as its
child
but with the westward migration of the Greeks the word became more and more associated with the idea of air in motion, and of sound as connected with it. The idea
;
and so the name Hermes came to represent the wind, but the wind in all its moods and measures, and not merely as the storm or the hurricane. Examined from this point of view, the story becomes transparent. Like the fire which steps out with a puny flame from its dark prison-house, the wind may freshen to a gale before it be an hour old, and sweep before it the mighty clouds filled with the rain that is to refresh the earth. Where it cannot throw down, it can penetrate. It pries unseen into holes and crannies, it sweeps round dark corners, it plunges into glens and caves and when the folk come out to see the mischief that it has done, they hear its mocking laughter as it hastens on its way. These few phrases lay bare the whole framework of the tale, and account for the slyness and love of practical jokes which stamp the character of Hermes. The babe leaves the cradle when he is scarcely more than an hour The breath of the breeze is at first soft and harmoold. nious as the sounds which he summons from his tortoise But his strength grows rapidly, and he lays aside lyre. With his harp to set out on a plundering expedition. mighty strides he drives from the pastures the cattle, or All clouds of Apollo, the god of the light and the heaven.
;
Hermes
toiled, the
till
poet
tells
us, or, as
we
rubbing against each other, burst into flame and so men praise Hermes, like Prometheus, as the giver of the kindliest boon, fire. The flames, fanned by the wind, consume the But the wind, though hungry, cannot eat of it, sacrifice.
/ See
p. 58.
SUN.
1S7
to his mother's
summer
words of the
of
lies
Hermes patter almost noiselessly over the stony floor, till he down to sleep in the cradle which he had left but a few hours ago. So with every other feature of the story. When
Apollo charges the child with the theft of the cattle, the defence is grounded on his tender age. Can the breeze of a day old, breathing as softly as a babe new-born, be guilty of so much mischief.? Its proper home is the summer-land; why should it stride wantonly over bleak hills and bare heaths Nor is the meaning of the compact between Hermes and Apollo less obvious. The wind grudges not but it is impossible for him to reach his music to the sun Still there the depths to which the sun's light penetrates. He can be the are other things to which it may attain. guardian of the bright clouds. His song shall cheer the sons of men his breath shall waft the dead to the world unseen and when he wills, he may get wisdom by holding converse with the hoary sisters far down in the clifts of the mountains, as the wind may be heard mysteriously whisperFaithful ing in hidden glens and unfathomable caverns. to the spirit of the myth, the poet adds that his friendship The wind has for men is not equal to his love for the sun. a way of doing men mischief while they sleep. We are thus able to account for all the functions of Hermes and all the shades of his character. The soft music of the breeze would naturally associate ^he Hermes of ^''^'^ the idea of him with that of the harp or lyre. '^^ be the As driving the clouds before him, he would messenger of Apollo, and this office would soon be merged in that of the herald of Zeus and all the gods. As the god of the vocal wind, he would be skilled in the use of words, and he would be employed in tasks Thus in the Iliad he wherein eloquence was needed. appears before Priam in the time of his anguish, not in
.''
iC3
He
all
tact,
and
skill, in
is
and hence he
exhibited at once as a
all
The story of Hermes is found in a thousand forms in Aryan lands. It is the story of the master-thief, embodicd
psjnitos
in the
Rham-
versions of this
and strength.
No power
can
withhold him from doing aught on which he has set his mind no human eye can trace the path by which he con;
veys away his booty. So against Hermes bolts and bars are of no avail and the babe whom Phoebus can seize and shake in his arms is the mighty marauder who has driven
;
When his work is done, he one who needs to be dreaded and the soft whistling sound which closes his defence wakes a smile on the face of Phoebus, as the English or Scottish squire laughs on finding himself tricked in the Northern story.' In each case the robber is exalted to the same high dignity. Well, friend,' said Apollo to Hermes, thou wilt break into many a house, I see, and thy followers after thee and thy fancy for beef will set many a herdsman grieving. But come down from thy cradle, or this Only this honour can I promise sleep will be thy last. thee, that thou shalt be called the Master-Thief for ever.' ^ But there are sides to the character of Hermes which also describe with singular fidelity the action and power of
from
Pieria.
looks not
much
like
'
'
'
Precisely the
same incident
is
i.
lo.
I.
Hytnn
to
Hermes, 292.
See also
18,
and Appendix
HERMES PSYCHOPOMPOS.
air in motion.
189
As
rage,
so
no
living
wakened, where before His lyre is the harp of Orpheus, or of the Finnic Wainamoinen,' the son of Ilmatar, the daughter of the air whose singing draws the sun and moon from heaven. He is the Erlking whose mysterious harmony is heard by the child nestled in his father's arms. He is the piper of Hameln, who drives away the noisome rats, but who also draws the children of the town, happy and joyous, to the blue river, where they leave all their griefs behind them, as gently as the Homeric Psychopompos leads the dead across the waters of Lethe. The staff or rod, which Hermes received from Phoebus as the sign of his dominion over the cattle of the sun-god, was regarded as denoting his heraldic office. Hermes and Perseus. It is the emblem which especially marks the worship of the Eastern Vishnu ^ and it was necessarily endowed with magic properties, and had the power even of raising the dead. The fillets of this staff were sometimes displaced by serpents and the golden sandals, which in the Iliad and Odyssey bear him of themselves through the air more swiftly than the wind, were at length fitted with wings, and the Orphic hymn-writer salutes him accordingly as the god of the winged sandals. In the legend of Medusa these sandals bear Perseus away from the pursuit of the angry Gorgons into the Hyperborean gardens, and
harping.
there had only been the stillness of the dead.
; ;
As he draws
and
all
Hermes was identified with, him were ascribed to, the Latin
he has scarcely
whom
yi
m
.
common.
Latm
cially
>
deity of traffic
-^r
Hermes and
theLatin Mercurius.
Roman
Fetiales, or heralds,
p.
* See p. 139. ' See Myth, of Ar. Nat. ii. 245. The name is connected immediately with merx, commerce.
113.
I90
found
The
Latin Laverna, the guardian and patron of thieves. two names exhibit, after the usual Latin fashion,
traffic
and
In Orpheus, who is generally called a son of the river Oiagros and the muse Kalliope/ we have a being who in some points resembles Hermes. The latter has iii_
Orpneus.
^ \yt&, the music of which charms those who have ears to hear and hearts to feel it. The influence of the harp of Orpheus is extended beyond living things, to Is he What, then, is Orpheus stocks, stones, and trees. the breeze of the dawn, the moving air which may freshen to a gale, dragging everything thing away in its impetuous
.?
haste 1 Or is he the sun-god himself, joined for a little while with a beautiful bride whom he is to recover only to lose her again 1 There can be but little doubt that the colouring of a solar myth has been laid over the framework of a
taL'
like that of
The name
denote the wide-spreading This fair being is stung by the serpent flush of the dawn.2 of night. Wretched at her loss, Orpheus has no longer the heart to wake from his golden lyre the music which made
one of the
men,
beasts,
and
trees, follow
him
in his course.
He
deter-
and having soothed the dog of Hades, Kerberos (Cerberus), with his song, he is brought before Polydegmon and Persephone, who suffer him to lead his wife away, on condition
that he shall not look on her face
earth.
It is
till
almost needless to say that Orpheus, forgetting his promise, looks round too soon, and Eurydike vanishes away, like mist at the rising , of the sun. The grief of
The
beautiful- voiced.
"^
See
p. 14.
ORPHEUS.
191
Orpheus again silences his music, until he dies on the banks of the Hebrus. Although there can be little doubt that the name Orpheus is the Greek form of the Vedic Ribhu or Arbhu, a name which seems at a very early period to have orpheus and been applied to the sun, the story is essentially 'he Argonauts. connected with the idea of sound rather than with that of light. The notion of the tale is more simple than that of the myth of Hermes. Orpheus is a harper only, although his harp is one which can set even things inanimate in motion but Hermes is also the marauding thief, and on his plundering expeditions he lays aside his lyre, to resume it only when he comes back to lie down like a child in his cradle. As time went on the power of Orpheus as a musician put
;
out of sight
all
Thus he
is
he
call
by
his tones,
The same
tones
wake the
voyagers in Lemnos from the spell which makes Odysseus dread the land of the Lotos-eaters. At the magic sound the Kyanean rocks parted asunder to make room for the speaking ship, and the Symplegades which had been
dashed together
evermore.
in the fury of
belongs to the music of the Seirens, singing lure unwary mariners to the
These
orpheus and
'^^ =eirens.
myth, at the hands of Orpheus in another, by the means of O"oheus. They may perhaps represent, as some have supposed, the Seirai or belts of calms which are so treacherous and fatal to seamen or their name may be connected with the Syrinx or pipe of Pan, and with the
;
See
p.
119.
192
we mark
the
none who heard their song could be withheld from rushing on their own destruction. In the story of Odysseus, the wanderer breaks the spell by filling the ears of his mariners with wax, while he has himself lashed to In the Orphic legend the harper the mast of his ship. proves himself more than a match in their own art, and the Seirens, throwing themselves into the sea, are changed into rocks, according to the doom laid on them when they should meet with a rival more skilled in music than themfact that
selves.
The
Teutonic and
ofthemyih.
havc sccn thc children following the piper of ^-. ,. Hamcln mto the dcpths of the blue river.' In some popular stories the musician who can make everything dance at his will is versed in the thievish tricks of Hermes. In the German story of the Jew among the Thorns the myth is blended with the common tradition of the Three Wishes, one of these wishes being for a fiddle, which shall make everyone dance, and which in the issue
11
riii
it
We
developed form in the story told by Herodotus of Arion, whom he calls a son of Poseidon. The harp here, although it gives them wonderful delight, fails to win mercy for Arion from the seamen v/ho are resolved to have his wealth at the cost of his life. The minstrel leaps into the sea, and a dolphin carries him to Corinth and Arion recovers his harp from the sailors, whose iniquities are laid bare and
less
hand makes
reel, till
chairs
fall
from sheer weariness, while Bori makes off with his bride, who was about to be given to some one
they
>
See
p. 189.
193
it
and
Maurice Connor,
has the power of waking the dead as well as of stirring the living. In the Eastern story of Gunadhya this harp is
connected with the legend of the Sibylline books and king Tarquin, who is here represented by Satavahana, to whom Gunadhya sends a poem of seven hundred thousand
^
slokas written
in
his
own
blood.
in
The king
which
;
rejects the
is
it
written.
it is
a part of the
being consumed, his song brings together all the beasts of Satavahana the forest, who weep at the beauty of his tale. but none is falls ill, and is told that he must eat game to be had. The beasts were all listening to Gunadhya.
;
Hearing
poem.
this,
the king hurries to the spot, and buys the all that now remained of the
versions of a story, the framework of which must have been in existence before the dispersion
of the
from their
the
answers,
iv.
^^^'
;
he is said to have received his name because all the gods were cheered by his music, we have a mistake of precisely the same kind as that which gave birth to the name and the character of Epimetheus,^ the mistake of attempting to explain a name without making an effort to discover the forms which it may have assumed in cognate dialects. We have already seen that such pitfalls could not possibly be avoided by etymologists who know only one language, and who regard all other languages as unworthy of either study or thought. Some of the details of the myth are grotesque and uncouth
'
Hymn
i.
79.
See
p. 44,
note
4.
See p. 175.
194
enough
it
but whether these are to be traced to nonHellenic or non- Aryan, and so possibly to Semitic sources,
might be rash to
affirm. In all of
so
much
Hermes
in his
Orpheus, as of the purifying breezes, which blow gently or strong, for a long or a little while, waking the echoes now here now there, in defiance of all plan or system, and with a wantonness which baffles all human power of calculation. To this idea the Hymn to Pan adheres with a singular
fidelity, as it tells
us how the god wanders sometimes on the mountain summits, sometimes plunging into the thickets of the glen, sometimes by the stream side or up the towering So swift is crags, or singing among the reeds at eventide. With his pace that the birds of the air cannot pass him by. him play the n}'mphs, the water-maidens and the patter of their feet is heard as they join in his song by the side of the dark fountain. Like Hermes, again, and Sarameya, Pan is the child of the dawn and the morning, under whatever names they may be spoken of and it is his wont to lie down at noontide in a slumber from which he takes it ill Sometimes, as in the Hymn, he if he be rudely roused. is the son of Hermes and of the nymyh Dryope, sometimes of Hermes and Penelope, sometimes of Penelope and Odysseus, But Penelope is the bride of the toiling and wandering sun, who is parted from her at eventide and to be her son is to be the child of Sarama, and so of Hermes. Nor is the idea changed, if he be spoken of as the son of heaven and earth, Ouranos and Gaia, or of air and water, _'Ether and a Nereid. As the soft and benignant breeze. Pan is the lover of As such, he Pitys, the pme tree or nymph of the pine tree.
;
Pan and
noreas.
Touscd,
it
is
rude
north wind,
who hurled
tree
Of Boreas
195
is
to be said.
He
called a son of
Astraios and Eos, the starry night and the dawn, and the
husband of Oreithyia, the daughter of Erechtheus, the king of the dawn-city. His true character was as little forgotten as that of Selene in the myth of Endymion, and thus as a germ in mythology his name remained comparatively barren. The Athenian was scarcely speaking in mythical language, when he said that Boreas had aided his countrymen in scattering the fleets of Xerxes,' or when he described him as striking down the loving and tender Pitys, because she was wooed by the gentle breeze of summer. In another tale Pan is the lover of the nymph Syrinx but this phrase simply speaks of the wind playing on its pipe of reeds by the river's bank. The story runs that Syrinx, flying from Pan, as Daphne fled from Phoebus, was changed into a reed but this is only another form of the myth which made him the lover of the nymph Echo, whose unrequited love for Narkissos (Narcissus) is merely the complement, as we have seen, of the unrequited love of Selene for Endymion.^ The power of Hermes and of Orpheus is exhibited again in the myth of the Theban Amphion. This hero is the v. twin brother of Zethos, and the two are, in the Zethos. words of Euripides, the Dioskouroi riding on white horses. In short they are the Asvins, and so fall Their mother is into the ranks of the correlative deities. Antiope and her fortunes differ but little from those of the mother of Pelias and Neleus,^ or of Romulus and Remus. In one version of the tale she is a daughter of Nykteus, the In brother of Lykos; in another she is the wife of Lykos. fact she is both, for the dawn-goddesses are at once the Her offchildren of darkness and the brides of the light. spring, like the other Fatal Children, are exposed at their birth, and like them are rescued by shepherds. Zethos grows up a tender of flocks, while Amphion receives from
;
'
Herod,
vii.
1S9.
See
p.
ifl.
See
p.
130.
C 2
196
themselves in their proper places as he builds the In one version of the myth Zethos bewalls of Thebes. comes the husband of Prokne, the daughter of the Athenian
child
and according to this story Prokne killed her own by mistake, when she intended to slay the eldest son In another version of Niobe, who was wedded to Amphion. Prokne is the wife of Tereus, who cuts out her tongue when her son Itys is born, and hides her away with her babe.
Pandion
;
Tereus then marries Philomela, telling her that her sister Prokne was dead. The sisters discovered his guilt, and Prokne killed Itys, whose flesh she served up as a meal for Tereus. In the sequel Tereus is changed into a hoopoe, while Prokne becomes a swallow, and Philomela a Like Niobe, Prokne weeps herself to death. nightingale. In order to explain the story, we have only to remember
that the swallow
is
;
as a bird of spring
in earlier
and
it is
myth
forms
tion
Prokne or Philomela, without drawing any distincbetween them. Of these two names Prokne is only another form of Prokris, and Prokris, as we have seen, is the dew,' which is here represented as offering the limbs of the murdered child to her husband, the sun, as he dries up the dew drops. Philomela, again, is one who loves the flocks, or the one who loves apples ;2 but the sheep or flocks of Helios become the apples of the Hesperides, and thus Philomela is strictly the lover of the golden-tinted clouds which greet the rising sun. The dirge-like sound of the wind is signified in the Boeotian story of Linos, who is torn to pieces by dogs, and for Linos Zephy- wliom matrous and maidens mourned at the feast Haipies. called Amis, because, as it was said, Linos had grown up among the lambs. The more vigorous wind from the west or the evening land was known as Zephyros, the son of Astraios, the starry heaven, and of Eos, who both
either
;
'
See p. 22.
ik%\a.
197
is
who
is
Xanis
Harpyia
only a
name
which catches up and sweeps away that with which it may come into contact. In Hesiod the Harpyiai, or Harpies, are described as the beautiful daughters of Thaumas and Elektra by Virgil they are represented as loathsome beings, the change being brought about by the process which converted the lovely Saranyu of the eastern land into the venge;
ful fury
of the west.^
all
In the Odyssey
the charge
by Zeus under
a son of
vi.
of Aiolos
who
is
called
Hippotes, and
who
is
Beyond this u-eoM. statement the poem has nothing more to say of him than that he was the father of six sons and six daughters, and
rousing or stilling
them
Aiolos
an island called after his name. The word may be, and probably is, connected with the names Aia and Aietes, and may denote the changeful and restless sky from which the winds are born. But Aiolos, Linos, Zephyros, Pan, and all the other wind-gods already mentioned, are not the only conceptions of the effects of air in motion to be found in Greek tradition. The Vedic Maruts are the winds, not as harpers or singers,
that he lived in
but simply as the grinders or crushers of everything that comes in their way. These crushers or pounders reappear
in
They
are the
with two heads, four hands, and These beings aid Herakles in his struggle with Augeias, but turning against him are slain by him near
four feet.
Kleonai.
They are
for
whose love
also the Aloadai, the sonsof Iphimedousa, Poseidon led her, it is said, to roam along
These
See
p. 59.
193
They
pusher and leaper, and thus are the wind and the hurricane. These brothers seek to lay hands, the one on Here, the other on Artemis but the latter goddess so runs between the brothers that they, aiming at her at the same time, kill each other a clear image, it would seem, of the thunder clouds which destroy each other with their own discharges. The fury of the storm winds furnished the conception of the Hellenic god of war. Ares, the god imprisoned by the vn. Aloadai, with whose name his own is closely akin, Mars rinyo. reprcseuts the storm-clad heaven, which serves as
;
the battle-field of the raging tempests. Athene, as the goddess of the pure unclouded
air, is
mere tumult and confusion, and in no sense a god of war, unless war is taken as mere He is, quarrelling and slaughtering for its own sake. but the men of the indeed, a son of Zeus and Here mythopoeic age could only speak of him in accordance with their ideas of the phenomena which were signified in his The battles of the atmosphere seem to be entirely person. Hence of arbitrary, without motive, and without purpose. the merits of contending parties Ares has no knowledge and no care. He changes capriciously from one side to another, and even takes pleasure in plaguing men with He thus becomes the object of sickness and epidemics. hatred and disgust to all the gods. Where the carcases are likely to lie thickest, thither like a vulture he will go but
is,
He
in short, a deity of
etymological identity of the Aloadai and the Molionids is established if the Greek Aloe, a threshing-floor, belongs to the group of words containin<:^ the root mal, which has yielded beyond doubt the Greek Myle, the Latin There is no proof that words in Greek assume an mola, our mill and meal. initial 7n which is merely euphonic, but there is abundant evidence that Greek words which originally began with this consonant occasionally drop it. Thus we have moschos, and oschos, for a tender shoot or branch, ia for mia in the Iliad and Odyssey, the Greek ovKai for the Latin mola, while the fonn ]\Lileuron is mentioned as an equivalent for Aleuron, ground com. See note p. 28.
*
The
ii.
254.
ars.
he
is
is
199
is
when he
wounded
his roar
in short, neither
teristics
thousand warriors. He has> majesty nor dignity. His chief characare his huge size and his bodily strength and
;
when
cover
many
roods of ground.
In this
Ares has reference to the huge storm clouds, charged with lightning and loaded with In thunder, which fill the heavens in time of tempest. other words, the story of Ares has not advanced much beyond the stage of primary myths. The idea of ascribing this enormous bulk and stature to Phoebus Apollo would be preposterous. The conception of the Delphian god had left far behind it the notion of the god who was inseparable from the local habitation of the sun. But the life of Ares is little more than a series of disasters, for the force of the storm winds is after all uncertain and transitory. Hence he is defeated by Herakles, when he seeks to defend his son Kyknos (Cycnus) against that hero, and wounded by Diomedes, who fights under the protection of Athene. In the Odyssey his name is connected with Aphrodite, whose love he is said to have obtained but other traditions tell us that, when she seemed to favour Adonis, Ares changed himself into the boar which slew the youth of whom he was jealous. At Athens the court of the Areiopagos stood on the hill which bears his name. It was said that Ares, having slain Halirrhothios, the son of Poseidon, was here accused by the sea-god before the tribunal of the Olympian deities, that he was acquitted, and that the court was therefore called after him.^ In
clusive proof that the idea of
;
Something has been already said of the large group or groups of words clustering round the roots which may be calletl war and nial. The meagre mythology which has attached itself to the name of Ares may at least serve to show that to the former root we owe words denoting violent destruction to the latter, words significant of slow decay by processes which
' ;
may even impart much transient be-auty. The idea common to both forms, we may now safely affirm, is that of crushing, grinding, or pounding and thus we have in the Greek Myle, the Latin mola, answering to our English
;
200
is said to have been accompanied by a goddess named Enyo, who, Hke himself, dehghts in havoc and bloodshed. In the Hesiodic Theogony she is one of the Graiai and the darkness was from the first the mother of fraud, deceit, and strife. But Ares himself is commonly known as Enyalios, as with the same meaning Poseidon is called Enosichthon, or the earth shaker. The name of the Latin Mars is closely akin to that of the Greek Ares. But although their names thus correspond, the Mars and ^^^^ ^^ ^hc Romau Mars, who, as the strider, is called Romulus. Gradivus and has his feminine counterpart in the wargoddess Bellona, is more dignified than that of the Homeric Ares. Among the Oscans we find the older reduplicated form Mamers, among the Romans Mavers or Mavors. The latter learnt to speak of him as the father of Romulus and
some
Remus
or
Rhea
but the names of these twin sons of the Vestal Ilia Silvia are only different forms of the same word,
deities,
and meal ; but it may be traced through a vast number of words between the meaning of which there is no obvious connexion. In the Greek verb marnamai the word has acquired the sense of fighting, as Shakespeare speaks In the Latin marccrc, it passes into the notion of of the toil and moil of war. slow withering decay and so the term mortal denotes everything subject to disease and death, the fiiorbiis and mots of the Latins, which grind, and so dissolve them. So, too, as men were to the Greeks Brotoi, mortals, the gods were Ambrotoi, immortal, and were fed on Ambrosia, the Hindu Amrita, the The grinding power of time was expressed in the food which cannot decay. The root became necessarily Latin mora, delay, and in the French demeurer. fruitful in proper names, as of the Maruts, the Aloadai, the Moliones, the It is seen also in the Greek Arete, Aktoridai, of Ares, and of Thor Miolnir. virtue, which is supposed to have the battle-field for its birthplace. Except for a stray epithet here and there, it is scarcely necessary to trace the root into the second channel denoting ideas of softness, tenderness, and sweetness ; but as we find the Latin fire-god, Vulcan, spoken of as Mulciber, it may be well to note that under the form marj or mraj it gave birth to the Greek mclgo, the Latin mulgeo and mulceo, the English milk, all meaning originally to stroke, which only conveys in a modified form the idea conveytd by the word strike. In these words, as well as in the Greek Blax. Malakos, Malthasso, Meilichios, the Latin marcidus, and mollis, soft, the Greek ineli, and the Latin mel, honey, it came to denote especially the notions of sweetness and gentleness. From the notion of melting the transition was easy to that of desiring or yearning ; and we find it accordingly in this sense in the Greek Meledone and Eldomai, which may be traced to the older Meldomai, and finally in Elpis, hope.
;
201
But the personality of the subjects of Roman mythical tradition is always more or less vague and the name of the eponymous heroes of Rome seems as clearly invented to account for the name of the city as were those of Sparta, Orchomenos, and a host of others among the Greeks. How far the incidents in the story of Romulus were derived directly from Greek tales, we can scarcely venture to determine. We are told little more than that he vanishes away in a storm, and thenceforth is said to have been worshipped under the name Quirinus.
;
CHAPTER
Among the
V.
THE WATERS.
deities or beings connected with the waters we have the same distinction which we have ah-eady traced in those which belongto the upper air or the heavens. J
Wc havc had sun-gods of two classes those who havc their local habitation in the orb of the sun or moon, from which they are never dissociated, as Helios, Selene, Hekate, Surya; and those who in their perfectly human personality exhibit, like Phoebus, the majesty and the beauty of the lord of day without any necessary dependence on the body of the sun. It is thus accordingly that we find Proteus and Nereus standing to Poseidon in the precise reThere lation of Helios to Phoebus, or of Surya to Indra. The other names are is only this difference in the two cases. all beyond doubt Aryan but we cannot affirm this with any confidence about Poseidon, which may therefore be Semitic. That it is of non- Hellenic origin may perhaps be inferred from the fact that it has passed away altogether from the language of the modern Greeks, while the name of Nereus has furnished them with a word for water. Between Proteus and Nereus there is this distinction, that the former alone At the possesses the power of changing his shape at will. least the Hesiodic Theogony pointedly denies to Nereus the
Proeus^acf Nereus.
:
It
speaks of him
man, because he is truthful, trustworthy, and kindly, because he remembers law, and knows good counsels and just words, whereas Proteus yields only to force. Like Proteus, Nereus is gifted with mysterious wisdom, and
POWER OF TRANSFORMATION.
203
Herakles follows his counsel in the search for the apples of the Hesperides.^ His wife Doris is, like Asterodia, the
waters
mother of fifty daughters, who are also dwellers in the and the ingenuity of later mythographers was
:
name
seen
to another, thus
showing that
Elsewhere he
son
till
who gave
it
this
name had
of roadways on land.
Thaumas becomes
an old
man who
whom he
He
may
or not
and each day, when the heat is greatest, he from the deeps, and takes his rest on the seashore. It is at this time that VirgiP represents Aristaios as fettering the old man by the advice of his mother Arethusa. The attempt to bind him is followed by many changes of form. Proteus becomes first a fire, then a snake, and then assumes other aspects before he is compelled to return to his own proper shape. He is, in short, the Farmer Weathersky of the Norse Tales nor must we
raises himself
;
mean Egypt
power of transformation is possessed also by Thetis, and by the fairy who, in the ballad of Tamlane,
forget that this
can say:
I quit
We
my body when
it
:
Or unto
size
we can convert
An
either large or small old nutshell's the same to us As is the lofty hall.
To
The daughters
are, etymologically,
See
p.
107.
Georg.
iv.
439.
204
was
to
generally supposed belong to any porBut the name denotes strictly tions of the visible world. Latin water, the Greek Nymphs answering to the Lympha and thus the Latin Lymphaticus corresponds to the Greek Nympholeptos, the man enchanted or smitten by the nymphs, just as the Greek Seleniazomenos is parallel to the Latin Lunaticus, the lunatic or moon-struck man. The classification of nymphs as Oreads, Dryads, and
are
be beautiful beings
who
may
others
These most part mere names but their collective action is seen in the myths of Prometheus, whom they comfort in his agony,- and of Achilles, whom
is
is
They
are,
in
fact,
the Vedic
Apsaras,^ the
movers
in
dom
of the sea-gods Nereus and Proteus.* These nymphs must, however, be distinguished from the Swan-maidens, and other creatures of Aryan mythoThetis. logy and folklore, whose nature is more akin to the clouds and vapours. The lakes on which these maidens are seen to swim are the blue seas of heaven, navigated by
Thetis herself,
is
and Peleus gains her as his bound Proteus. She belongs thus as much to the upper air as to the waters. When Hephaistos is hurled from Olympos, it is Thetis who
can change her form at will
bride only by binding her as Aristaeus
The root sua in Sanskrit denotes washing. Round it are grouped such words as the Greek i/aCs, Latin navis, a ship, Greek vk^iv, Latin nare, to swim, nix, niv-is, snow, Niobe, and many more. 2 yEsch. Pr. V. \()oets,'q. ^ The Sanskrit apa and the Latin aqna are closely cognate forms. ^ On the eftect produced by Christian teaching on the relation of men to the nymphs, see Myth, of Ar. Nat. ii. 258.
'
205
and if she is married to a mortal, it is because she will not be the bride of Zeus, or, as in another version, because her child was to be mightier
; ;
in
husband, by promising that his son shall be the most renowned of all heroes, and she acts rather as a dawn-goddess than as a Nereid, when in the Iliad she preserves the body
of Patroklos from decay.
is, in truth, difficult to draw any sharp line of distincbetween the dwellers in the water and the inhabitants of the air. The sun each day rises from the ocean, ^^.^ kinsfolk of and sinks into it again. Aphrodite is born from ^nton. the sea foam Athene at her birth is Tritogeneia and Daphne in like manner is the child of the Peneian stream. From this point of view they may all be regarded as children of Tritos, Triton, the lord of the waters, and the
It
tion
'
kinsfolk of Amphitrite.
The
in
the
To the waste of waters belong also the Seirens, whose doom was that they should live only until some one should escape their toils and they are thus brought to their end, in one version of the myth, by Odysseus, in another by Orpheus.^ But apart from the one characteristic of their beautiful and witching song, the mythology of these beings, if so it maybe called, is thoroughly artificial. In form half fishes and half women, they are akin to Echidna, Melusina, and other like beings of ancient
;
and modern
story.
The
The demons
Odyssey, are placed on the rocks, distant about g^^i,^ ^^^ an arrow's flight from each other, between which Charybdis. the ship of the wanderer must pass. If he goes near the one he will lose six of his men as a prey to the six mouths
'
Seep.
71.
Cd.
xii.
97.
Seep.191.
2o6
which Skylla will open to devour them but this will be a less evil than to have his ships knocked to pieces in the whirlpool of Charybdis, which thrice in the day drinks in the waters of the sea, and thrice spouts them forth again. Skylla, in short, as her name denotes, is one who tears her prey while Charybdis swallows them.^ We find in Me;
'
who gives her love to the Cretan Minos, and betrays the city to him by stealing from the head of her father Nisos the purple lock on which the safety of the place depends. Her treachery brings her no
good.
is
drowned
in
the
and is turned into a bird, after which her father, in the form of an eagle, swoops down into the sea. Over all these inhabitants of the world of waters Poseidon is, in the later mythology, the supreme king. But thcrc are grave reasons for thinking that neither The name Poseidon. ^^ conception nor the name of this deity is Hellenic or even Aryan. Although the Greeks, like other Aryan tribes, have a character which markedly distinguishes them from tribes or nations belonging to other races of mankind, they were, nevertheless, brought into contact with many non-Aryan tribes or nations. The Greek lived almost more on the sea than on land, and his commerce took him especially to Egypt and the coasts of Palestine and Lesser Asia. But the natives of some of the countries thus visited were as completely children of the sea as the
Greeks
;
navigators,
and the greatness of the Phenicians as mariners, and colonists, dates from an earlier time than that
It
of the Greeks.
if
them had
effects
upon one
side only,
and if not a trace were found in Hellenic lands of Syrian or Egyptian or Phenician influence. Such traces, however,
'
to the
Xa(r/xa
Eng. gape,
yazun, &c.
stories relating to the
A^af.
ii.
261.
POSEIDON.
207
The Greek alphabet is unquestionably Semitic, and Semitic words and names are found in Greek dialects and Greek mythology. The Boeotian Kadmos (Cadmus) is the man who comes from Kedem, the East and it is in the land in which he is said to have made his abode that the Phenician influence is most clearly seen. It is here that we find in the mythical Athamas and Melikertes a reproduction of the Semitic Tammuz and Melkarth. When, then, we have a name which we cannot explain by a comparison with any Greek words, and for which we find no equivalent in the language or the traditions of cognate tribes when the
;
named
is
not self-consistent
when
and struggles for the establishment of his power, and when, lastly, these traditions seem to indicate the East as the birthplace of his worship, then we are at the least free to see what may be said for and against the notion that the god in question is not a Greek or an Aryan, but a Semitic deity. Such a name is that of the so-called sea-god Poseidon. It cannot be explained by referring it to any Greek words and the attempts to connect it with Potamos and Posis are failures, because, beyond doubt, Poseidon was not, as this would show him to be, a god of fresh-water streams and rivers.' Nor can it with sufficient reason be connected with the root which gives us such words as Potis, Potnia, Potent, and
to disputes
;
him point
According to the Greek story, he was a son of Kronos and Rhea, and therefore a brother of Zeus and Hades and we have already seen that when the three brothers Poseidon,
;
Athene.
to the share of
who
received a trident as
tlie
emblem
'
of his power.
means of the
2o8
which HeHos
;
is
the moon.
waters.
its
movements
is
not within
is
its
The
true sea-god, as
we have
seen,
With Poseidon it looks much as though his rewas an after-thought, or as though it was suggested by the fact that his worship had been introduced from a foreign land. He belongs, indeed, much more to the earth than to the waters. Thus he is Gaieochos, the
Nereus.
lation to the sea
keeper or guardian of the world, and Enosichthon, the earthHe also disputes with Here, Helios, and Athene shaker. the sovereignty of certain Greek cities, not all of which are
on the sea-coast, while some are not even near it. The most signal of these contests was for the naming of Athens, which he wished, it is said, to call Poseidonia. In the council of the gods, who were summoned to settle the quarrel, Zeus decided that it should be named after the Upon deity who should confer the best gift on mankind. this Athene produced the olive tree, and Poseidon the horse and the victory was adjudged to the former, the olive being an emblem of peace and prosperity, and the horse a sign of war and wretchedness. Poseidon is thus immediately connected with the horse and the reasons for this connexion are certainly not apparent at the first glance. But even of this Introduction of
;
there are dififerent accounts for others maintained that Poseidon created the horse in Thessaly, while others again affirmed that the gift which he produced in his strife with Athene was not a horse, but a fountain which he opened by a stroke of his
Po-;^don^intf
Hellas.
fact
on the hill of the Akropolis. Throughout Greece, would seem that the efforts to establish his it supremacy were met with a very strong resistance. He said to have dried up the rivers when Here refused is In Corinth there was a to let him be king in Argos. compromise, by which Helios remained master of the
trident
indeed,
209
Akropolis, while Poseidon was acknowledged as lord of the In Delos and at Delphi he failed to cany his and he was content to give up his rights over the former in exchange for a temple on the island of Kalaureia, and over the latter for a sanctuary on the Cape of Tainaron, At Naxos he was defeated by Dionysos but in Aigina (Egina) he was victorious over Zeus himself. In the Iliad we have further a very singular story, which tells us that he plotted with Here and Athene to put Zeus in chains, and that he was outwitted by Thetis, at whose warning the king of Olympos placed the hundred-handed Briareos by
;
At
were ended, and Poseidon took his place among the Hellenic gods as one of the three Kronid brothers. Henceforth his dwelling was especially at Aigai (vEgae), where in his splendid palace he kept the gold-maned horses which bore his chariot over the waters. But the difference between himself and Zeus was sufficiently marked. Although he tells Here that his power united with hers could match that of the father of gods and men, he is unable to withstand him alone. He is also compelled, as are Apollo and Herakles, to do the work of a bondman. With Phoebus he is made to build the walls of Ilion for
Laomedon. When the task is done, Laomedon refuses to him the covenanted recompense and hence Poseidon, we are told, took the side of Agamemnon and Menelaos, when they came to Troy to avenge themsrlves on Paris.
give
;
Poseidon thus seems, to be pre-eminently a builder, who, would seem is therefore called Asphaliaios, and who is, for whatever reason, especially connected not with Poseidon, the ships only, but with the horse and the bull' The thebuii. same Phenician word, it is said, signifies both bull and ship and so the fact that his worship was brought into Hellas by men who came in ships might lead to the
it
;
See the story of the bull in the form of the Minotaur, monster which ravacres the fields of Marathon.
'
p.
2IO
name with the bull, although the connexion of the bull with the sanguinary Moloch of Semitic theology would seem to explain it sufficiently. But more particularly we may mark that the gods with whom he has disputes in Greece are the genuine Aryan deities, who seem to resent the intrusion of a stranger. Even after he had made good his footing in the halls of Olympos, he is still carefully distinguished from the gods who possess the wide heaven, and whose abode the gigantic Aloadai, the There can children of Poseidon, vainly attempt to storm. be little doubt, then, that his name is not Greek or even Aryan and it may, therefore, be found possibly in tnat of the Phenician Sidon, Sid-on, the ship of Aun, or On, the fish-god, who is seen again in the name ETag-on, and who is the great enlightener and teacher. This On was better Icnown to the Greeks as Oannes but the name is found in
association of his
;
Egypt, where Potiphera is his priest, and in the Jewish In the Syrian mythology Bethaven, the house of Aven.' this mysterious being is the husband of the fish-goddess Derketo, whom the Greeks called Atergatis, the mother of Sammuramit or Semiramis. But when the worship of Poseidon was introduced into Hellas, he was separated from his Syrian or Semitic mate, and wedded to Amphitrite, whose name carries us, as we have seen, to the Vedic god Trita, who reigns over the water and the air. We are thus brought back to the Greek Tritopator, to Tritogeneia as an epithet of Athene, and to Triton, the son of Poseidon. We find it also on Persian soil, where the Trita or Traitana of India reappears as Thraetana, the slayer of the serpent Zohak, or Azi-dahaka, the biting Ahi, of Vedic tradition, which is seen in the Greek Echi-dna. Among other inhabitants of the sea are Ino.the daughter of Kadmos and Harmonia, and her child Melikertes. In the Argonautic myth she plunges into the sea when she
This is the general argument and conclusion of Mr. Brown, in his Great , Dioiiysiak Myth,
'
211
In the Odyssey
she
is
nymph who
raft.
Odysseus as he
after the
breaking up of his
Melikertes was
also
known to the Greeks as Palaimon the wrestler, or, as some would have it, Glaukos. The stories told of him scarcely call for notice but his name is clearly that of the
;
Semitic Melkarth
his honour,
sacrifices of children in
and the horrid nature of his worsh-'p generally, are at once and fully explained. Without going further, we have a sufficient warrant for the assertion that the influence of the Assyrian or Semitic religion and mythology on that of the Greek world was far more direct and important than any that came from Egypt. In the traditions associated with the names of Dionysos and Poseidon we have clear evidence of a determined but unsuccessful
resistance
made
;
which seemed to the Greek mind both unseemly and extravagant and the whole of this evidence tends to prove that the stream of Assyrian or Phenician trade or enterprise
set
steadily
in
Of
the
we have
It
a terribly
Old Testament.
was a systematic
The sun had been worshipped at under a multitude of names and as in the Aryan world, so here, each name in process of time became the Thus Bel or Baal, and Moloch, the title of a different god. Ammonite Milcom, and the Sepharvaite Adrammelech and Anammelech, the Moabite Chemosh, and the kindred
the most cruel aspects.
first
;
Shemesh and Shamas, all (like Nebo and Tammuz) titles became separate deities by the same process which assigned to Apollo and Helios, Perseus and Endymion, a distinct personality. That this sensual and loathsome worship had a terrible attraction for the Jews is proved by the ceaseless protests and complaints of the
of the sun,
212
Prophets.
extended to the Greeks, The system of human sacrifices, for which the Semitic sun-god had an insatiable greed, but the spirit of never took deep root among them Semitic worship is seen in the rites by which Artemis Orthia was honoured at Sparta, in the orgies of the Dionysiac devotees at Thebes, and of the worshippers who at Ephesus and elsewhere shared the grief of Aphrodite or Astarte (the Ashtaroth of the Old Testament, the Ishtar of Babylon) for the loss of her darling Adonis and her exultation on his return. But even if Poseidon be regarded as an Hellenic god of the sea, he is still the lord only of the Thalassa or troubled waters and there remains a being far ji S^Ocfan^' more ancient and majestic, the tranquil Okeanos,^ Stream. whose slow-moving stream no storm can ruffle. He dwells in the far west, where are the sources of all things. From him flow all rivers and all the tossing floods, all fountains and all wells.^ He is, in short, himself the spring of all existence, whether to the gods or to men ^ and with his wife Tethys he is the guardian of Here, while Zeus is absent during his war with the Titans. The Hesiodic Theogony, which calls him a son of Ouranos and Gaia (heaven and earth), gives him three thousand daughters, who dwell in the lakes and fountains, and the same num; ;
;
ber of sons,
who inhabit the murmuring streams.* The Latin Neptunus is manifestly from his
j^j
name,-^
and
^f
Neptunus.
^^v^
god But following the fashion of gathered round him all the myths which in
gea at
all.
Greek poetry we
myth
of Osiris
See
p. 49.
//. xiv.
246, 301.
* It is
Greek
213
mythology
commerce, to refer their own Danaosand to that of the mysterious people of the ^syp^s.
need not, therefore, be surprised if in fifty sons of Aigyptos (Egyptus), and of the fifty daughters of Danaos, we find some foreign names, Egyptus pointing to Egypt, and Belos to Phenicia. It would be quite natural if details may have been invented for their voyages or journeys to harmonise with them. Tt is also possible that these voyages may have rested on traditions of some historical journeys, and to some relations between Egyptians and Greeks, for which we have no contemporary records. These, however, are mere speculations, from which perhaps little profit can be derived. What is beyond doubt is, that, if we put aside these two or three words, there remains in the whole list on either side not a single name which is not purely Greek or Aryan and the story of these two contending multitudes of sons and daughters can find its explanation, it would seem, only by a reference to the physical conditions of the Argive land. The story ran that Danaos and Egyptus were twin sons of Belos, brother of Agenor, who was father of Kadmos and Europa. The offspring of Danaos are fifty daughters, those of Egyptus fifty sons, who may be compared with the fifty children of Nereus, or of Asterodia and Endymion. Aided by Athene, Danaos builds a fifty-oared vessel, which his daughters row to the Rhodian Lindos, and thence to Argos, where they disembarked near Lerna during a great drought caused by the wrath of Poseidon. He is soon followed by Egyptus and his sons, who propose to marry, The ofier is each, one of the fifty daughters of Danaos. accepted but on the marriage day Danaos places a dagger in the hands of each of his daughters, charging them to slay their husbands. His command is obeyed by all except Hypermnestra, who was wedded to Lynkeus.
Nile valley.
the Argive myths of the
;
;
We
The
others
in
214
The punishment
unseen world was the filling of sieves with water.^ This myth is probably strictly geographical. The Argive soil is rich in wells or fountains, which in the myth are ascribed to Danaos, and these many wells are represented by his daughters. In the heats of summer these springs may fail, and even the beds of the larger streams, as the Inachos or the Kephisos, may be left dry, while during the rainy season these Charadrai or Cheimarrhoi, the zvinter-flowing streams, come down with great force and flood their banks. The wild pursuit of the sons of Egyptus may thus be the rush of the winter torrents which threaten to overwhelm the Danaides or nymphs of the fountains but as their strength begins to fail, they offer themselves as their husbands and are taken at their word. At length the waters of the torrents become even more scanty than those of the springs in other words, they are slain by their wives, who
;
may be said
The
to
draw or cut
Danaides are described as beheading their husbands. The heads they are said to throw into the marsh-grounds of Lerna, according to the promise of Poseidon that that
source should never
people.
fail,
the
this
we have
gives
who
is
called Lynkeus.
Of
name Pausanias
Lyrkeios was the
Lyrkeios.
But
in
name by which
its
;
known
and
would mean simply that while the other streams were dried
still
continued to flow.^
The
references
' For further details, see Myth, of Ar. Nat. ii. 266 et seq. ^ This is the explanation of Preller, Gt-iechische Mythologie, ii. It is 47. extremely ingenious, and probably not less corrert than ingenious. The myth seems certainly to stand by itself, with few features in common with other
Aryan
traditions.
215
for
and superfluous.
It is certainly
possible,
may not
be
may be
Poseidon, who seems to have found his way into Hellas from Semitic lands. Hence it has been thought^ that, when a foreign origin for the story was once suggested, the yearly
inundations and shrinkings of the Nile presented a point of comparison with the winter torrents of the Peloponnesos. But the Nile is one stream only, while in the Argive legend
we
ii.
47,
2i6
CHAPTER
VI.
THE CLOUDS.
for the cloud is Nephele, and Nephele is Athamas, whose name reproduces that of thc Scmitic sun-god Tammuz. She is the The children of Nephele. mother of Phrixos and Helle, whose story belongs to the great legend of the Argonauts and the tradition that her husband Athamas was brother of Sisyphos shows that the early Greeks were well aware of his real character and functions. Without going here into the Argonautic story, we may yet mark that the fate of Phrixos and Helle is precisely what their names would
The
Greek name
wife of
the
first
lead us to expect.
The name
the seed
;'
but although the explanation was etymologically wrong, agreed with the true meaning of the myth.
of the golden fleece of the dawn.
is
it
the carrying
when the sun went down must die out utterly, and Helle is this light. Phrixos is the Helle, therefore, falls cold air which cannot be destroyed. off from the ram's back and is drowned in the Hellespont,
the light in which they basked
We
' The name was thus supposed to be connected with the verb <pp\)yai. The mistake may be compared with the explanations given of the names Oidipous, Odysseus, and many more. It belongs more probably to the gioup of words related to the verb (ppiffo-ca, Phrixos being the cold, clear air, while Helle is
the air as
warmed by
217
meaning which
it
was
given to another, vanished away, and that her place was taken by Ino Leukothea, whose name proclaims her as the
open and glaring day. This goddess of the blazing sunis naturally an enemy of the children of Nephele or the mist and her enmity is shown in the drought which she brings upon the land. The Delphian oracle, being consulted on the plague, declares that the children of Athamas must be sacrificed. Ino seeks to bring the doom on Phrixos and Helle, but the ram sent by their mother Nephele bears them away, and Athamas in his madness fulfils the prophecy of the Pythian priestess by slaying his son Learchos. He is now told that he may find a home in a spot where wild beasts receive him hospitably. Coming to the Aleian plain he sees the bodies of some sheep which the wolves have left untasted, and he thus closes his days in the region which witnessed the last wanderings of Hipponoos Bellerophontes. As the story of Phrixos and Helle belongs to the Argonautic tradition, so the Phaiakian myth cannot well be separated from the narrative of the Odyssey. ThePhaiaThe Phaiakian land is the abode of men who, Odysseus. we are told, are not good boxers or wrestlers, but whom none can surpass in running or in the management of ships. What their ships are we have already seen and we need only note here that the Kyklopes^ are the mortal enemies of these wonderful mariners, who love to
shine
;
sail
The same
mythical necessity at once kindles their warmest affections when they look upon Odysseus. No sooner has the wanderer cleansed his face, after reaching the palace of Alkinoos, than his form gleams like a golden statue, and the same air of kingly majesty is thrown over him when he stands in
1
Seep.
3.
2i8
when they
when the sun regains its summer power, embodiment in Niobe but almost every
;
is
told in
many
ways.
mother of Phoroneus and the wife of Inachos but the more popular version makes her n daughter of Tantalos, and the wife of the Theban Amphion. Her name may with many others be traced back to a root smi, to flow, to which belongs the Sanskrit Nyava, as from Dyu we have Dyava, the Greek Deo, which we find in the compound Dyava-matar, the Hellenic Demeter. We can, therefore, understand why she should be the mother of many children, whose number and beauty make her presumptuous. Contrasting her six sons and six daughters with the two children of whom alone Leto was the mother, she rouses the wrath of that goddess, who bids Phoebus and Artemis to avenge the affront. These accordingly slay all the children of Niobe with the arrows which never miss their mark, and Niobe on the summit of Mount She is, in short, the Sipylos weeps herself into stone. representative of winter, whose children are smitten by the arrows of Phoebus and Artemis, as the winter gives place to summer. Thus the myth that there were none to bury them, because all who might have done so had been turned and thus into stone, indicates the petrifying power of frost also the tears of Niobe, as she sits on her stony seat, point to the weeping or melting of the frozen winter earth. With this myth we may compare that of Chione, who is slain by Artemis for presumption much like that of Niobe, and whose name strictly denotes the snow of winter, for which
she
is
By some
called the
The name of the Phaiakians must be compared Od. vi. 225, viii. 21. with the large group of words containing the root plm, which denotes light of Among all degrees as well as the voice, which reveals the thoughts of the mind. these are the Greek <^a!i.vw, (^mos, (pVH-t, and the Latin fari, fatum. &c.
'
CLOUDS.
the Greek word
in the
2ig
is Chion, the Latin Hiems, which reappears Indian Himalaya, the region of eternal ice.' As the bringers of rain to the dry and thirsting earth, the
who by their means and sustains the sons of men. But there The nymphs and the cattle are clouds of darkness and of drought as well as of the sun. clouds which yield the milk or nourishment of rain. The former are represented by the Theban Sphinx,^ the Hindu Vritra or Ahi or the Panis, or the Latin Cacus. Of the latter in the Rig Veda the guardian is Sarama, the goddess of the dawn, while in the Odyssey they are tended by Phaethousa and Lampetie, the bright and gleaming children whom
clouds are the cattle of the sun-god,
refreshes
But the children of the waters are closely The mists rise from the streams, lakes, and seas, and these mists may be beautiful, or gloomy, or even repulsive. Their most appalling form is perhaps that of the Cyclops Polyphemos, with whom we may compare the three daughters of Phorkos, who have but one tooth each and possess one eye only in common. These beings are called by ^schylus swan-shaped and in all Aryan legends the clouds appear in the form of swans, eagles, or other birds, or of maidens who have wings to carry them through the air. The Sphinx is the winged hound in the dramas of yEschylus, and the black ravens who roam across the sky are the messengers of Wuotan or Odin. But the distinction between these two classes of vapours is clearly drawn. The one brings famine and sickness the other restores the dead earth to life. To the latter class belong the nymphs who in the Delian Hymn wrap round the new-born Apollon his garment of morning mist, the Charites,"* who in the Odyssey attend on the dawn-goddess Aphrodite, and the singing swans who fly seven times round Delos at the birth
climbing sun.'
akin to the inhabitants of the cloudland.
;
' 2 ggg p. 36. See further Myth, of Ar. Nat. ii, 279. * For the special aspect which the cattle of the sun assume in this legend, See see Myth, of Ar. Nat. ii. 280. p. 63.
220
of PhcebiJS.
may easily in
mythical language
in their
on the ending of the enchantment under which they were held. Nay, Zeus himself, we are told, comes to Leda in the guise of a swan and hence from the two eggs severally sprang Kastor and Helen, Polydeukes and Klytaimnestra(Clytemnestra). If in another version the brothers are said to be the sons of Zeus, while Helen is the child of Tyndareos, we must not forget that Tyndareos is only a name for Zeus the thunderer. We are thus introduced into a world of transformations and enchantments, in which the ship and the swan are prominent forms. These images come before us in a large number of mediaeval traditions, of which the story of Beatrice, Matabrune, and Helias may be taken as a type. Under another name the rain clouds appear as the Hyades, who are said to be the daughters of Atlas and -^thra, the heaven and the pure air, or of Okeanos, The Hvades
either at their will or
;
human forms
'
and
Pleiades,
^j^^ ^^^\,^x,
As
the
Dodona, they are the guardians of the infant Dionysos, or the nurses of Zeus himself; and to requite them for their kindness, Dionysos makes Medeia, the wise daughter of the sun, restore them to youth when they had grown old, like the young clouds of morning which recall the vanished forms whose beauty glorified the sunset of the previous days. Their sisters are the Pleiades, whose name, indicating their kinship with vapour and water, was confused with that of the ringdove, Peleias and so the story ran that they were changed into doves and placed among the stars. The Pleiades are generally said to be seven in number, six being visible and one invisible. There remain in the popular traditions of the old Greeks a large number of mythical beings, whose origin it would
of or
;
nymphs
Nysa
be rash to attempt to define too sharply. Of their characteristics, some may be derived from mythical phrases
Myth, of Ar.
A' at.
ii.
284.
221
and shades of clouds and mist others clearly must come from a different source. But the names of many of these beings are mani- The Oraiai ^"'^ '''^ Gor_ /^ 11 A festly not Greek, and almost as clearly not Aryan, gons. The Muses and the _, ... ,. while some seem to be merely Greek translitera- Pierides. The Graiai and the Gorgons may tions of Semitic words. but we have represent only the gloaming and the night still to account for the fact, that of the three Gorgon sisters one is mortal, and that she is described as having been once beautiful, but as having become an object of horror under the ban of Athene, who resented her rivalry. Poseidon, we are told, loved Medusa in the fair spring-time, and Medusa became the mother of Chrysaor,' and of the winged
, 1
11
horse Pegasos,
who
Here Medusa is simply another be spoken of as mortal, since the birth of the sun must be fatal to the darkness out of which
the sovereign of Olympos.
Leto, and
may naturally
Her
it
springs.
beauty, therefore,
is
and moonlit
easy to
fair face
vexed by no tempest and it is not explain the change which comes over her countenight,
nance, except
by taking
it
as a picture of a storm.
is
vapours which stream like dark serpents across it and the horrible aspect thus imparted might well be regarded as a
punishment for the presumption which dared to put her beauty into comparison with that of Athene. That her offspring, Pegasos, was akin to cloud and vapour, is manifest not only from the name, which points to a source of waters, but from the myth that on the spot dinted by his hoof sprang the fountain Hippokrene. He springs from the waters, as Poseidon may be taken as a god of the sea and he is brought, as one legend went, ready saddled and bridled to Bellerophon, whom he bears in the battle with the Chimera. When the monster was killed, Bellerophon,
'
Seep.
85.
222
it is said,
to heaven on his back, but was from giddiness, while the horse continued to soar upwards. That Bellerophon is a purelyeither
thrown or
fell
off
solar hero,
we
shall see
;
when we come
and hence
Pegasos, it is difficult to avoid the conclusion that we have a series of pictures representing the action of the thundercloud in reference to the sun. But Pegasos is also the
and the Muses, like the clouds in an Aryan myth, appear in the form of swans. Of the rivalry between the Muses and the Pierides, we are told, that when the former sang, everything became dark and gloomy, while the song of the Muses brought back light and gladness, and Helikon leaped up in its joy and rose heavenwards, until a blow from the hoof of Pegasos smote it down. If, as it would seem, the myth exhibits the contrast between the sound of the winds in fine and in stormy
;
many
is
Kallimachos, Hyfun
to Delos,
255.
223
CHAPTER
VII.
THE EARTH.
In
its
all
is
treated as the
it
parent of
things.
Like Kronos,
may
mother or devour
Difference of
but its powers of reproduction far children exceed the sum of life which it takes away by the death of those who have done their work.
temldcm^tho'^y-
wedded to Ouranos, the Varuna of the Rig Veda, and from them proceeds the whole order ot
she
is
the earth
is
the bride of
Dyaus
in the
It
may seem
almost a para-
dox
restorer
and would be more likely to lead men on to the thought of a power transcending nature, or the forces which we see at work in the outward world, than the impressions made on the human mind by the phenomena of the daily or but on further thought, we can scarcely nightly heavens fail to see that the continuance of life on the earth, the unceasing restlessness, the perpetual change which is going on upon its surface, the sensitiveness of all vegetable and animal substances to the influences which act upon them from without, must inevitably lead men on to something more like a scheme of philosophy than any which could be furnished by mere phrases describing the phenomena of the day or the year. It does not follow that the condition of those who were thus led on should be happier than that of those who, from whatever cause, remained content with recording the impressions made upon them daily by the sights and sounds of the outward world. The
to say that the thought of the earth as a producer
;
224
with
noting the birth of the sun from the darkness, his love for the
dawn,
his early separation from the bright being who had cheered him at the beginning of his career, his long toil,
and reunion with the bright being from whom he had been parted long ago, his last sleep in the land of forgetfulness and his rising again to life and strength in the joyous regions of the dawn. The Phenician and the Canaanite could not rest here. They were themselves part of a mysterious system which whirled them through the realms of
final victory
infinite space, a
In
we have
was
The
spirit
of such a worship or
The ritual is beyond doubt aggressive and contagious. enthusiasm with which it fills the worshipper v/ill never and it moves allow him to rest in patient inactivity It is better him, unhappily, only in the direction of evil. to praise Ushas, or Eos, or Athene, or the dawn, under any
;
other
food,
assign to
it,
it
brings to
us,
than
movements,
and
fied
in the idea of
may
be typi-
by the
We may
say therefore, broadly, that the Semitic deities are cosmical, while those of the Aryan nations are phenomenal but the Semitic and Aryan tribes acted and reacted on each other, and, as we might suppose, the stronger influence was Nor can we say that it was exercised by the former.
It is impossible to exercised without strenuous opposition. extract history from mythology, except in so far as the myths themselves may point to definite schemes for upsetting
DTONYSOS.
and
the Boeotian and other
225
;
myths are
to
go
for anything,
we can
East
was received at first with a fierce antagonism, although in the end the resistance was overcome, and the foreign theology and ritual were accepted and maintained with a zeal which portended no good to the Aryan tribes which adopted it, and which in the end was fraught with mischief and disaster. This antagonism is brought before us most prominently in the legends relating to the anything but the mere deity of the god Dionysos, who wine-cup and the revel, as some Western myths would represent him to be. As in the case of Hermes, our chief Hellenic source for the myths relating to Dionysos is found in the Hymn addressed to the god. But there are, as we might j expect from what has been already said, few beings i^^oiiysos. in the wide range of Greek mythology more variously or, as we might imagine, more inconsistently described. For
into Hellas
I's
in his history
him a son of Zeus and Demeter, or lo, or Dione Others make him a son of Ammon and Amaltheia the nurse of Zeus in the cave of Dikte. But the most popular tale was that which described him as a son of Zeus and Semele, the daughter of the Theban Kadmos (Cadmus). We have seen that this name, like those of Athamas, Melikertes, and others occurring in the mythology of Boeotia, furnishes evidence that this part of Greece was largely affected b}'' Eastern thought and Eastern worship. If, as it would seem, these names are unquestionably Semitic, it is possible and even likely that the other names which cannot be explained by words in Greek or other Aryan languages may be Semitic also. Among such names is that of Poseidon and in his case we have seen that his worship was not only brought from Asia to
of variations.
call
;
number
Some
226
We shall
;
related of Dionysos
admit
that his
name
is
the presumption
we maybe
dealing
The
parentage.
Dionysos and semeie.
One
^hat
tale related
his
the sea cast up on the shore of Brasiai that Semele was taken up dead but that the babe was rescued and nourished by Ino.^ This incident is repeated in the story of Perseus
;
in
many
more.
Semele, thus urged, asked Zeus to visit her in his Olympian splendour, and was scorched by the lightnings as he
approached
her.
in the story of
Dionysos was born, some Mount Nysa but mountains of this name were found in many lands. In the general character of his life he belongs to the large class of gods and heroes who had to pass through a time of grievous toil and danger before they attained to fame and
sojourn in the land of Hades.
said, in
Naxos
according to others on
glory.
Having resolved, it is said, to leave Orchomenos, where he had spent his youth, he stood on a jutting rock, where his Dionysos and dark" locks Streamed over his shoulders, and his
^"'*"
^afiotr"
Leaving
their
The splendour some Tyrrhenians who were vessel, they came to the rock,
it
'
{^a.vQo\ (co/<oi)
dilTered greatly
heroes.
127
and seizing Dionysos, bound him with strong withy bands, which fell from him like leaves from a tree in autumn. In vain the helmsman warned them to have nothing to do with one who manifestly belonged to the race of the undying gods but as they sailed away with Dionysos, suddenly there ran on the deck a stream of purple wine, and a Over the fragrance of a heavenly banquet filled the air. masts and sailyards a vine clambered round the tackling tangled masses of ivy were mingled with bunches of glistening grapes, and bright garlands shone like jewels on every oar-pin. Smitten with fear, the sailors crowded round the helmsman, when suddenly a loud roar was heard, and a tawny lion with a grizzly bear stood fronting them. The men leaped over the ship's side, and were changed into dolphins and Dionysos, once more taking his human form, rewarded the helmsman for his kindness, and brought a north wind, which carried the vessel to the land of Egypt, Avhere Proteus was king. After sojourning a while in Egypt, he journeyed on through many lands, through Ethiopia and India and other countries, followed everywhere by crowds of women,, who worshipped him with wild cries and songs. At last he returned to the Boeotian Thebes, where Kadmos had made his son Pentheus king. The latter received Dionysos with great suspicion. He could look only with disgust and dread on the strange rites which Dionysos taught to the women, and the frenzy with which he inspired them. But resistance was vain. Pentheus himself was smitten by a mad longing to witness the
;
orgies of the
women,
as they congregated
by themselves,
this
allowing no
place
man
to be near them.
;
For
purpose he
by the women, who tore him to pieces, his own mother Agave being the first to lay hands upon. him. Such a story as this, it is clear, could never have sprung up except in a country where at some time or other the introduction of a foreign ritual had been strongly resisted, Q2
228
we
find a vast
the Homeric
But the story as given in show that, although Dionysos was undoubtedly a god of the vine, this was only one of many attributes assigned to him, and by no means his most important attribute. As Orion and Phoebus, Alpheios and Odin are hunters, so Dionysos is especially a wanderer, like Odysseus, Herakles, and Apollo, journeying round the world with the revolving seasons and on him depends, or with him is closely connected, the power of growth which His special calls forth all the fruits of the teeming earth. and we are, characteristics seem again to be non-Aryan therefore, justified in inferring that they may perhaps be Semitic. In Apollo, for instance, we have none of the violent passion, the vehement frenzy, the wild motion of Dionysos and as time went on the conception of the latter seems to have been more and more shaped by Semitic ideas and forms of thought. The Dionysos of the Greek tragic poets may be described as a horned stranger from Nysa, a thyrsos-bearing, serpent-crowned god, called Chrytribcs.
HcUenic
is
Hymn
of itself enough to
the
in a
As
compromise. He became the associate and rival of Demeter and Phoebus and the joint ritual of Delphi, where Dionysos had as great a share in the Delphic oracle as Apollo, corresponded with the joint ritual of Dionysos and Demeter at Eleusis.'
;
If
it
or an
be said that the name Dionysos has rather a Greek Aryan than a Semitic look, we have to remember
^hat the argument
trusted.
is
may be
name of we have
To
Their
belief, as
229
was wrong
of
its truth,
whose heedlessness plunges mankind which his brother had delivered them. Yet the name Prometheus was simply a Greek form of the Sanskrit Pramantha, or churn for producing fire. We have also seen that Phoroneus reproduces the Vedic Bhuranyu, as Hermes answers to Sarameyas, and Erinys to Saranyu, although the Greek was profoundly ignorant of the fact, and of the conclusions to be drawn from it. There is, therefore, nothing to surprise us if it should be found that the Zeus Meilichios of the Greeks had nothing to do with the mildness and gentleness which this epithet ascribed to him, and that the name Meilichios, although a genuine Greek word, was applied to him simply because it came nearest in sound to the Semitic Melekh or Moloch, much as the story of Whittington and his cat sprang up from the likeness, as seen on paper, between the English cat and the French acJiat. This Melekh or Moloch, whom we have seen in the form Melikertes, reappears probably in the name Bacchus. The first syllable of the word is seldom preserved entire. Seen in its full form in Hamil-car, it passes into the abraded forms Mocar, Macar, and Micar, for Molcar, Malcar, and Milcan Mocar again appears in the form Bocar, Macar as Bacar, and so with the rest. So too Bokchus or Bocchus, the name of certain Mauretanian kings, is also written Bocus and Mocus, and is a contraction of Malchus or Malek and so in the Greek Bacchus we have a variant form of Melkarth. But Bacchus and thus Dionysos is himself Zeus is admittedly Dionysos If, however, we ask what Meilichios, the Moloch or king. the name Dionysos may itself mean, the answer is less clear and certain. Some have tried to explain it as a Greek
afterthought,
into a misery almost worse than that from
; ;
ment of
judge of men.
230
unseen world,
Rhadamanone
(/Eacus).'
The
and the
Dionysosa
idea of Dion}^sos
dislike
,
a and intricate Semitic -^ thcology which was mixed up with it. Dionysos was, in fact, the mysterious mover and movement of the universe, the expression of the vast and mighty changes which go on within it and the conception of the god thus became one of incomprehensible grandeur, but cumbrous and oppressive from its very greatness. In all this there was little to attract the genuine Greek, who was content to dwell on the simple image of the ivy-crowned son of Semele. But the inroads of foreign beliefs could not be effectually resisted. In later Greek traditions Dionysos becomes identified with the horned Zagreos, whom his father Zeus places beside him on his throne. The jealousy of Here is thus roused, and at her instigation the Titans slay Zagreos, and, cutting up his limbs, leave only his heart, which Athene carries to Zeus. This heart is given to Semele, who thus becomes the mother of Dionysos, in whom Zagreos springs to life again. In his earlier and, from the Aryan point of view, more genuine character, Dionysos is attended by the beautiful Charites, the ministers of the dawn-goddess Aphrodite, who give place in the later mythology to troops of raging Mainades or Bassarides, bearing in their hands the budding thyrsos, which marks the connexion of this worship with that of the great
at first to his worship sprang from
.
shown
,
As a being concerned with the unceasing processes of reproduction going on in the world around us, Priapos
holds a conspicuous place
'
;
2 The name Zagreos cannot probably be explained by a comparison -wath any Greek words, or by a reference to any Aryan languages. Nor have those who would wish to trace it to a Semitic source been thus far successful in
their efforts.
EARTH-GODDESSES.
suous idea in
its
231
and we need only say of him that he is spoken of as a son sometimes of Dionysos Priapos. or Adonis, sometimes of Hermes or of Pan, while All his mother is either Aphrodite or the Naiad Chione.
grossest form
^
;
these
v.'inds
is
names denote simply the relation of the waters to the and the sun, and point to the yearly renewal which carried on by all these powers in their due measure.
is,
Priapos
in fact,
like
them, he has
idea
The same
was expressed by the Latin Mutinus or Muttunus, who was represented by the same symbol which was associated
with the
name
true
of Priapos.
Hellenic
earth-goddess,
is
The
nourisher of
all
living things,
his
the maiden
whom, without
had promised to Hades as his wife. The Ian- Ceres. guage in which she would be addressed would necessarily exhibit a close likeness to the phrases in which the Vedic poet loves to speak of Ushas as the delight of all the children of men, so that it may even be hard to distinguish between the light which recalls all living things to life from the death of sleep, and the earth which answers to her kindly greeting and her genial warmth.^ Like Hestia, Demeter is a daughter of Kronos and Rhea, and therefore a sister of Zeus, Poseidon, and Hades. In Greek mythical tradition she is especially the mother mourning for
the loss of her
summer
child.
By
;
producer of
was
identified
but the beautiful Eleusinian legend never grew up on Italian soil, and indeed could never take root there in the religious system of the people.^
The name is probably akin to Fro and Friuja. See p. 48. Hence it matters little whether the name Demeter be referred to the root which gives ns the names Ge and Gaia, or to that of Zeus, Dyaus, and Tyu,
'
Professor Max Miiller, preferrhig the latter explanation, refers it to Afyfh. of Ar. N'at. ii. 301. the Sanskr. Dyava-matar, the dawn-mother. ^ By some the word Ceres has been regarded as meaning the maker, and therefore as allied to the Greek Kpeiwp, and the Latin c/-eo, with many more.
Tir, Tyr.
232
The maiden, we are told, was playing with her companions on the plains of Enna, when far away across the
mcadovv hcr cyc caught the gleam of a narcissus flowcr. As she ran towards it a fragrance, which reached to the heaven and made the earth and sea laugh for gladness, filled her with delight. It was the stupifying odour of the plant of lethargy and when she stretched out her arms to seize the stalk with its hundred flowers, the earth gaped, and before her stood the immortal horses bearing the car of the king Polydegmon, who placed her by his side. In vain the maiden invoked the aid of Zeus, who was far away receiving the offerings and prayers of men in his holy places and there was none to hear her save Hekate, and Helios, the bright son of Hyperion, and one other, the loving mother, whose heart was pierced as with a sword when the cry of her child reached her ears, echoing mournfully over hills, valleys, and waters. Then Demeter threw a dark veil over her shoulders, and hastened like a bird over land and sea searching for her child. But neither god nor man could give her tidings, until, with torch in hand, she reached the cave of Hekate, who
Derneter and Persephone,
;
knew only of the theft of the maiden, but could not tell whither she had been taken. From Helios, whom she addresses as the all-seeing, she learns that her child
is
the
bride of Aidoneus,
who
The grief of the mourning mother is almost swallowed up in rage as she leaves the home of the gods and wanders along the fields and by the cities of men, so changed in form and so closely veiled that none could know the beautiful queen who had till then shed a charm of loveliness over all the wide world. At last she sat down by the wayside, near Eleusis, where the maidens of the city came to draw water from the fountain. Here,
the earth.
It may, however, belong to the group of words akin to the Sanskrit sarad, autumn, for which we may assign a root sri, to cook or ripen. 1 vdjiKT], vdpKUTffos. See p. 96.
233
on being questioned by the daughters of Keleos the king, the mourner tells them that her name is Deo, and that, having escaped from Cretan kidnappers, she seeks a refuge and a home where she may nurse young children.^ Such a home she finds in the house of Keleos, which But the poet makes her enter veiled from head to foot. for a moment he forgets what he has said, when DemSter in 11 the house of ,1 he tells us that at her entrance her head touched Kdeos. the roof, while a blaze of light streamed through the doors and filled the dwelling. Not a word does she utter in answer to the kindly greetings of Metaneira, the wife of the king and the deep gloom is broken only by the jests and sarcasms of the serving-maid lambe. When Metaneira offers her wine, she says that now she may not taste it, but asks for a draught of water mingled with flour and milk, and then takes charge of the new-born son of Keleos, whom she names Demophocn. Under her care the babe thrives marvellously, though he has no nourishment either
1
1
111
of bread or of milk.
The
;
frustrated
by
screams with fear, and is told by Demeter though her child shall ever receive honour because he has slumbered in her arms, still, like all the sons of men, and like Achilles himself, he must die. Nevertheless, though she cast the child away from her, she still remained in the house of Keleos, mourning and grieving for the maiden, so that all things in the heaven above and in the earth beneath felt the weight of her sorrow. In vain the plough turned up the soil in vain was the barley seed scattered along the furrows. In Olympos itself the gloom and sadness was so great that Zeus bade Iris to go and summon Demeter But neither her words nor to the palace of the gods.
in the flames,
that,
; '
Hymn
to
Demeter, 123
et seq.
234
bend her
will
not
her eyes have looked upon her child once more. Then Hermes, at the bidding of Zeus, enters the dismal under-world, and Polydegmon consents to
leave the place of her exile
who
joy that
he cannot altogether give up his bride, and Persephone finds that, having eaten the pomegranate seed, she must come back to Aidoneus again. But even with this condition the joy of the meeting is
is
coming.
Still
must Persephone be queen in Hades through all the other months she is to be once more the beautiful maiden who sported with her comrades on the plains of Enna. The wrath of
scarcely lessened. For a third part only of the year
;
fragrance,
grain.
Demeter departs with her grief; the air is filled with and the corn fields wave with the ripening
Such was the story told by the poet who composed the in honour of the goddess. But for many of the de^^^^^s
hymn
Demetei-and
Thus
it
is
uemophoon.
g^;j
^^^
^^j^g^
Demophoon
to be
tolemos a chariot drawn by winged dragons, and taught him to plough the earth and to sow wheat, thus winning for herself the title of Demeter Thesmophoros, as the
guardian of peace, order, and law. For the people of Eleusis her sojourn
in the house of Keleos was an event of vast moment. Having bidden Kclcos to build E temple for her worship, she Eleusis the
trysting place,
jnstructed
him and
brated there in her honour. The name Eleusis, which denotes a place of meeting, thus acquired a double meaning.
It
235
and
which made
itself.
Olympia
By
and their striking circumstantiality, were regarded as the history of events which had actually occurred at the place. But so clearly does the record explain itself, that it becomes almost superfluous to add that it grew up out of the old phrases which at first described the changes of summer and winter. The sorrow of Demeter is nothing but the gloom which falls on the earth during the cheerless months of winter and the outburst of spring
strong- local colouring
;
is
all
a story found in
all
may be Teutonic everywhere ^I^Xof "^""^ the same. In some Persephone appears as a ^'^^^^pho"^. beautiful maiden, who, while the earth without is cold and dead beneath its shroud of snow, lies wrapped in slumber, hidden away from all mortal eyes. But in all the stories we have the images of boundless wealth which the robbers have carried away, and for the time rendered useless. These robbers in the Teutonic legends are the Niflungs or Nibeseasons are marked.
different
;
Particular features
but the
who
again to one to
they must submit, as In these tales generally the summer maiden is imprisoned in a subterranean palace, or in a stronghold surrounded by hedges of thorns or spears and there she must remain until the arrival of her destined deto the bidding of Hermes.
;
whom
liverer.
day.
in a a newly-risen sun after the winter solstice makes the attempt to throw down the icy barriers, and is compelled to retreat and sink below the horizon baffled and
Many
conquered.
tales in
in
We have thus here the germ of those many which a series of knights or heroes attempt a task which one only is to succeed, and we can at once ac-
236
makes the
man who
This
doom
of those
who
fail.
In that of Ra-
is
Dwarf she
which clearly reproduces the narcissus, and thereupon sinks a hundred fathoms deep in the earth, where the prince finds her with the nine-headed dragon resting on her lap. The palace of Polydegmon, in the Eleusinian myth, becomes in the German tale the House in the Wood, which in other stories is the case of ice in which the seemingly dead princess is laid. This house or case breaks up at the destined time. The sides crack, the story tells us, the doors were slammed back against the walls the beams groaned as if they were being riven away from their fastenings the stairs fell down, and at last it seemed as if the whole roof fell in.' The maiden on awakening from her slumber finds herself in a splendid palace, in which her eyes feast on beautiful forms. Persephone has, in short, returned from the dungeons of Hades to her summer home. The gradual lengthening of the days, as bringing about the victory of the sun over the winter, is brought out with singular clearness in Grimm's story of the Nix of the Parted from her husband, the dawn-maiden in Mill Pond. this tale betakes herself to an old woman, who bids her comb her hair by the water-side, and see what will come of it. As she plies her comb, a wave rolling to the bank carries it away. The waters now began to bubble, and the head of the huntsman is seen but another wave rolled up
'
;
;
In place of the
comb
the old
*
woman
and
this
'
not only
EARTH-DEITIES.
the head, but half the body of the man,
his
;
lyj
who
stretched out
arms towards his wife but at the same moment a wave came, and, covering his head, drew him down again.' The third time she comes with a spinning wheel of gold," and the huntsman now succeeds in leaping out of the water, and in escaping with his wife from the demons who seek to seize him, as the Gorgons chase Perseus after the death of Medusa. In the Norse tale of the Old Dame and her Hen, the maiden falls down a cave within a mountain and
;
Eleusinian
is
is
hard
pinched, she knows, for meat and drink, and has no one
with
her.'
Another earth-goddess
the benignant Holda, the bright lady.
in
German popular
tradition
is
who
Holda
winter-bound earth under her genial mantle of snow. As the flakes fall she is said to be making
dotus we read that they fill the air The name of Frau Holda became
legends into Pharaildis, of
In the Eleusinian
in the
Scythian land.
is
Latinised in mediaeval
told in
whom
a strange story
myth Demeter
is
is
As
poina and Orion. She also loves lasion, the "f^^^^"'"'son of Zeus and Hemera, the heaven and the day, and becomes the mother of Plouton or Ploutos, the god who guards the treasures of the earth, and who, as Pluto, was regarded by Latin writers as representing the Greek Hades.
in
name nor
in
idea.
The
We
is
the
myth of
2 For the very remarkable Hindu story of Little Surya Bai (the Sun-child), and the significance of its minutest details, see Myth, of Ar. Nat. ii. 303 ' Myth, et seq. of Ar. Nat. ii. 306.
238
name was Dis as a shortened probably a mistake, the word being akin rather to Deus, Divus, and the Indian Dyaus. The name Proserpina, assigned to the wife of Pluto, seems to be nothing more than an adaptation of the Greek Pernotion that his true Latin
form of
sephone.
But
if
we have
IV.
Saturnus
and Ops.
little
They
Thus
Saturnus,^ identified
by
he
Greek Kronos,
whom
no way resembles,
is
tolemos.
therefore, more nearly to the Eleusinian TripWith no better reason Ops, a goddess of wealth and fertility, who was assigned to him as his wife, and whose name corresponds in meaning with that of Plouton and At the end of his work Pluto, was identified with Rhea.
and answers,
Saturn
is
phone disappears when the summer has come to an end and the local tradition went, we are told, that Latium ^ was
his lurking place.
In the Latin Genii we have beings closely akin to the Dryads and Hamadryads of the Greeks. Their life ceased, The Latin it was supposcd, witli that of the persons whom I'ndigetes. thcy guardcd. The name Dii Indigetes was nothing more than a title for those mythical heroes of the
land
who after death were ranked among the gods. With Saturn we may take Pilumnus, Picumnus, and Semo-Sancus. The first and second of these are said to
;
have been brothers, and were worshipped as rural deities but their names are mere epithets, Pilumnus being the
' may compare the name with the Teutonic Soetere. ^ From a supposed connexion wiih the verb latere, to lie hid. The explaLatium is the land of the Latini, a name nation was undoubtedly wrong. winch seems to assume a wonderfully large variety of forms, whatever may be the couunon source of them all.
We
239
the
tiller
of the earth.
are sometimes
taken together
Piiumnus,
They belong
iM
1
really to
two gods, bancus bemg, like the Zeus Fistios or Semo-sancus. Horkios of the Greeks, the ratifier of oaths and contracts and Semo, like Saturnus, the sower of the seed. In the Palici we have twin deities worshipped in Sicily, of whom little more is known than the names, which may, perhaps, be connected with that of Pales, a rural deity worshipped especially by shepherds. Pomona was the Latin goddess of fruit trees and their fruits, as Flora was the guardian of flowering plants. As there was nothing answering exactly to her in ^^^^^^ ^^^ Greek mythology, Pomona retained her Latin -^""^ Perenna. form, and is said to have been loved by Silvanus, a deity of the woods by Picus, who, like Picumnus, is the tiller of the ground and by Vertumnus, the god of the changing
; ; ;
/r7
!-.
P cumnus, and
seasons.
was known
Anna
Perenna, of
whom
Virgil speaks as a
sister of the
by a
It is
people
who had
its
original
meaning
but the
we have a deity named Apnapurna, who gives subsistence, who is bent by the weight of her full breasts, and in whom all good is united.' The title Apna, which we have already met with in the Apsaras,' points to nourishment by water, while Purna belongs apparently to the same stem with the Latin pario, to produce. A similar idea is expressed in the title Bona Dea, or good
noteworthy that
'
in
Sanskrit
goddess,
who
is
and who was worshipped only by women. She is herself called Fauna but Fauna and Faunus seem to mean simply the favourers, and were rural deities of the old Latins, Of the Latin god Consus little more is known than that
;
'
Note
3, p.
204.
240
Consus.
i^y^.
j^.
jg i^y j^Q
means
even this
There is, perhaps, an affinity of name between the Latin Consus and the Indian Ganesa, the lord of life and the reproductive powers of nature, the name reappearing in the Greek gefios and our kin. Hence it is, perhaps, that when Romulus is in want of women for his new city, it is to Consus that he makes his vows and prayers. The Consualia would thus precisely correspond with the Eleusinian festival of Demeter. The story of the earth and her treasures, which the Eleusinians embodied in their myth of Demeter, the AtheVI.
name
of Erichthonios
which,
if
51?andhis
kinsfolk.
and the
rivalry of the
two
cities,
we
do
recorded by Herodotus,
to
tale,
found expression
in war,
which spoke of Erichthonios as a son of Atthis, daughter of Kranaos, another version calling him a child of Athene herBut Kranaos, as we have seen,' is a title of Athene, self. and Atthis is probably only the dawn-goddess of Athens under a slight disguise. In the story related by Apollodoros, Athene becomes his mother when she goes to Hephaistos to
ask for a suit of armour.
she places
the
it
Soon
in
They disobey, and find the coils of a snake folded lid. round the body of the babe. They throw themselves down and the dragon-bodied or the precipice of the Akropolis snake-bound Erichthonios lives on under the special pro;
See
"
Of
is
is
dewy, abode
p. 71. these three Herse is the mother of Prokris ; and Pandrosos, the allAgraulos is simply the being whose but the reduplication of Herse. the open country.
EARTH
tection of Athene.
his
DEITIES.
241
in
grandson Erechtheus, who is said to have been killed by the thunderbolts of Zeus after his daughters had been
Eumolpos by the But both these legends simply repeat the myth of the dragon-bodied Kekrops, who is said to have given his name to the land which till then had been called Akte, and who was the father of the faithless nurses of Erichthonios. Like the Greek words Herse, Selene, and Helios, the Latin Tellus or Terra was a name the meaning of which was never either lost or weakened. It belongs ^erra, Teiius, ^^^'^ to a group of words, all denoting dryness and ^""^ comparative hardness and the Latin terra is, in fact, the dry land but it was otherwise with Mars, whom the Latin
sacrificed to atone for the slaughter of
Athenians.
contain, as
we have
seen, the
same
root
but the genuine Latin Mars was originally the reaper of fruits and grain, his name pointing to the softer and milder
aspects of decay.
Hence he
is
prepares
father
its
harvests.
living
As
such, he
of
all
things,
Marspiter
Maspiter,
the
As
earth
;
Olympian deities, is closely connected with the and she became pre-eminently the great yjj ^'lea. mother, worshipped under the names Ma and Abbas, and perhaps more widely known as Kybele and
the great
Kybebe."^
There remain still certain groups of mysterious beings whose origin cannot perhaps be determined with any approach to absolute certainty, but who both in their names
"-
See
p. 36.
For the origin of the name Rhea, see Myth, of Ar. Nat. li. 312. The hence it is probable tliat, are certainly not Greek Adonis, Melikertes, Bacchus, and many others, they may be Semitic.
;
342
and
character seem
to
have
httle or nothing in
common
The Kabeiroi
j'laktyioi.
the
Korybantes, the Idaian Daktyloi, Kouretes (Curetes), and the Telchines. The efforts made to explain these names by a comparison with Greek words, or with the words of any Aryan language, cannot be regarded as successful. At the utmost we can only say that in one or two instances the explanation is plausible, and no more. We have to note further that they belong to
lands lying far to the east
is
;
and thus
still
further warrant
given for the surmise that both the names of these beings and the ideas expressed by them may be Semitic.
grace,
who
some
instances dwarfish, in
uncouth and repulsive. The Kabeiroi, whatever else they may be, are described as nourishcrs of the earth and its fruits, and as the givers of wine to the ArgDnauts and if their name is only a Grecised form of the Semitic Gibbor and Gibborim,' they are the 'mighty ones' who carry on the great work of reproduction throughout the
;
The Telchines are pre-eminently forgers of weapons, or instruments for the gods, and they resemble the metal-working Kyklopes, not only in their work, but in their parentage, which exhibits them as sons of Poseidon, and may possibly imply that, like him, they had crossed
material world.
iron,
feet,
They are creatures without they can pour down rain and snow on the earth, and they can change their form at will. According to Strabo, those of the Telchines who went with Rhea to Crete were
the sea from Semitic lands.
there called Kouretes,
as guardians of Zeus, the child but the explanation is probably worth as much or as little as that which the Greeks could give of the name Prometheus.
(Kouros)
'
vol.
ii.
133, 213.
NYMPHS AND
Among
SATYRS.
243
the Satyrs and Seilenoi, or children of Seilenos. the former dwelt amongst woods and
latter
hills
;
Of
these
the
jj^g g^jy^s
marshy
to
andSeiienoi.
grounds, and are thus, like the Naiads, spirits of the waters.
made
assume may
be an exaggeration of the Western Greeks, who saw in the ass which bore him a mere sign of his folly and absurdity, while it points rather to the high value set upon that animal
by Eastern nations. It was, in fact, the symbol of his wisdom and of his prophetical powers, and not the mere beast of burden which in Western myths staggered along
under the weight of an unwieldy drunkard. The story of his being caught in the rose gardens of Midas connects him with the myth of that Phrygian king who, as we have seen, is only Tantalos in another form.^ The fancies which
represented
the children of Seilenos and the Satyrs as
heads, arms, and breasts, with the lower
having
human
But the name of Seilenos, as a water-sprite, may suggest a comparison with the Italian Silanus, a word for gushing or bubbling streams, and with the Seirens, who likewise haunt the waters.^ Akin to these are the Oreads or spirits of the mountains, and the Dryads, or nymphs living in or with
trees.
expresses more
life
fully the
was determined by
See
p. 100.
See
p. 192.
244
CHAPTER
Among
J
VIII.
primitive
Hades,
stealing
away
of the
dawn-mother by the
In the Teutonic round the maiden Brynhild and her wealth of gold on the Glistening Heath. In the Eleusinian myth Demeter mourns for the beau tiful child who has been taken away to the regions of darkpitiless
lies
greedy and
winter.
Fafnir
coiled
ness.
These
regions, therefore,
become a prison or a
all
store;
future
harvests
and
was regarded as a
flat surface,
the under-
world became a land of unimaginable riches, although it was not on this account rendered less gloomy. The lord of this cheerless abode, according to Hellenic belief, was Hades or Aides, the third of the three Kronid brothers and We might suppose that his name in children of Rhea. some of its forms denotes his sovereignty over an unseen kingdom. The variations Ais, Aides, and Aidoneus seem at the least to indicate such a belief among the Greek but in this belief they may have been as much mistribes taken as in most of the explanations of names which they attempted to interpret without the knowledge of any language but their own. The helmet given to him by the Cyclopes renders the wearer invisible. Thus Perseus, to whom it is given when he goes to the Gorgon land, cannot be seen so long as he has it on his head, but is again visible
:
'
845.
HADES.
245
when he takes it in his hand. It is, in short, the Tarnkappe of the popular German stories, and of the NibelungenHed. But we may fairly doubt whether Hades and Aides are merely different forms of the same name, or whether they are not, rather, two distinct words. The name of Hodr, the slayer of Balder, can scarcely be left out of consideration, when we are dealing with a cognate
being in Greek tradition.
As one
Hades
is
is the maiden (Kore) for whom the earth-mother Hades and the mourns during the months of winter, and who gods. then returns to gladden gods and men with the sunshine and fruits of summer but in later versions of the myth Hades himself never departs from his dark abode, and therefore he was never reckoned among the twelve Olympian gods. In the Iliad and Odyssey this distinction is not known and there he has the power of going at will to Olympos. He appears before Zeus and the gods, when he is wounded by Herakles. The home of Hades is the bourne to which all the children of men must come, and from which no traveller returns and thus he becomes the host who jj^^g^ p^jy. must receive all under his roof, and whom it is ^^^s'"""best therefore to invoke as one who will give them a kindly welcome in other words, as Polydektes, Polydegmon, or
; ; ;
'
who
will assign to
every
the
man
place of repose.
Still
awful
He must
the
be addressed, not as
;
and the averted face of him may remind us of the rites of the devil-worshippers of the Lebanon at the present His palace is guarded by the monstrous dogs Orthros day. and Kerberos (Cerberus), the latter of whom has three
as Plouton (Pluto) the wealthy
man who
offered sacrifice to
'
As
such,
it is
Anostos.
246
These are the Vritra and (^arvara of the Vedic mythology of India. On examining the myth generally,
heads.
we can
scarcely
fail
way
of
continuous story related of this god. We have a series of separate pictures, describing either his person, his character,
or his
world Persephone and he comes on the field of Enna, just as she has plucked the deadly narcissus or lethargic plant, only to steal her away, and is noticed again only as suffering her to return to earth when the messenger of Zeus constrains him. In describing his shadowy kingdom poets might exercise their fancy but their notions could only add to the separate features by which some idea might be imparted of the outlines of the unknown land. It had first, it would seem, one river running through it, the Acheron, whose name is probably only another form of the Acheloos, and of the many other words for running water which contain the same root with the Latin aqua. But to a Greek ear the name Acheron called up the idea of grief and pain, and the stream was therefore supposed to be laden with aches and woe. It became easy to multiply the number of such streams, and to place on its desolate wastes the gloomy Styx, at which men shudder, as the boundary which separates the world of the dead from the world of the living, and to lead through them the channels of Lethe, in which all things are forgotten, of Kokytos (Cocytus), which echoes only with groans of pain, and of Pyriphiegethon, whose waves are billows of fire. The passage beyond which this gloomy region lies is guarded by Erebos, who in the Hesiodic Theogony is descdbcd as the offspring of Chaos. This name may Erebos and Charon. it is more probably nonpcrhaps be Aryan Aryan. To the Semitic tribes Arabia is not the eastern but the western land, and the Algarve of Portugal answers to the Estremadura of Spain. In the name of his son Charon we com.e back to a word which is perhaps both Aryan
abode.
is
He
247
He is the grim and silent ferryman who bears the souls of the dead across the Stygian stream to the judgment seat of Minos, Rhadamanthys, and Aiakos (^acus) but probably before the myth took this definite shape, he was, as his name seemingly denotes him to be, the ogre with gaping jaws always hungering to swallow any prey that may come within his reach. He would thus belong to the family of the Greek Lamyroi, or devourers, who reappear in the Latin Lemures or Manduci.
;
But a sojourn
in the
doom
of
all,
cepted as righteous by the three judges pass to the happy abodes of Elysion, far away in the
west,
earth.
where the sun goes down beyond the bounds of the Here no grief or sorrow, no sickness or pain, can ever touch them. In the description of this blissful abode we have the same images of beauty which are seen in the pictures drawn of the palace of Alkinoos and the source from which they spring is the same. The phrases bring before us the glories of the golden sea, in which the sun sinks to rest and the thought of those who have passed away after having done great things and won themselves a place among the good and noble of mankind was naturally associated with the peace and rest of this unsullied home. Achilles is here and Hektor but the hand of the Trojan hero is clasped Helen, too, is here in the hand of the man who slew him. 'pardoned and purified,' and is now the bride of him who left Phthia to fight in a quarrel which was not his own. It is, after all, only another version of the myth which reunites lole with Herakles, Urvasi with Pururavas, Psyche with Eros but if the myth itself was in its origin purely physical, it led the mind of the primitive men on to the and the human mind, thought of trial and purification having advanced thus far, could not fail to advance further. Hence we have in the later descriptions of the unseen world ideas Avhich have passed from the region of mythology
; ;
248
to
Tartaros, the
name
;
of which
and restless sea but Tartaros must at the first have been an epithet of Hades as strictly as Polydegmon or Plouton. In the Hesiodic Theogony, Tartaros and Gaia are the
parents of the Gigantes, of Typhoeus, and Echidna and thus Tartaros is placed in the same rank with Poseidon.
;
The land of Hades is essentially the land of darkness but whether in that unseen region, or under the conditions
;
The
conflict
of an cxistencc here,
.
,
.
of
tlic
darkness and
light.
In the conflict so
hymns
represent
men
supply the steeds of Indra with food, and from them the god receives the Soma on which his own strength depends.' In the Rig Veda the idea of darkness is closely connected
with that of drought, and the cows which nourish the sons
of
men
their
theme the Vedic poets are in it ro monotony and their language leaves on us no impression of forced and useless iteration. The battle between light and darkness, between drought and fertility, may assume a thousand forms and in each we may have the germ of an epic poem. There is, therefore, absolutely no weight or force in the argument which urges this supposed monotony as a conclusive reason for asserting that in their plot and their materials the Iliad and Odyssey, the Ramayana and the Nibelungenlied, can have nothing in common. If we confine ourselves to the mere outlines of human life, birth, marriage, toil and death, that life has a wearisome, and indeed an intolerable monotony but when we think of the colouring thrown over all the incidents of that life, the infinite play of motives, and the infinite variety of results involved in it, it is seen to be a drama of wonderful richness, of
this
gloomy
;
On
'
Seep
S.
MYTHICAL DUALISM.
249
the most varied action, and of the most touching interest. thus see that the phrases to which we owe the myth
We
fail
away
the
radiant Helen,
in
In both there
with the
both has the same issue. At first the fight of Indra demon of drought was simply a struggle to gain possession of the rain-clouds but his enemy soon begins We have thus two to assume a hateful moral character.
;
war on the one side the sun-god as beneficent as he is irresistible on the other, the Vritra, or being who seeks to veil
antagonistic powers facing each other in internecine
: ;
In the earliest
hymns
this
;
name
more than an epithet denoting hostility and the phrase, Vritra of the Vritras,' meant simply the most malignant of foes. He is Vritra, he is Ahi the throttler, he is (^ar'
who after a thousand transformations reapWayland the Smith. He is also, as we have seen, Cushan, Qambara, Namuki and lastly he is the Pani, or seducer, who entices the cows of Indra to leave their pastures, and then seeks to corrupt Sarama, who is
vara,
he
is
Vala,
them back. But Pani is Paris, and Sarama and thus we have in the Vedic hymns the first preparation for the framework on Avhich was reared afterwards the fabric of the great epic poems of the Greek
sent to bring
is
Helen
world.
The battle between Indra and Vritra is waged, therefore, demon of drought and darkness has imprisoned the waters and we have already had The shutting -1 11- up of the abundant evidence to show how strongly this waters.
chiefly because the
1 ,
;
The Python
at
Delphi, the
worm
slain
by Kadmos
at
Thebes, the Sphinx discomfited by Oedipus, all withhold from the earth the nourishment indispensably needed for
'
See note
4, p. 58.
=50
it
;
and when they are slain, the dry land is refreshed with water. But in some passages in the Rig Veda the victims of Vritra are spoken of not as cows or clouds, but as women and thus Sita, the bride of Rama, who is carried off by the giant Ravana, answers closely to Helen, who is borne away by Paris from Sparta. The story of the Odyssey does little more than reproduce that of Sarama, the only difference between the Vedic goddess and Penelope being that the latter, unlike the former, is absolutely unswerving in her fidelity. Sarama is tempted by an offer of a share in the Pani's booty. Penelope is
;
told, also,
if
she will
become the wife of any one of the suitors for her hand. These men bring about their own ruin and the issue in
;
both cases
is
the same.
'
is
to
be subdued,' says Sarama, for it is he himself that subdues you Panis will lie prostrate, killed by Indra.' In like manner Penelope points to a weapon which will bring the suitors to death if ever her lord returns home and they are at length smitten down by the arrows of Odysseus as
;
;
In the West, Vritra and his peers are represented by a host as numerous as are their followers in the
Typhon and
hymns
of
Among
Typhoeus. thcsc crcatlons of the Western mind are Typhon and Typhoeus, the beings who, like the Vritra, vomit out smoke and flames in other words, the lightnings which
precede the
fall
of the pent-up
rain.
In the
Hesiodic
Theogony, Typhon is the father of those winds which bring By this devastating hurricane ruin and havoc to mortals. Echidna becomes the mother of Kerberos, of the Lernaian Hydra, of the Chimera, the Sphinx, and the Nemean lion, all of these being representatives of the dark powers who fight with and are overcome by the lord of day. One of the most noteworthy versions of the myth of Indra and the Panis is found in the story of Hercules and
CACUS AND GARAAUS.
Cacus, localised in Italy.
nected,
25
t
con-
we cannot
fact,
;
He
was, in
Hercules and
and as such his name was Her- ''''''"^ is shown by the popular exclamations Mehercule, Mehercle. But the similarity of the name furnished to the literary Romans an irresistible temptation to identify their Herculus or Hercules with the Greek Herakles. They were further strengthened in their conclusion by the fact that a hero named Garanus, or Recaranus, was said to have slain a great robber named Cacus, and that
of the Greeks
clus or Herculus, as
this hero closely
Theseus, and
all
told in
many ways
popular version says that when Hercules reached the banks of the Tiber, Cacus, the three-headed son of Vulcan, stole
some of
dragged them
robber's den,
backwards into
But
their
cattle,
but
it.
his
him with
form of the many tales which recount the conflict of the sun-god with the powers of night or darkness. Garanus,
or Recaranus,
who
is
called
Cacus,'
is,
like Sancus,
by Aurelius Victor the slayer of whose name was also inscribed on the
Ara Maxima,
Garanus being so named as the maker or creator of things.^ Recaranus must, therefore, be the god who makes again, or who, like Ushas, renders all things young. Recaranus would thus denote the Re-creator, and so the Recuperator or recoverer of the cattle stolen by Cacus or Vritra, for Cacus in the Latin story is a three-headed monster, answer
ii.
340.
The word
contains the
crco,
&c.
252
As
cows of Hercules, he
is
Vritra,
is
who
shuts
who
pierced
up by the
The flames which he sends forth from his cave are the lightning flashes preceding that downfall of the rain which is signified by the recovery of the cows from
Cacus.
off evil
When then
the
and mischief) among the epithets of Herakles, he naturally came to regard Recaranus as only another name for that hero. But the quantity of the name Cacus leaves no room for this explanation. The first syllable is long, and the word given by Diodorus under the form Kakios and reappearing in the Praenestine Caeculus seems to warrant the conclusion that the true Latin form was Csecius, as Sseturnus answers to Saturnus. What then is
Caecius
}
The
who
bears this
name
is
Vedic Vritra, the being who steals the rain-clouds and blots out the light from the sky. Now, in a proverb cited by Aulus Gellius from Aristotle, a being of this name is mentioned as possessing the power of drawing the clouds towards him and thus we have the explanation of an incident which, translated into the conditions of human life, becomes a clumsy stratagem. In storms, when contrary currents are blowing at different elevations, the clouds may often appear from the earth to be going against or right towards the wind. Then it is that Cacus, Caecius, is drawing the cattle of Herakles by their tails towards his
clearly that of the
^ ;
cave.
The powers
Beiieros
of drought
before us already in
and
^^
the Sphinx,
many myths
unncccssary to dwell longer now. We have traced the monster Beiieros, slain by the Corin;
k6.k
i<l>'
avrhv
'iXKoiu, a>s 6
KaiKias v4(pos.
ii.
341.
253
some
made her
The death
the dragon,
is
Northern Europe the same result follows the death of the dragon Fafnir, although the rain is here spoken of as his blood. Sigurd knows that the slaying of the monster will be followed by a deluge, and he is bidden to dig a pit in the dragon's pathway, and then getting into the pit to smite him to the heart. But his fears are not allayed and Odin tells him therefore to dig many pits which may catch the (blood or) rain, and thus the streams are made to fertilise the earth, and the victory of the sungod is accomplished. character approaching to the more modern ghost or goblin stories is imparted to the legend related by Pausanias of the hero of Temessa, who is the demon of one of the companions of Odysseus slain for wrong done to a maiden of that city. The ravages of this demon, we are told, could be stayed only by the building of a temple in his honour, and by the yearly sacrifice of a maiden at his shrine. The demon, encountered by the
and
in the tradition of
wrestler
to
Euthymos
(the valiant-hearted),
who
is
resolved
being
wolf-
who ravages
the country
who
is
slain
by Beowulf, the
tamer. It
world.
may
how
accurately the
mythical genealogies register the phenomena of the outward As the daughter of Laios, the Sphinx is the sister
of CEdipus.
The cloud
in
is
imprisoned, and
254
nymph
not impossible.
to their
tell
Sarama
that the
way
and leads tortuously away,' a phrase which points perhaps to the more fully developed
abode
is
far
myth
In
these
myths the
if
conflict
between the
light
and the
^^ '^
myth
and
this con-
In the Rig
Veda we have no
wicked Vritra
pass over the spirit of the tale than the prayer that the
may not be
But in Persian mythology the antagonism between Indra and Vritra became the spiritual struggle between moral good and moral evil and thus phrases suggested by a very common sight in the outward world became the foundation of a philosophical system known as Dualism in other words, the conflict between two gods, one good, the other evil. In not a few instances the myths thus spiritualised retained the old names. Thus Trita or Traitana becomes
;
'
jjj
andAhri- slayer of Verethra, the Feridun of later epic ^^poetry, is the Vedic Vritrahan, the bane or slayer
of Vritra.
or
biting
Feridun, again,
at first
serpent), or
is
the slayer of
Azidahaka, which carries us, as we have seen, to the Greek Echidna. This battle, dimly foreshadowed in the hymns of the Rig Veda,
(a
Zohak
written
the choking
Ahi,
>
See
p. 72.
ZOROASTRIAN DUALISM.
becomes
in Persian
255
tradition
tlie
the former
In
Ormuzd
trusted with
all
but the
idea of his
enemy was
God
mind
of the
that of Indra
and
the exaltation of
Ormuzd
man
light.
to a pitch
Kosmos
of the spirit of
which has powerfully affected the religious belief of the world to the present time, dividing the universe between two opposing self-existent deities, while it professedly left to men In the the power of choosing whom they should obey. beginning there were two spirits, each of a peculiar activity, These are the Good and the Base in thought, word, and Chose one of these two spirits. Be good, not base.' deed. The name Ormuzd is not a Persian word, and it cannot be explained by the Persian language any more than Helen In the Zendor Erinys can be explained from the Greek. Avesta, or Zoroastrian books, the name is given in the form Ahuro-Mazdao, thus carrying us to the Sanskrit words Asuro-medhas, the wise spirit.' Ormuzd was also known as Spento-mainyus, or spirit of light, while his adversary became Angro-mainyus, Ahriman, the spirit of darkness. The moral process which issued in this dualistic philosophy lowered the character of the Vedic Devas. These, with the Hindu, are the bright gods who fight Devas and '^=""*on the side of Indra but in the Avesta the word has come to mean an evil spirit, and the Zoroastrian was bound to renounce them, and declare in his confession of faith, I cease to be a Deva- worshipper I profess to be a Zoroastrian worshipper of Ahuramazda, an enemy of the Devas, and a devotee to Ahura.' Thus the bright gods of
'
'
'
is
256
the Rig
side
by
Vritra and
common
is
The
spirit,
Persian Aeshma-daeva
of the book of Tobit.^
The dualism
soil in
the Jewish
t)y
mind
but
it
The Teutonic
'^^'"because they were strangers to the language which had furnished a foundation for the theology of Zoroaster but because the beings introduced into his scheme were in the belief of the Western Aryans as of the Hindus overcome and conquered every year. Vritra and Ahi, the Sphinx and the Python, Belleros and Chimera, are all of them brought utterly to nought and even the conquerors as well as the conquered are not always regarded in a perfectly serious light. Some of them, as Herakles in the myth of Alkestis, assume a burlesque aspect and all such pictures tend to hinder the translation of phrases which have a purely physical meaning into others which are Thus Hel had been simply, like Perpurely spiritual. sephone, the queen of the unseen land but although she afterwards became not merely the sovereign of Niflheim, but Niflheim itself, her abode was not wholly comfortless. It is here that the old man in the Teutonic popular story hews wood for the Christmas fire, and that
; ;
; ;
buy the flitch of bacon, resigns for it the good to grind almost anything. But more particularly in the tales of the Western Aryans, the devil is a being who is perpetually outwitted, and who is regarded His home was not with no special horror or even dislike. so pleasant as the old Valhalla but it was better to be there
quern which
is
;
The
epithets
' This word seems to have dropped out of the Western Ar)'an dialects, except the Greek, in which it is found seemingly only in the word a-TpiK-vs, Myth of Ar. Nat. ii. 353 et scq. not deceitful, and therefore accurate or true. For the effects of Persian or Zoroastrian theology on the religion and faith of the Jewish people, see Myth, of Ar. Nat. ii. 358.
THE MAIMED
applied in the Vedic
passes through an
DEVIL.
all,
257
hymns
to Vritra are
or almost
all
name
immense number of
it
containing the same root with the Latin divus, djovis, and
He
is
Davy
of the language
;
but the from heaven suggested that he must have been lamed by the descent, and so we have the devil upon two sticks, who resembles Hephaistos not only in his gait but in his office.^ He is the Graumann, or Greyman, the dark and murky being of German popular tradition and he is also known as the leviathan, or Valfish, in which we again have the deceiving Vala. His dwelling is Ovelgunne, or the Nobiskrug, a late word from the Greek Abyssos.^ He is also a huntsman but the mighty procession of Odin is degraded in the wretched throng of evil-doers, who are hurried along in his train. Lastly, he is not merely fooled, but killed through his folly. In one legend he asks a man who is moulding buttons, what he may be doing. The answer is that he is making eyes and on hearing this, the devil asks if the man can give him a pair of new eyes. He is told that he may have them, but that the operation cannot be properly performed unless he is first tied on his back Being thus fastened, he asks the man's name to a bench. and the reply is Issi (self). The melted lead poured on his eyes makes him start up in agony, bearing away the bench and when he is asked who has thus maltreated him, he tells them Issi teggi (self did it). He is, of course, told to lie on the bed which he has made. His new eyes killed him, and he was never seen again. This is, clearly, a story which substantially agrees with that of Odysseus and Polyphemus and this story is reproduced in the tale of
is
He
notion of his
'
'
'
See
p. 46.
"
This
is
Wayland
the Sroith.
See
p. 249.
Through
2 53
who
is
by the
who
he clings first to the rafters of the ceiling, and then wrapping himself in a ram's skin, escapes between the giant's legs. But no sooner is he out of the cave, than he turns round, like Odysseus, to mock at his enemy and the giant, saying that so clever a man ought not to go unrewarded, offers him a ring which when he places it on his finger makes him cry out, Here I am here I am! But even then the giant stumbles and falls in his search, and
ram's
fleece,
;
*
!
'
the robber
at last escapes
by
and so
259
CHAPTER
WORLD.
IX.
The
number
way
have been moulded into series of epics as magnificent as any which have been shaped by the highest human genius. The myths of Perseus and Theseus would have been as rich a mine for the imagination, of the poet to work in, as
those of Paris, Helen, and Penelope
;
groundwork of any consecutive story, and many others, not If :s rich, beautiful, and touching, they have left altogether unnoticed. But the essential character of the materials is the same in all and we may, therefore, expect to find in the Aryan epic poems the same conceptions which in a cruder form we find in the primary myths of Endymion and Prokris. In the Hymns of the Rig Veda the morning brings She discovers hidden treasures which health and wealth. have been locked up in the darkness, and these treasures
;
26o
up
But
may
be regarded as beginning
The
stolen treasures,
'^'^
^hc
f^j. |.|^g
sense of
loss,
moming, and perhaps even more naturally, mind is morc readily impressed by the and by the consequent need of action, in
it
order to
make
good.
It
is,
by dark robbers, and recovered from them, which has become the root and groundwork of epic poetry, and has produced a harvest of wonderful luxuriance. In
sures stolen
the Vedic
are, as
hymns the
;
action goes on between Indra, Sarama, but in the Greek epical legends the actors
we should expect, human, and the events with which they are connected are put into a form which gave them the semblance of a continuous history of facts. The framework of all these traditions is in their main features the same but the names and the local colouring are so far changed that they might easily be regarded as independent narratives and thus a number of tales which really repeat each other, assumed the form of a consecutive series. In the Greek myths the taking away of precious things and the united search of armed hosts for their recovery
;
;
come before us first in the story of the Argonautic voyage. The tale is repeated in the stealing away of Helen and her treasures by Paris, and is once more told in the banishment of the Herakleids, and their efforts, at last successful,
'
The
J
was
to recover
sister
g<?nattic
expedition,
On
Ino,
the
and
unhappiness until a
ram with
through the
'
Helle
fell
off
They are
THE ARGONAUTS.
the Hellespont, which bears her name.
carried
*
261
onwards to the palace of Aietes, king of Kolchis, and there he sacrificed to Zeus Phyxios, the guardian of fugitives, the ram which had borne him thither. The golden fleece was hung up in the house of Aietes, where,' in the words of the poet Mimnermos, the rays of Helios rest in a golden chamber;' and thithertheAchaian chieftains, urged on by Athamas, came to claim it. The expedition, it is Pelias, the chief of lolkos, the son said, was thus planned. of Salmoneus and Tyro,^ had received a warning to be on and when his guard against a man with only one shoe
'
'
lason (Jason), the pupil of the centaur Cheiron, appeared at a sacrifice, having lost one of his sandals in a stream,
Pelias
fleece
from
Kolchis.
round about, and sailed away in the ship Argo, wliich was endowed with the powers of thought and speech, and which refused to descend into the water until it was charmed by Besides Orpheus there went with the lyre of Orpheus.^ him Herakles, Meleagros, Amphiaraos, Admetos, and other
heroes.
gerous rocks, called Symplegades, which opened and again closed continually with such quickness that a bird had
scarcely time to fly through.
the vessel safely through these rocks, which thenceforth became fixed a tradition which seems to point manifestly
to a time
when the Black Sea was infested with icebergs brought down by a westerly current and stranded at the
entrance to the Bosporos.
Having passed through the land of the Amazons, they at reached Kolchis, where lason demanded the fleece from Aietes, who refused to give it up until lason had j^.^^ ^^^ ^^"^"'^ ploughed the land with the fire-breathing bulls, and he was enabled This to teeth. dragon's with the sown it
last
'
For the reason of Helle's death, and the survival of Phrixos, see ^ See p. 191. See p. 130.
p. 216.
262
do with the aid of Medeia, the wise daughter of Aietes, who anointed his body with an ointment which protected him against the fiery breath of the bulls, and told him to cast a stone amongst the armed men who would spring up from the
dragon's teeth.
When
men
began to
were slain. Then Medeia lulled to sleep the dragon which guarded the fleece, and lason, slaying the monster, gained possession of the treasure and hurried away in the ship Argo. Aietes pursued the vessel in hot haste but Medeia, who had fled with lason, cut up her brother Absyrtos and threw his limbs one by one into the sea. Aietes stopped to pick them up, and the Argo thus passed beyond his reach. On the return of the Argonauts to lolkos, Medeia persuaded the daughters of Pelias to cut up the body of their father and place the limbs in a caldron, saying that she would again restore him They obeyed but Medeia, pretending to life as in youth. to be looking at the stars in order to learn the right moment for using her spells, allowed his limbs to be consumed, and thus the warning given to Pelias that his doom would come From lolkos Medeia took through lason was fulfilled. lason in her dragon chariot to Argos, where he was smitten with the beauty of Glauke, the daughter of the Argive king Kreon. So far as her words and gestures went, Medeia seemed to be well pleased, and she sent to Glauke as a bridal gift the spendid robe which Helios, the sun, gave her No sooner had the before she left her father's house. maiden put it on than the robe began to burn her flesh, and
fight with each other,
until all
; ;
and fought on
Kreon, who
killed her
tried to tear it off, died with his child. Having two children, the sons of lason, Medeia vanished from Argos in her dragon chariot. This strange tale may be traced back to the myth in which Helios, Hyperion, the climbing sun, was said to go evctting into a golden cup or vessel, The materials down in the of the myth, ^yhjch Carried him across the ocean stream to the abode of black nighty where he found his mother, his wife.
263
and from this cup he rose again in the morningw But in the oldest Vedic hymns we find the departure cf the sun spoken of as leaving men in grief and fear, The idea of Our friend the sun is dead will he return ? a search for the lost friend thus naturally suggested itself
"
:
'
and
all
warmth
in
the daytime were supposed to seek for him until they found
him and brought him back again. The ship Argo is itself the symbol of the earth as a parent,* which contains in itself the germs of all living things. Hence it carries all the
Achaian
therefore,
chieftains,
who
and
ship,
accomplished.
The
sight,
and
lanis
guage.
The golden
fleece,
it
which reappears as the robe given by the sun-god Helios to Medeia, and which may either warm or scorch and consume those whom it may touch. It is the same robe which Deianeira dipped in the blood of Nessos, and which eats into the body of Herakles himself. As having received this robe, Medeia is a being who possesses the wisdom which belongs to Phcebus Apollo as his birthright. This wisdom is inherited, as we have seen, by Asklepios and Tantalos, as representing the sun, who alone can see into the hidden secrets of Zeus, the sky. This notion, when applied to Medeia as a wise woman, grew into
the idea of witchcraft or sorcery.
dragon's teeth, which
is
In the story of the reproduced in the Theban myth of Cadmus, we have a legend which may also be compared with the turning of stones into men in the story of Deukalion,
while in the chase of Aietes after the retreating Argo we have the pursuit of Perseus by the Gorgons, the dark powers
which
'
may be
who
leaves
them
It is the
and Present,
p. 42.
264
In Medeia, as we might combined with the power of giving or restoring Hfe. The former is possessed by Tantalos Her or Lykaon, the latter by Asklepios and Herakles. dragon chariot is simply the chariot of Indra, Helios, and Achilles and it is drawn by dragons because the word denoted simply beings of keen sight, and was naturally applied to the creatures which may be supposed to bear the
behind as he
heavens.
is
The
tale of
Troy and
is
f^m
which together make up the mythical hisParts only tory of Paris, Helen, Achilles, and Odysseus.
series of legends
of this tale
and,
are contained
but expressions
in the Iliad in
name
of
Homer
and hints scattered throughout these poems prove clearly that the poets were acquainted with many incidents and episodes of the story, about which they did not care to
speak
in detail.
The
whose mother Hekabe (Hecuba) dreamt that her son was a torch which would destroy the city of Ilion. Owing to this foreboding of evil, the child was exposed, we are told, on the heathy sides of Mount Ida but, like other Fatal Children, he was rescued by a shepherd, and growing up beautiful, brave, and vigorous, was called Alexandros, the Supposing him to be dead, his father helper of men.' Priam ordered a sacrifice to be offered up for his repose in Hades, and his servants chose the favourite bull of Paris, who followed them and was conqueror in his own funeral games. Although no one else knew him, his sister Kasandra, to whom Phoebus had given the power of second sight,
;
If the first part of the word be taken to mean what ir evidently means in Alexikakos (see p. 252), the name is suscejitible of another interpretation ; but it seems unnecessary to resort to this alternative here.
APPLE.
265
victor was.
Paris,
however,
cruelly
who had
treated
him so
in the dells of
Ida he
won
as his bride
Oinone (Qinone), the beautiful daughter of the stream Kebren. With her he remained, until he departed for Sparta with Menelaos, an event brought about by incidents far away in the West, which were to lead to mighty issues. At the marriage feast of Peleus and Thetis, Eris (strife), who had not been invited with the other deities, cast on the table a golden apple, which was to be given xhe judgment fP^"s. to the fairest of all the guests. It was claimed
by Here, Athene and Aphrodite, and Zeus made Paris the umpire. By him, as we have seen, it was given to Aphrodite, who in return promised him Helen, the fairest of all women, as his wife. Some time after this there fell on
that they could be delivered only
Sparta a sore famine, from which the Delphian oracle said by bringing back the bones of the children of Prometheus. For this purpose Menelaos, the king, came to Ilion, and returned with Paris, who saw the beautiful Helen at Sparta, and carResolving to ried her away with her treasures to Troy.
rescue her from Paris, Menelaos invited
of
Agamemnon, king
Mykenai (Mycenae), and other great chieftains to take part in the expedition which was to avenge his wrongs and to
recover the Avealth of which he had been despoiled.
Among
;
these chiefs were the aged Nestor, the wise ruler of Pylos
;
Aias ( Ajax), the son of Telamon Askalaphos and lalmenos, sons of Ares Diomedes, son of Tydeus and Admetos of Pherai, the husband of Alkestis. But the greatest of all were Achilles, the son of Peleus and the sea-nymph Thetis, and Odysseus, the son of Laertes, chieftain of Ithaca. The forces thus gathered went to Troy by sea but the fleet was becalmed in Aulis, and Kalchas, the seer, affirming that this was caused by the anger of Artemis Agamemnon,
;
neia.
266
Accordhig was made but there was another version which said that Artemis herself rescued Iphigeneia, while others again said that Artemis and Iphigeneia were one and the same. If, however, her blood was shed, the penalty must be paid and so in the terrible drama of ^schylus we find the Ate, whose office it is to exact this penalty to the last farthing, brooding on the house of Agamemnon, until she had brought abbut the death of the king by the hands of his wife Klytaimnestra (Clytemnestra), and the death of Klytaimnestra and her paramour Aigisthos by the hands of her son Orestes. The hindrance to the eastward course of the Achaians was now removed, but the achievement of their task was Nine years must pass in seemSarpSdSnand ^till far distant. Memnon. ingly hopclcss Struggle in the tenth, I lion would be taken. So mighty was to be the defence of the city, maintained chiefly by Hektor, the son of Priam and brother
;
;
cities,
Aphrodite Pandaros, son of Lykaon, and bearer of the bow of Apollo and Sarpedon, who with his friend Glaukos led the Lykians from the banks of the eddying Xanthos.^ The legend of this brilliant hero is, as we have seen, one of the many independent myths which have been introduced into the framework of our Iliad. He is distinctly a being of the same order with Saranyu, Erinys, lason, Helen, and many more and the process which made him an ally of Paris is that which separated Odysseus from the eye of the Cyclops, whom he blinded.^ Another episode of a like kind is that of Memnon, who, like Sarpedon, comes from a bright and glistering land but instead of Lykia it is in this instance Ethiopia. The meaning of the name Sarpedon had been so far forgotten that the chief was regarded as a ruler of mortal Lykians, and we are told that his cairn was
; ;
;
'
Seep.
159.
Seep.
133.
2C7
name amongst his people, although there were versions of the myth which brought him back again to life. But Eos, the mother of Memnon,
is
Like Sarpedon, he is doomed to an and when he is smitten by the hand of Achilles, the tears of Eos are said to fall as morning dew from the sky. To comfort her Zeus makes two flocks of birds meet in the air and fight over his funeral sacrifice, until some of them fall as victims on the altar. But Eos is not yet satisfied, and she not only demands but wins the return of her child from Hades. The thought of a later age becomes manifest in the tale that when Memnon fell in atonement for the slaughter of Antilochos, his comrades were so plunged in grief that they were changed into birds which yearly visited his tomb to water the ground with
across the heaven.
early death
their tears.
The
marked
story
of Achilles
himself has
many
points
;
of
myths of these two heroes guardian Phenix actually recites to him the career
likeness to the
but his
^he wrath of
^"^^^'''^s.
What
us, if
really signifies
we have
tells
the Iliad
we would
the types of character sketched out for him in the old mythical phrases. Achilles is pre-eminently the irresistible hero
who fights in a quarrel which is not his own. As Herakles served the mean Eurystheus, so Achilles is practically the servant of one on whom he looks down with deserved contempt. But he has his consolation in the love of Briseis, and when he is called upon to surrender the maiden, he breaks out into the passion of wrath which in the opening lines of the Iliad is said to be the subject of the poem. Although the fury of his rage is subdued by
See
p. 68.
268
solemn vow that henceforth in the war the Achaians shall look in vain for his aid. But inasmuch as in many of the books which follow the first the Achaian heroes get on perfectly well without him, winning great victories over the Trojans,' and as no reference is made in them to his wrath or to its consequences, the conclusion seems to be forced upon us that these books belong to an independent poem which really was an Iliad, or a history of the struggle of the Achaians for the possession of Ilion or Troy and that this Iliad, which begins with the second book, has been pieced together with the other poem, which relates to the wrath of Achilles and its results, and is therefore an Achilleis. Thus the poem which we call the Iliad would consist of two poems, into which materials from other poems may or may not also have been worked in. It is, of course, quite possible that these two poems, the Iliad and the Achilleis, may both be the work of one and the same poet, who chose thus to arrange his own compositions and this is the opinion of some whose judgment on such points is worthy of respect. But although the question is one on which an absolute decision may be unattainable, the balance of likelihood seems to be in favour of the conclusion that these great epic poems grew up in the course of a long series of ages. We have already seen how the germs of a story full of human passion and feeling might be found in epithets, in words, or in phrases, which the forefathers of the Aryan tribes, while yet in their original home, applied consciously to the sights and sounds of the outward world, these sights and sounds being regarded as the work of beings who could feel, and suffer, and toil, and rejoice like ourselves. This language was, strictly, the language of poetry, literally revelling in its boundless powers of creation and development. In almost every word lay the material
; ;
'
I\Iyih.
i.
256.
Mure, Critical History of Greek Litetatzire, of Ar. A"at. i. 240. Grote, History of Greece, Pait I. ch. xxi.
269
and it is the less wonderful, thereeach incident was embodied in a separate legend, or
in the
even reproduced
hundred Homers
fire.'
may
we
independent tales of separate tribes. well have lit their torch from this
return to the subject of the wrath
living
Achaian chiefand they are made to feel Achiiies and P^fokios. their need of the great hero, who keeps away from the strife. But the embassy which they send to him goes to no purpose, although Phenix holds up to him as a warning the doom of the Kalydonian Meleagros. There must be humble submission, and Briseis must be restored. But Agamemnon cannot yet bring himself to this abasement, and the struggle goes on with varying success and
victorious career of the
The
interrupted,
multiply as to excite
who
reflects the
who
Melted by
own
ar-
mour, and bade him go forth to aid the Argives, adding a strict caution, which cannot fail to remind us of the As Phaethon is charged not to touch story of Phaethon.
the horses of Helios with his whip, so Patroklos must not
is borne by the same on any other path than that which has been pointed out to him. But we are especially told that although Patroklos could wear his friend's armour, he could not wield his spear. The sword and lance of the sun-god may be used by no other hands than his own. As in the story of Phaethon, so here the command was disobeyed and thus Patroklos, after slaying Sarpedon, was himself overpowered and killed by Hektor, who stripped off
undying
full
see
examination of the question of the composition of the Myth, of Ar. Nat. Book I. ch. ix.-xi. and the works
See
p. 93.
270
from
his friend.
In the
Beneath
'
'
his anguish
was
but the
all
counte-
the sea
To
have revenge
that the
own, his answer is that even Herakles, the dearest son of Zeus, had submitted to the same hard lot, and that he is
ready to face it himself He has still his unerring spear and it only remains that he should wait for the glistening armour, wrought on the anvil of the fire-god Hephaistos. But although the hour of his vengeance is not yet come, his countenance still had its terrors, and the very sight of his form filled the Trojans with dism.ay, as they heard his well-known war cry. His work is in part done. The body
of Patroklos
is
on the altar of sacrifice. But the old phrases which spoke of Herakles as subject to death, still spoke of both as coming forth conquerors of the power which had seemed and true to the ancient speech, the poet to subdue them makes Thetis assure her son that no hurtful thing shall touch the body of Patroklos, and that, though it should be untended the whole year round, his face should wear at its close a more glorious and touching beauty. The end now draws nigh. Agamemnon is so far humbled, that he promises to yield to him the maiden wliom hc had taken away but with a persisAchilles and
; ;
i\gamemnoa.
exccpt by thinking of the sources of the story we cannot understand, he asserts his own innocence. 'I am not guilty,' he said; 'the blame rests Vv^ith Zeus and Moira,' and Erinys who wanders in the air.'^
<^^^-^q^^
wliicli
'
See
p. 68.
Sec p.
59.
271
on the reappearance of
Briseis, Achilles
which lurked
in the
in
the words of
Agamemnon.
son
He
my
will
many Achaians might be accomplished.' So he bids them go and eat, and make ready for the fight but when Agamemnon would have Achilles
that
the
doom
of
won
him
his revenge.
The same
which
tells
is
by the
picture
^he arming
of -^^^''^s.
we
like the
when
Achilles
dazzling radiance.
shield,
rises
we
are
from the sea his helmet glittered like a star each hair on the plume glistened like burnished gold and when he tried the armour to see whether it fitted him, it bore his limbs like a bird upon the wing. But when, having taken up his spear, he mounts his chariot, and bids his immortal horses bear him safe through the battle, and not leave him to die as they left Patroklos, he hears again the warning of his early death. The horse Xanthos bows his head, and tells him that, though their force is not abated, and their will is only to save the lord whom they serve and love, the will of Zeus is stronger yet, and Achilles must die. But he answers again, as he had answered before, that, whatever may follow, the work of vengeance must be accomplished.
like the blood-red
gleamed
morn, as
;
272
which follows, His great enemy Hektor appears before him but although Phoebus has forsaken him, yet Achilles cannot reach him through his own armour, which Hektor had stripped from the body of
Achilles hastens surely to his victory.
;
Patroklos,
wound
is
and which he was now wearing. The deathgiven where an opening in the plates left the
neck bare.
The
is
dismissed
on the body
trait
by a
manners of the Greeks in any when we compare it with the mythical language of the Eastern Vedic hymns, which speak of the sun as stamping mercilessly on his conquered
reference to
the
enemies.
completed with the narrative by Hermes, camc to AchiUcs, and embracing his knees, Achilles and Priam, bcggcd for thc body of his son, over which Phoebus Apollo had spread his golden shield to keep away all unseemly things, and how it was borne back to Ilion, where his wife, Andromache, bitterly bemoaned her loss, and all the Trojans wept for the hero who had fought for
story of the Iliad
is
The
which
tells
us
how
them
so bravely.
;
but from the this point our Iliad comes to an end Odyssey we learn that Achilles was slain by Paris and
The death
Achilles.
At
of
Phoebus Apollo at the Skaian or western gates ^j^^i- -phetis with her sea-nymphs rose from the
;
;
water and wrapped his body in shining robes that after many days the Achaians placed it on the funeral pile, and that his ashes were laid in a golden urn brought by He-
which a great cairn was raised, that men might see it afar off as they sailed on the broad Hellespontos, an expression which seems to show that the Hellespont of the Iliad was not merely the narrow strait between Sestos and Abydos, but a wider sea, so-called probably from a
phaistos, over
273
named
it
Helloi or Selloi,
who
lived
on
its
shores and
in their
and
^^e
fou of
dawn, soon hidden by the clouds, yet abiding his time of vengeance, when from the dark veil he breaks forth
at last in
^^'"-
more than his early strength, scattering the mists and kindhng the rugged clouds which form his funeral
pyre nor caring whether the splendour of his victory shall be succeeded by a darker battle as the vapours close again
over his dying glory.
From
other sources
we
learn that
Achaians took I lion and burnt it, and that Priam and his people were slain. Paris of Philoktetes, himself, smitten with the poisoned arrows fled to Mount Ida, where, as he lay dying, CEnone appeared before him, beautiful and loving as ever. But though her love might soothe him, it could not heal a wound inflicted by the weapons of Herakles. So Paris died on Ida, and CEnone also died upon his funeral pile which her own hands kindled. This wonderful siege of Troy is, it has been well said,^
after the death of Achilles the
^
simply a repetition of the daily siege of the east by the solar powers that every evening are robbed of their p^risand ^''"'' brightest treasures in the west. We have to mark '^^ that quite as much stress is laid on the stealing away of the
treasures of
self,
Helen as on the stealing away of Helen herand that we have precisely the same feature in all the great epics of Northern Europe. Of the names of the actors
in this great
drama some
myis
seen,
and Paris
is
who, when Sarama com.es seeking the cows of Indra, beseeches her to remain with him. Although Sarama refuses
'
See
p.
103.
Max
Miiller, Lectures
2/4
and
disobedience to the
commands
given to her
that
;
may be
the
germ of
is
may
be unwise to determine
but
it
Briseis,
who
is
one of the
first
by the Achaians, is the offspring of Brisaya, is conquered by the bright powers before they can recover the treasures stolen by the Panis.
captives taken
in the
who
Veda
specially remarkable feature in this story of the Trojan war is the blending of different ideas. A hero may Achilles and bclong to the powcrs which represent the night theMyrmidons. and darkness but the groundwork lor the mcidents of an heroic career were supplied by phrases which spoke of the toils, the battles, and the victories of the sun, and thus regarded, the heroes would reflect a splendour to Avhich, in their relation to their enemies, they would have no right. Thus, as stealing Helen from the Western Sparta or as abetting in this theft, Paris and all the Trojans represent the dark powers who steal away the twilight from the w^estern sky. But in the lives of many of the Trojan chiefs, as perhaps or possibly in that of Paris himself,' we have a repetition of the life of Meleagros, Perseus, and other solar
, , , ,
,
,,-,..
heroes.
question.
As to Achilles, the points of likeness are beyond The key-note of the myth of Herakles, namely,
is
;
subjection to an inferior,
myth
of the
is
Briseis
an incident which we look for in all such tales. In the vow which follows his loss we see the veiling of the sun behind the dark clouds and as the golden rays are no
; 1 The beauty of Paris may have been from the first the beauty of the night, This beauty is evidently signified by the myth of Medousa cloudless and still. (see p. 221), as well as by the legends of Kalypso and the fairy queens who tempt Tanhaiiser and True Thomas to their caves (see p. i6o). Professor Goldziher has shown that in the mythology of the Hebrews the myths of the night are far more important than those of the day, and that they ascribe to the night nol only a singular beauty, but a wonderful restorative power. The con-
ACHILLES AND HEK TOR.
longer seen
chief hangs
275
when
up
his face
is
when
their
and shield within his tent. These followers are in the Iliad persistently compared with wolves/ and we have seen how nearly the Greek name for wolves, given to them, we cannot doubt, from the glossiness of their skin, is allied to words denoting brightness. The rays of the sun would in the old mythical language of poetry be called Lukoi or Lykians and as the meaning of the phrase became in part forgotten, the Myrmidons, who are simply the sun's rays, would be naturally compared to wolves with gleaming eyes and blood-red jaws. The conflict which precedes the death of Hektor is the mighty battle of the vapours and the sun, who seems to trample on the darkness, as Achilles tramples on the body of Hektor and as this victory of the sun is gained just when he is sinking into the sea, so the death of Achilles is said to follow very soon after that of Hektor, So again the fight over the dead body of Achilles is the story of a stormy evening, when the clouds fight over the dead sun. The main conclusion is this, that the chief incidents of the story, and even the main features in the character of the chief heroes, were handed down ready-made for the Homeric poets. They might leave out this or that incident but they were not free to alter the general character of any. Thus they must describe Achilles as fighting in a quarrel which was not his own as robbed of Briseis as furious with rage and grief
;
at her loss
as hiding
friend,
as
sending out
human
and
career. This necessity seems to explain the whole character of Achilles, which, regarded as that of an Achaian chief, seems untrue not only to their national chaHis portrait, as drawn in the racter but to human nature.
troubled
'
See note
i,
p.
106.
276
Iliad, is not only not Achaian it can scarcely be called human. There is no evidence that Achaian chiefs visited on those who were manifestly innocent the wrong doings of the guilty that they had no sense of duty, and no sympathy for the sufferings of those who had never injured them that
;
;
they offered human sacrifices, or that they fought with poisoned arrows, or that they mangled the corpses of brave enemies whom they had slain. But although we have no evidence that Achaian chiefs ever did such things, it is easy to see that such stories could not fail to spring up, when phrases which had at first denoted the varying action of the sun were regarded as relating to the deeds and sufferings of
heroes from Troy is an event answering precisely to the return of lason (Jason) and ^^'^ comrades from Kolchis as they bring back III. The the^eroes ^^^ goldcn flecce, SO Mcnelaos returns with irom Troy. Helen and her treasures to Sparta. These legends are uniform and consistent only so far as they represent the heroes returning from the east to the west. Otherwise the incidents, and the names of persons and places, are changed almost at will. The tombs of Odysseus, Aineias (vEneas), and many others, were shown in
:
many
places, for
it
was
as easy to
country as to another.
Of these returning chieftains, the most conspicuous Odysseus, the tale of whose wanderings is given in The Odyssey, the Odysscy, and whose story practically reproduces that of Herakles or Perseus, for the simple reason that the return from Ilion to Achaia represents
is
His
marked by strange changes of happiness and misery, by successes and reverses, ending in complete victory, as the lights and shadows of a stormy and gloomy day are often scattered
like that of all
kindred heroes,
is
277
sundown by the effulgence of the bright orb whose glory they have so long hidden. Thus Odysseus becomes a counterpart of Achilles, the main difference being that
Achilles represents the action of the sun in his strength
and
seus
Odys-
The
an intense yearning to be united again with his wife, whom he left long ago at eventide in the bloom of her youthful beauty. Thus, although, as he journeys homewards, he is often tempted to tarry or turn aside in his course, he cannot be made to
is
mind
It
is
impossible
for
Helios and
Surya to deviate from whether in their daily which Sisyphos rolls to again and the blood
;
The
stone
The first conflict of the wanderer, we are told, was with a people called the Kikones (Cicones) of Ismaros, who destroyed six men out of every ship in his fleet, odysseus and Thence he came to the land of the Lotos-eaters, P'^'yphemos. who spend their life in a delicious dream, feasting on the fruit which makes all who taste it forget their homes. Here he had to bind some of his men who disobeyed his warning not to touch the fruit, and to drag them away to their ships. terrible storm next carried him to the land of the Kyklopes (Cyclopes).' With some of his companions
he entered a cave in which were stored large supplies of milk and cheese but before they could make their escape, the giant Polyphemos came in and shut the entrance with
;
a great rock which they could not move. The fire which he lit showed the forms of Odysseus and his men, two of whom Polyphemos cooked and devoured. After some
'
See
p. 179.
27S
more had been thus eaten, Odysseus, with the survivors, blinded the giant by thrusting a burning pole into his eye,' and then tying his men under the rams of the giant, he made his escape with them when Polyphemos opened tlie
door of the cave.
troubles
The
efforts
of the latter to
make
his
known
by a
crafty
When Polyphemos on first seeing him asked him his name, Odysseus told him that it was Outis, Nobody. Hence, when the other giants came to
device of Odysseus.
why he roared so loud, he told them that Nobody, Outis, was doing him harm, and they, thinking that nothing was the matter, went away to their own homes. Of the name Kyklops, it is enough to say that it may be a Grecised form of a word which may be neither Greek nor even Aryan. We have seen that the Indian Pramantha suggested to the Greek a name which carried with it for him a perfectly clear meaning, although it happened to be a wrong one, and that this mistake suggested the corresponding name Epimetheus. In the same way it is possible that the name Kyklops ma}- simply represent the Semitic Khouk-lobh, or Khouk-labh, Rulers of the flame or fire-worshippers,' ^ these Khouk-lobh being builders of those gigantic works which we still associate with their names.^ But the giants with whom Odysseus was here brought into contact were not builders at all and most certainly the Greek name could not have been given to them as a race of circle-builders. The word Kyklops ought rather to mean one with a round face than one with a round eye in the midst of his face but one or other of those meanings the word must have, if it be Greek at all. After the discomfiture of the one-eyed giant, the fate of Odysseus carries him to the land of the cannibal Laistrygones. Having with difficulty escaped from them, he sailed
the entrance of the cave and asked
*
'
^
^
For other versions of the myth of the bhnded giant or Brown, Poseidon, 43.
This explanntioii agrees with the character of those Kyl^lopes desci-.LiL-a as lac miuialcis of Hephaistos.
who
are
279
Here the nymph or goddess Kirke (Circe) turned many of his men into swine, but was compelled to restore them, to their human shape by Odys- ^j^^g ^^^ seus, who had received from Hermes a herb which fa';'charybdil'.
made the charms of Kirke powerless. Kirke is ^""^ Kaiypso. one of the beings who seeks to win the love of the hero ^ as he journeys homewards and although her entreaties fail to change his purpose, he is ready to avail himself of such enjoyments as may not hinder him from reaching home at last. Before he left her abode, the goddess warned him against greater perils from the Seirens,
;
who
sat in their
which they besought them to come and rest and forget all their toil and trouble.^ These perils he escaped by stuffing his sailors' ears with wax, and by having himself bound to the mast as they passed by. The next enemies encountered were Skylla and Charybdis, the demons of the whirlpools, which sucked down many of his men. The rest were lost in a storm, after they had slain some of the cattle of Helios, whom Phaethousa and Lampetie, the bright and glistering daughters of Neaira, the early morning, tended in Thrinakia;^ and Odysseus, after tossing about for hours on the heaving sea, was thrown half dead on the shore of Ogygia. Here the beautiful Kalypso tended him lovingly in her cave, and kept him there seven years, although he longed once more to be at home. At length Hermes commanded her to let him go, and she then helped him to build a raft which carried him some way across the sea but another storm washed him off, and he was thrown bleeding and senseless on the shore of Phaiakia, On coming to himself he heard the merry voices of girls who were playing on the beach, while the clothes which
;
' On the impossibility of framing any geographical scheme out of the narrative of these wanderings, something has been already said, see p. 153. 2 See p. 160. ^ See p. 191.
See
p.
1S5
i.
421.
28o
They were maidens who had come with Nausikaa, the beautiful daughter of king Guided by her, Theiandofthe "^Iki^oos and his wife Arctc. Phaiakxans. Qdysseus Came to her father's palace, which stood in a glorious garden, where the leaves never faded, and the fruits glistened on the branches the whole year round. He was, in truth, in enchanted land, and we have already seen what this enchanted land must be.^ Its name, we are told, was Scheria but it seems useless to contend that by Scheria the poet meant Corfu.^ The description given of it answers to no earthly region. The people had come from Hypereia, the upper regions of the sky, where they had been sorely vexed by the Cyclopean giants and if these monsters represent, as they assuredly seem to do
they had washed were drying.
; ;
down upon
fear
the earth and sea, we can well understand the which they would strike into the hearts of the bright
As
new
home
light,
in
Scheria
is
away
in
the west
over which
is spread the soft beauty of an everlasting twiand where the radiant processions which gladden the
eyes of mortal
men
clear, are
Dogs of gold and silver guard the house of the king, and busy maidens who have received their skill from Athene, the goddess of the dawn, ply their golden distaffs. It is the land where trouble and sorrow are unknown, where the dancers are never weary, and the harp is never silent. The Phaiakians are not good boxers or wrestlers
hills.
;
but
as
mariners
fact
The mariners
are in
These
and the ships are the mariners. have the powers of thought, speech, and will. Without masts or tackling, without helmsmen or rowers, they go straight to their mark and not one of
the ships,
vessels
;
'
Seep. 217.
p. 153,
281
Alkinoos tells his guest, has ever been stranded, for so have the gods ordained for the blameless With leaders and guides of all across the sounding seas.
these ships
contradicts
we have
himself
but, as
we might
voyage of the Here the ship has oarsmen and oars, and these imply that the ships have the furniture which he has expressly denied to them
when he
relates the
before.^
Reaching his home at last as an unknown stranger, Odysseus learnt from his swineherd, Eumaios, who did not recognise him, that his father, Laertes, was living odysseus and '^^^""''^in squalid misery; that a crowd of chiefs ^ho came as suitors to his wife Penelope, had taken up their abode in his house, where some of his servants were in league with them to devour his substance, and that Penelope, having promised to give them an answer when her web was finished, put them off continually by undoing at night that portion of the web which she had woven during the day. Odysseus now entered his own hall disguised as a beggar and when provoked by some of the suitors, he challenged them to stretch a bow which hung upon the wall. This was his own bow, which, like Achilles and other heroes, he alone could stretch. In vain they strove to bend it but when the beggar put forth his hand to take it, the thunder of Zeus was heard in the heaven, and presently the suitors began to fall under the unerring arrows but his son Telemachos, who belongs, like Patroklos and Phaethon, to the class of Secondaries, had left the chamber door ajar, and many of the chiefs, seizing the weapons which Odysseus they found there, pressed hard upon Odysseus. himself they could not hurt but Telemachos was wounded,
;
'
full
Nat.
274,
2S2
though not mortally, like Patroklos, At this crisis Athene came to his aid, and scared the suitors with her dazzling Aigis (^gis). The corpses of the dead were thrust away like refuse but on the body of Melanthios, the son of Dolios, Odysseus wreaked his full rage, as Achilles trampled on the body of Hektor. Lastly, he summoned all the women who had abetted the suitors, and hung them upon a beam across his great hall. He was then united again with Penelope, for whom he had made tlie beautiful bridal chamber long years ago and in this chamber he rested This tale is manifestly the after the great slaughter. counterpart of the vengeance of Achilles. In both an
; ;
excessive revenge
is
Of
direct
evidence which
rical
may
we have
none.
As
we may more
arrows
^
;
Odysseus uses poisoned back without warning; he lies whenever it suits his purpose to do so he slays a whole band of chieftains who had done him no great injury, and whom he might have dismissed in utter abasement, and then he hangs up, like sparrows on a string,' a crowd of women, simply because they had not persistently resisted
not Achaian, but as inhuman.
he shoots a
man behind
his
'
demands of the suitors.^ The parallel between these two stories in the Iliad and the Odyssey maybe traced down to the minutest particulars.
the
Parallel bestories of the
wicld
Both hcrocs have weapons which they alone can both arc aided by Athene both have in iryi Patroklos and 1 elemachos a reflexion of them;
r\
both make a vow to exact a deadly vengeance both trample on and disfigure their slaughtered enemy both are nearly overpowered at one part of their struggle, and
selves
; ;
Od.
i.
263
xii.
260.
i.
265.
283
Of other
details,
some are
easily explained,
some
Like Helios, in the story of Medeia, Penelope is the weaver but her web, although begun, cannot be finished until Odysseus returns, because the web of morning clouds reappears only at sundown. For the name of Odysseus himself it is not so easy to account. When his old nurse Eurykleia recognises, him in the bath by the mark left on his leg by the bite of a boar in his early youth, she tells him that he received his name as exare quite uncertain.
:
generally
felt
for
his
grandfather
Autolykos. It is possible that the word may be connected with a Greek verb (odussomai) meaning 'to be angry;'
but the
way
of accounting for
it
is
presumption, as
we have seen, lies against any such explanation. The name Eurykleia is, like Euryphassa, Euryanassa, and many others, simply a name for the being who
She may be spoken of and the boar's wound is repeated in the story of Adonis with more terrible effect. The name Autolykos again, like that ot Lykaon, denotes simply light. In the same way the dog of Odysseus is called Argos, the white or shining, and is in fact the hound which appears by the side of Artemis in the
rising.
legend of Prokris.
The
servants
who
Hekatos, or Hekatebolos. It thus becomes abundantly clear that the phrases which described the infinitely various aspects of the outer world
would furnish inexhaustible materials for legends Materials of which might be expanded into splendid epic poems. poems. The Homeric poets worked with marvellous success
"^^'^^
'
284
on these
framework
this fact
for
poems of other
countries
being
proved by the astonishing coincidences in minute incidents, and in the sequence of these incidents, as well as in names and characters, between the Iliad and Odyssey, the Volsunga Saga, the Lay of the Nibelungs, the Persian epic of Firdusi, and many more. That some historical facts may be mixed up with these tales of Paris, Helen, Achilles, and Odysseus is, of course, quite possible, and it would be rash, as it is needless, to deny it but we are not justified in affirming it. We know that most of the incidents belonging to these stories never could have taken place in the world of men and within the sphere of human action. We
;
know
that Aphrodite
in battles
anvil of Hephaistos.
We
may,
if
we
so
all
make up
such as
history
or Sarpedon, or
Memnon, or Xanthos and Balios, an account we have in the preface of Thucydides to his great but when we have done so, we shall have nothing
outline of events, which might have taken which we have no warrant whatever for regarding
as historical fact.
between
light
night,
is
brought
The
VolSUng
Tale.
before us again in the Saga of the Volsungs. ^, -o11 c Sigurd, the son oi The real hero of this story is
,,richildren
^
Woden
or
The
fatal
are
all
who
is
285
who sent Freya, in the guise of a crow, with an apple which she dropped into his lap. Rerir took it and gave it to his wife, who then became the mother of Volsung but before the child was born Rerir had gone home to Odin. The fortunes of his house turn on a sword which Odin thrusts to the hilt in the roof-tree of Volsung's hall, to be drawn forth only by him who has strength
;
to wield
seus,
it.
The
is
story
is
clearly the
lift
same
as that of
The-
who
alone
able to
sword and sandals. So no hand but that of Volsung's son Sigmund, and at his touch it leaves the trunk as though it were a feather floating on the water. For this sword, which is a weapon from the same armoury with the spears and arrows of Phoebus, Achilleus, and Philoktetes, and the brands of Arthur and siamund and Smfjoth. of Roland, there is a deadly contest between Sigmund and his people and the men of king Siggeir, who has married Sigmund's sister Signy. The result is that Sigmund and his ten brothers are all bound the deaths of these ten brothers being brought about in a way which will be familiar to all who are acquainted with Hindu folklore. As in the story of the wolf and the seven little goats, the wolf swallows six of the kids, but is ripped up before it has swallowed the seventh,^ so here Sigmund alone escapes the she- wolf who each night devours one of the ten, and who is the mother of king Siggeir, the enemy of Volsung and his
his father
Gram
will yield to
children.
Being loosed from his bonds, Sigmund now and his sister Signy sends to him one
;
whom Sigmund
gives
meal bag, charging him to make bread. The boy fails to do so, being afraid to set hand to the meal-sack because somewhat quick lay in the meal and at the bidding of
;
Aus dem Mutter-leib geschnittene Kinder pflegen Helden zu werden.' the devouring of his parents by Agni, see p. 164.
' '
For
i.
358.
286
Signy Sigmund slays him. The same fate befalls her next child, and then Signy, changing forms with a witch woman whom she leaves with Siggeir, goes into the wood, and becomes, by her brother Sigmund, the mother of Sintjotli, who safely goes through the ordeal before which the children of Siggeir had failed. The child, when he is asked if he has found aught in the meal, answers I misdoubted me that there was something quick in the meal when I first but I have kneaded it all up together, fell to kneading of it both the meal and that which was therein, whatever it was.'
*
:
replies with a laugh Nought wilt thou eat of bread this night, for the most deadly of worms hast thou kneaded up therewith.' This worm is almost ubiquitous in Teutonic and Scandinavian myths and we have
Sigmund
'
this
it
in the
Its
whether of the night or of the winter children who fail to slay it answer to the
ill-fated
who
fail in
hedge behind
which sleeps Briar-rose, or to leap the barrier of spears which guards the sun maiden of Hindu fairy tales. When at length Siggeir is overcome, his wife Signy exults in the I let thought of her son Sinfjotli, and says to Sigmund slay both my children, whom I deemed worthless for the revenging of our father, and I went into the wood to thee in a witch wife's shape, and naw behold Sinfjotli is the son of thee and of me both, and therefore has he this so great hardihood and fierceness, in that he is the son of Volsung's son and Volsung's daughter, and for this and for nought else have I so wrought that King Siggeir might get his
:
'
bane at though
last.
thus said,
back into
'
And merrily now will I die with King Siggeir, was nought merry to wed \i.'ith him.' Having she kisses her brother and her son, and going the fire dies with Siggeir and his men.'
When a like idea was presented to the Greek mind in the marriage of Qidipus and lokaste, a feeling of horror was roused directly by the thought of
2S7
Nothing is perhaps more remarkable in the legends of Northern Europe than the recurrence of the same myth in cycles, the series of narratives thus formed srgurdand
^^='"being regarded as a single continuous tradition. No sooner are the adventures of one hero ended than another starts up to do the same things over again, or the same series of exploits is being achieved by two or more
heroes
at
the
same
in
time.
The
they seek to attain them are always the same, and in most cases tell their own tale with The a clearness which it is impossible to misapprehend.
vi^hich
story of
Sigmund is in its main features the story of the son who avenges him, and Sigurd's victory is won only with
hand.
Regin,
Fafnir,'
forged afresh
to slay with
it
v/hich Fafnir
and thus to end their quarrel for the treasures had contrived to get into his own keeping. The mode by which this antagonism between the dragon and the dwarf was brought about is among the most
The
ransom by which Odin, Loki, and Hahnir, the gods of the bright heaven, are compelled to purchase their freedom from the sons of Reidmar, whose brother, the otter, they have slain. By way of atonement they are not only to fill
the otter's skin with gold, but so to cover
its
it
bearing on the conditions of human society; and in that tale there is throughout, on the part of the involuntary actors, nothing but grief of mind and agony of conscience. Here there is nothing but exuliation as %vell for the incest as for the wild havoc wrought without any motives higher than those which might prompt the treacheries of the most truculent savages. But when in Greek myths we get away from the circle or what was supposed to be the circle of human affaiis. and find ourselves among the inhabitants of Olympos, we discern precisely the same indifference to what we may fairly call Aryan morality in any of its forms ; and in Zeus and Here, Artemis and Apollon, sister and brother, wife and husband, we see the original forms of which Signy and Sigmund are the reflexions. Grimm regards this name as a cognate form of th.e Greek Python, the words standing to each other in the relation of 07;p and <p7)p {Deutsche Myiho'
^"^^'V,
345)-
288
in other not a white hair upon it shall remain visible words, they are to set the earth free from its fetters of ice, and so to spread over it the golden sunshine that not a
single streak of
snow
shall
be seen upon
it.
precious of
all
by the
Andvari,
who
appears as Alberich in the Nibelungenlied, is the golden ring from which other golden rings are constantly
dropping.
is
It is
it
in a
thousand myths
is
On this treasure, whether it be the dower of Brynhild or of Helen, there rests the curse which leads to theft and betrayal, to vengeance and utter ruin and the doom which Regin brings on Fafnir falls also on himself so soon as Sigurd learns that Regin seeks
rod of Hermes or of Vishnu.
;
to cheat
No
sooner, again,
is
hlstory of Gudrun.
Brynhild
in
is
the peerless
charmed slumber caused by the thorn of winter thrust into her right hand by Odin, like the Raksha's claw which leaves Surya Bai, One the sun-maiden, senseless in the Hindu story.^ knight alone can rouse her, and that knight is Sigurd, who, having slain the dragon, becomes possessed of the treasures lying within the mighty coils of his body, and by eating his heart, gains wisdom beyond that of mortal man. Wakened from her sleep, the maiden plights her troth to Sigurd, who afterwards rides on to the house of Giuki, the Niflung, who is determined that he shall marry his daughter Gudrun, and that Brynhild shall become the But Gunnar cannot ride through wife of his son Gunnar. the flames, and by magic arts Sigurd is made to assume the form and voice of Gunnar, and to hand Brynhild over Discovering his treachery, Brynhild urges Gunnar Co him.
slept
Gudrun.
'
'
THE HELGIS.
to slay Sigurd
;
289
he and his They, brothers had sworn not to lay hands on the hero. therefore, get Guttorm to do what they could not do themselves, and thus Sigurd is slain while he sleeps. His death re-awakens all the love of Brynhild, who dies heart-broken on his funeral pile. We can scarcely doubt that in earlier
but, as in the legend of Balder,
forms of the myth these bright beings are restored to life, as Memnon, Alkestis, and Sarpedon. In the Helgi Saga^ Sigrun mourns the death of her lover
Helgi, Hunding's bane,
rime
With Dead
dew
of the dead
my
I
love
all
dripping.
Of
How
O my
king,
May
win healing?
Her
will
come, and rest as she was wont when her lord was living, and they remain together till the dawn comes, when Helgi must ride on the reddening paths, and his pale horse must The Sagaman adds simply that tread the highway aloft.
*in old time folk trowed that men should be born again, though the troth be now deemed but an old wife's doting and so, as folk say, Helgi and Sigrun were born again, and at that tide was he called Helgi the scathe of Hadding, and she Kara the daughter of Halfdan.' When we reach the story of Sigurd, the bane of Fafnir, this old faith, which rested on the reappearance of Balder, Osiris, Tammuz, Dire vengeance Zagreos, and Adonis, has grown weaker. may be taken for his death, yet he himself is seen on earth no more, and Gudrun in her agony cries out, Oh mindest thou not, Sigurd, the words we spoke that thou wouldest come and look on me, yea, even from thy abiding place among the dead ? But Gudrun, who after the abandonment of Brynhild
;
'
For some account of the three Sagas known by Ar. Nat. i. 2S5, ct seq.
'
this
290
Gunnar, becomes the companion of the sun in his middle journey, has yet to be wedded to two husbands, the gloaming and the darkness, or the autumn and the
to
She is, however, not the less resolved that Sigurd shall be avenged. The treasures won by him were in the hands of her brothers; and AtH, her second husband, bent on getting possession of them, invites them to a feast and receives them at the spear's point. Hogni and Gunnar
winter's cold.
up
Sigurd's wealth.
Atli will bring
seeing
it
he
tells
now
full
shall never
He
is
the secret rests with be tortured from him. of snakes, but with the
Orpheus he charms the serpents, until one flies at his heart and kills him. The time for vengeance has now come. The Kolchian Medeia slew the children of lason, after she had sent the death-dealing robe With fiercer revenge Gudrun feasts Atli at to Glauke. the awful banquet to which Astyages in the old Greek story invited Harpagos,' and then having slain him with the aid of her brother Hogni's son, she makes the whole hall his funeral pile, and sends all Atli's men to bear their
help of
or of
lot
Hermes
master company to the dwelling place of the dead. Gudrun's becomes darker, like the northern summer drawing to The sea into which she plunges to end her its close. misery bears her away to the land of King Jonakr, and
the last act in the terrible drama begins. It is practically a repetition of the scenes which have gone before. Gudrun
becomes the wife of Jonakr, the lord of the winterland, and mother of his three children, Saurli, Hamdir, and Erp.
From
wife.
her
summer home
she
Sigurd's daughter,
whom Jormunrek
by
his
command.
'
Ilerod.
iig.
201
trodden down by the horses of his knights as she combs out her long golden locks, and Jormunrek himself is slain by two of the sons whom Gudrun had borne to him. The thoughts of Gudrun turn to the golden days when she dwelt with Sigurd, and she passes away from the land of
living
men,
a dwindling
autumn
twilight*
In this series of incidents, which belong to the great tragedy of the year as clearly as the most transparent
v._ Vedic descriptions of Ushas or the Maruts,wehave more than the framework of the Nibelungenlied. lungeniied. That this epic poem virtually reproduces the Volsung tale, is disputed by none. The few points of difference lie in a mere change of names. In the Nibelung lay Gudrun becomes Kriemhild but Kriemhild, like Gudrun, is the sister of Gunnar, who now becomes Gunther, king of the Burgundians, and (as in the Volsung story) she has to mourn the loss of Siegfried, whom Brynhild does to death by means of Hagen. But in its general spirit the story has undergone no change. Siegfried, like Sigurd, is the invincible hero with the sword which no enemy ever withstood. He has bathed his body in the dragon's blood, as Achilles and Demophoon were plunged into the bath of fire, and no weapon can hurt him except on one spot between his shoulders on which a linden leaf rested while he bathed, as Achilles could be wounded only in the heel, and Rustem
;
slain
On
this spot
he
is
pierced
vengeance more fearful than that which Gudrun wreaked on the murderers of Sigurd, or Odysseus on the robbersuitors of Penelope.
1
The
great
German
epic
may
differ
For a more minute examination of this Saga, see Myth, of Ar. Nat. book i. ch. xii. and Dasent, Popular Tales of the Norse, introduction. A shorter summary, exhibiting most clearly the solar or physical character of the whole epic, may be found in Professor Max Miiller's Essay on Comparative Mytho'
logy,' Chips,
ii.
lOJ
ct s?q.
U2
293
from the Volsung tale, as carrying us from the rougher life of Norse sea-rovers to the elaborate pageants of kings and princes but otherwise there is little change or none. Like all other kindred heroes, Sigurd and Siegfried are both doomed to be wanderers/ and Siegfried is hated by Hagen as the
;
magic sword Balmung, of the tarnkappe or cape of Here, as in the Volsung all their treasures. tale, we have the enmity between Kriemhild (Gudrun) and Brynhild, who insists that Siegfried is Gunther's man and must pay tribute. But Brynhild's girdle and ring have passed into the hands of Kriemhild, and the latter, holding them up, taunts the former with having been won by Hagen now Siegfried, like the maiden of the older story. resolves to avenge on the hero the wrong done by Brynhild to his sister, and learns from her the secret on which his
their
darkness, and of
even takes the precaution of asking silver cross the spot on which alone he can be wounded. On this spot he is smitten by Hagen and thus the as he stoops to drink from a stream death of the hero is connected with the water into which
life
depends.
He
her to
mark with a
In the spirting
which covers the flowers all round with blood and gore, we have a reproduction of the blood-red sunset which looms out in the story of the death of Herakles. After Siegfried's death Hagen gains possession of Kriemhild's treasure and
sinks
it all
in the
Rhine.
of the
series
is
of mythical brought to an Th- vengeance ^^d' ^his portlon of the pocm may or may not of Kriemhild. j^g ^j^gj. ^^^^ ^^ p^j.|.g ^^jch follow it but it is beyond doubt a narrative complete in itself, and indisthis incident the first
in the
With
histories
embodied
Nibelung lay
'
This
'
Dame
345-
doom is brought out with singular clearness in the story of the of the Fine Green Kirtle.' Campbell, Tales of the West Highlands,
ii-
THE NIBELUNGENLIED.
pensable to the general plan of the
293
poem only
as account-
ing for the hatred of Kriemhild for her brothers. The second part of the story begins with the death of Helche, the wife of Etzel, who takes the place of Atli in the saga of the Volsungs, and who thus marries Kriemhild, as Atli marries Gudrun. Kriemhild consents to the union only
it gives her the means of avenging the death of Hagen's victim. To get Hagen into her power she sends messengers to Gunther, bidding him bring all his friends whom Hagen can guide into the Huns' land. Hagen sees the trap laid for him, and is unwilling to go but he cannot withstand the taunt of Gunther that, if he feels guilty on the score of Siegfried's death, he had better stay at home. With three thousand men Gunther, Hagen, and Dankwart set out on the fatal journey. Omens of coming disaster are not lacking on their path. Dietrich, who is sent to meet the Burgundians, tells Hagen that Kriemhild still weeps sore for the hero of the Niblungland and when he is asked how he knows her mind, he answers, What shall I say Every morning early I hear her, Etzel's wife, weep and wail full sadly to the God of heaven for strong Siegfried's body.' When Hagen appears before her, Kriemhild asks him what gifts he has brought. Hagen tries to evade the question by saying that one so wealthy needs no gifts and then she asks him plainly, 'Where is the Niblung's hoard } It was my own, as ye well know.' But when the Burgundians are told that they must give up their arms before going into the hall, Hagen says that the honour is greater than he deserves, and that he will himself be chamberman. His caution only enables him to sell his life dearly. Sixty men are ready to slay Hagen and the harper Volker by his side, but Kriemhild says that so small a number can never do this work and thus we see that we are dealing with beings beyond or above the conditions of humanity. Then, as in the Odyssey and in the Volsung tale, follows the vengeance in the great hall and it is impossible to read the
because
'
.-'
254
relates to
no struggle between
of misgivings, but
sleep with his
mortal men.
The Burgundians
are
full
lulls to
music the sorrows of the men who are soon to die. The tragedy begins the next day with the accidental slaying of a Hun by Volker and in the fight which follows Hagen strikes off the head of Ortlieb, which falls into the lap of his mother Kriemhild. The hall runs with blood. Seven thousand bodies are flung down the steps. Thousands and thousands more are brought up to take part in the bloody work, until Kriemhild sets fire to the hall. The burning
;
rafters fall crashing round the Burgundians, of whom six hundred still survive. The Huns attack them two to one and at last Hagen and Gunther are caught, bound, and
woman who
is
Hagen and
now he may go
which he stole from Siegfried. It is but a repetition of the Volsung story. Hagen answers that he cannot say where it is so long as any of his masters remain alive. When Kriemhild brings him the head of Gunther, Hagen
tells
last
the
and that from himself she should never learn it. In her fury she snatches from him Siegfried's sword Balmung, and with it she strikes off his head. Thus far Etzel has favoured the schemes of his wife but the sight of the dead Hagen rouses his grief, and with the aid of Hildebrand he hews Kriemhild in pieces.' These older epics, so massive in their outlines, so rich
secret beside himself,
;
in
VI.
not
fail
to furnish
materials for a
who
sat dowji in
and hardy generation. Thus the Nibelungenlied was watered down until it assumed the form of the legend of Walter of
taine.
Aquitaine,
who
plays in
>
it
Here, as
295
Lay, we have the names Gibicho, Gunther, and Etzel, and a possible historical element in the hostages taken to the country of the Huns from Basqueland and the banks of the Rhine, and perhaps also in the description of the life and court of the Hunnish chief, when he returns to his home and to his wife Helche, or, as some call her, Ospirin. But with these exceptions the tale exhibits the old incidents, to which the writer has given a more cheerful ending. Grani, the war-steed of Sigurd, appears here as Lion, who, like Grani, is able to carry from Etzel's house
the heavy treasure which Walter bears away with Hildegund. He is returning to his home in the land where the sun goes down, with the golden hoard which has been the bane of Fafnir and Regin, of Brynhild and Gudrun, of
Sigurd and Siegfried, of Helen and Menelaos, But Walter has to face and overcome dire perils in the greed and enmity of King Gunther. The lord of Worms resolves that the hoard shall not be carried through the land of the Franks, and with his knights he assails Walter on his journey. But Hagen, who accompanies him, has lost much of the daimtless courage which marks him in the Nibelung story and his advice to Gunther is that he should feign a retreat, and thus withdraw Walter from the stronghold in which he had placed Hildegund and his treasure. This counsel, which is given after the death of many knights, is followed by Gunther, and in the combat which ensues Walter smites off a leg from Gunther's body, and is about
;
to deal
him the death-stroke, when Hagen interposes his and the blade of Walter's sword is shivered. In a moment of rashness Walter raises his arm to throw the hilt away, and Hagen, quick as lightning,
helmet,
The penalty for this deed is Walter draws with his left hand his short Hunnish dagger, and tearing Hagen's right eye from its socket casts it on the ground these incidents corresponding closely with the myths which make Zio or Tyr and
strikes off his right hand.
soon exacted.
296
Indra Savitar lose each his right hand, and speak of blood thus drawn
is
held to wipe
away the
old enmity,
office of
Asklepios,
this point
onwards
smooth. The rivalry of courtesies follows the rivalry of swords and spears and even Etzel is bidden to the feast, when, having reached the hero's home, Hildegund becomes the wife of Walter. More pure than Helen, but not less radiant, she returns from Helen's exile with
;
all
around
maiden
The
knight who is destined to win her. Whether it be Danae,^ or Rapunzel,* or the Rose of the Alhambra;^
trich.
all
strives to hinder
and
womanly Theseus,
way
to the
The legend
*^
and many others. In all these the beast takes up the in the legend of Hugdietrich child from a kindly impulse alone the babe is taken away to be devoured, and it becomes necessary that some one should discover him at once, instead of suffering him to remain like Romulus or Paris in
;
the beast's
lair.
name Hagen is given to a child who is carried away, like Ganymedes or Surya Bai, by a griffin to his nest among the rocks, and who there grows up to the strength of manhood,
2 Popular Homatices of the Middle Ages, 315. See p. 46. See ^ Myth, Seep. III. p. 236. of Ar. Nat. Popular Romances of the Middle Ages, p. 333.
ii.
401.
Ibid, p. 341.
297
on
his return
home
in Iceland,
The Gudrun
his wife,
Lay.
story starts afresh in the path of the thousand myths which speak of a host of knights wooing a maiden to their own destruction until the destined hero comes to claim her. But Hilda is scarcely a more prominent person in this portion of the lay than the sweet singer Horant or Hjarrandi, who appears as Orendil or Aurentil in the Hamlet myths, and is no other than Orpheus or Amphion, Pan or Wainamoinen. The fortunes of Gudrun, the daughter of Hilda and Hettel, are those of the fearless maidens who are born to be the cause of strife and warfare, and who after long suffering and shameful toil are raised to the glory which is their birthright. In vain Hartmuth of Normandy and Siegfried of Moorland ask her in marriage in vain Herwig of Zealand seeks to have her as his wife. But, more bold than the others, Herwig marches with his knights to the walls of Hegelingen, and in a combat to which he challenges Hettel is well-nigh winning the day, when Gudrun rushes between them. To her prayer that the battle may cease Herwig assents, on condition that she will wed with him. The troth is pledged, the words being added that Gudrun never changes. The sequel of the story is a long comment on her invincible fidelity. In revenge for the slight put upon him Siegfried invades Denmark, and while Hettel besieges Siegfried in the fortress to which he has driven him, Hartmuth, with his father Ludwig, makes a raid on Hegelingen, and carries Gudrun with many of her maidens into Normandy. There Hartmuth seeks vainly to win the love which is pledged for life and death to Herwig but the catastrophe of the Danish army, and the death of king
;
;
Hettel, who comes to rescue his child, seem to leave to Gudrun no hope of escape from her bondage. Time goes on. Fair means and foul are alike employed to work a
298
change
is
brought
like Cin-
down
to
maidens who,
Goose Girl of popular stories, are compelled work among the ashes or the kine. But Girlinda, the mother of Hartmuth, who thinks thus to break her spirit, brings on herself a terrible vengeance when once more the Danish host comes, and Herwig with them, to rescue Gudrun from her long captivity. The story of Frithjof and Ingebjorg' contains, perhaps, an amount of local history larger than that which IX. The may exist in the Nibelungenlied but some of ^ Frithjof ^ ^ Saga. its most strikmg features it shares with confesderella or the
; .
..
Frithjof himself
class
is
of solar heroes,
whom
Herakles
He is be great, but for a time others are placed at a vantage over him. He is, in short, the Boots of popular stories, who must not presume to wed the royal
maiden on
carries with
as the
whom
love.
Nevertheless,
he
The
is
He
bears in
hand the invincible sword of Perseus on his arm is the magic ring, which we have seen among the treasures of Andvari the dwarf; and the good ship EUide does his bidding, like the Phaiakian barks and the marvellous ship of the .^sir.^ But many a dark cloud must cast its shadow on his path before the sky may shine bright and clear above him. Like Herakles, he must pass through a time of madThe doom of exile is also upon him, and he must ness. be a wanderer over earth and sea, like Siegfried and Sigurd, like Wuotan and Indra, like Phoebus, Bellerophon, and Odysseus. Like these he achieves mighty exploits like these he longs to see once more the maiden from whom he
; '
p. 372.
See
p. 3.
299
and
at length,
when
For the Icelandic Saga of Grettir something of an been claimed on grounds which seem
it.
scarcely to justify
.
To
^
,.
.
x.
The but
,,
cially
m
.
Grettir Saga,
;
violence,
we have already admitted in the case of the Iliad and other Aryan epics that the poet must throw over his work the colouring of the social life of his own time. But so far
as the career of Grettir himself
picture of
is
concerned,
it
is
not a
human
life
at
all,
is little
more
than a string of sheer impossibilities. The horse Keingala from whom Grettir strips off the hide is seemingly none
loss. Not only do six men fall upon him without warning, and are beaten off; but when Grettir has slain Thorir Redbeard, Thorir of Garth assails him
The solitary Grettir slays eighteen and wounds many more, and the rest take to flight.' Througliout his life, no one expects him to do anything, yet h's
with eighty men.
exploits leave those of
father,
all
other
men
far
behind.
His
geese
When
he does no work or spoils all that he takes in hand. he puts forth his strength, the comment is, We
'
wotted not that thou wert a man of such powers as we have now proved thee.' In short, he is Boots, or Cinderella, or the Goose Girl, or the disguised Odysseus waiting patiently until the time shall come for making himself known.
' In Scott's Old Mortality, ch. xi., old Major Bellenden takes his niece to task for believing that the heroes of romance fought single-handed with whole battalions. One to three, he says, is as great odds as ever fought and won ; and I never knew anybody that cared to take that, except old Corporal Raddlebanes. I dare say you would think very little of Raddlebanes if he were alongside of Artamines.' But it is not to be supposed that the poets of the myth-making ages spent their time in multiplying tales which, if referred to the conditions of human life, are mere absurdities. There is a sense in which these stories are strictly true, and the myth-makers were well aware of their truth but it is the sense in which the conflict between Indra and Vritra is true, and not any other.
'
'
'
...
30O
There is scarcely an incident or a feature in the narrative which has not its parallel in other epics of the Aryan world but throughout his whole life there presses on him the doom which is never taken off from Herakles, Perseus, Achilles, and the rest the doom of unremitting toil, for which he himself receives no recompense. As Olaf says, If ever a man has been cursed, of all men must thou have been and in strange accordance with the story of Ixion, his father says of him, Methinks over much on a whirling wheel his life turns.' But this invincible hero dreads dark; '
'
'
we may
his character
come.
He
is,
the avenging
According to the tale which relates the battle of RonRoland^ and his comrades win a victory as XI. The splendid as that of Leonidas at Thermopylai, Roland, although at the same cost. But at best this is but a popular tradition and another popular tradition is found in the magnificent Song of Attabiscar,^ which gives a vivid The one trapicture of the utter defeat of the invaders. dition is, perhaps, worth as much as the other, and no more and the attempt to extract any history from them must be fruitless. Of the two, the popular Basque song is the more credible. Armies may be as utterly routed as that of the great Charles is there said to have been but the exploits of Roland and his comrades are absolute imEven when the ground is piled with the dead possibilities. whom their swords have smitten down, Roland has not so much as a scratch upon his body, though his armour is pierced everywhere with spear points, and his death is
cesvalles,
;
; ;
>
2 s *
For the evidence of tViis see Myth, of Ar. Nat. book Popular Romances of the Middle Ages, p. 400.
Ibid. p. 202.
i.
ch. xii.
i.
189.
301
caused not by any wound but by the excessive toil, which spHts his skull and lets his brain ooze out at his temples.
He is, in short, one of those invulnerable heroes, whom death must nevertheless be suffered somehow or other to lay low and his sword Durandal is one of those magic weapons of which Excalibur, and Morglay, and Gram, are the fellows.
;
If, when drawn from its sheath, it flashes like lightning and blinds the eyes of foemen, this may be put down to the but there must surely be some licence of poetical fancy method in the madness of so many poets, when all describe the armour of their heroes in the like terms of hyperbole, absurd when the words are spoken of any weapons fashioned by human hands, but less than the reality when spoken of the spears of Indra or of Phoebus. Nay, Roland himself knows that it is no earthly weapon which he wields. It has been brought by angels from heaven, like the robe which came to Medeia from Helios and when Roland feels that his death hour has come, even he is utterly unIn vain he tries to shiver it against able to break it. marble, sardonyx, and adamant and then he sinks down
;
who
brought the sword will bear it away again, as Excalibur is drawn down beneath the waters from which it had arisen.
Of the beautiful Hilda, to whom Roland is betrothed, it is enough to say that she belongs to that bright array of beings to whom death brings life and gladness, and among whom are seen the glorious forms of Kleopatra and Brynhild, of Daphne and Arethousa, of lole and Briseis, and that
with this touching
myth ends
whom
in the
some
march named
The
may
hero,
be somewhat different, but he is the same invincible whose weapons have been forged on no earthly anvil.
'
He
Middle Ages,
p. 223.
302
is
and
eighty Paladin serve only to identify him with whom both he and Roland stand in the relation of brothers. Like Arthur, and Tristram, and Macduff, like Telcphos, Perseus, Cyrus, Romulus, CEdipus, he is one of the Fatal Children, whose greatness no earthly obstacles can hinder. At his birth the fairies appear to bestow on him their gift and their blessing, as the Moirai are seen round the cradle of Meleagros. His life on earth
other heroes to
is
He
is
by
is
sentenced to a
hard punishment because his father fails in his trust. He is rescued from death only by the sudden appearance of formidable enemies, against whom Karl sees that Olger
may
Alkmene but a sense of wrongs hands of the emperor sends him forth to be, like Indra, and Savitar, and Woden, and Phoebus, a wanderer over the wide earth. But Olger is also, like them, one whom all women love and more especially he is the darling of Morgan le Fay, who at his birth had promised that when he had achieved his greatness she would take
as those of the son of
;
suffered at the
him
In
we have simply
a reflexion
Queen for True Thomas But in this her delicious land, where he forgets the years which have passed away, Olger may not
selberg for Tanhaijser, of the Fairy
of Ercildoune.
tarry for ever.
The
'
still
survives,
286.
THE MAGIC
RING.
303
again on earth in other guise, that Arthur must once more be king, that the slumber of the Ephesian Sleepers must
come
Sarpedon must once again gladden Lykian home, and the slain Memnon return to the courts of Olympos. While his days pass away in Avilion in a dream of delight, the land which he had guarded is overrun by foes, and in answer to the cry of the Franks Morgan le Fay lifts from his head the cap of forgetfulness, and instantly he is eager to hasten to the help of the people for whom he had fought in times past. But the years which have rolled by have had an effect which only the magic of Morgan has been able to counteract and by
to an end, that
his bright
;
myth
him a
ring which shall preserve his youth so long as he keeps it on his hand. If he parts with it he will be a wrinkled old man from whose fingers all strength will have passed utterly away. Thus defended, he appears again in the land of the Franks and the scenes to which his strange
;
fol-
lowed the visit of the Seven Sleepers to the Ephesus where they had spent the days of their youth. The old fortune of Olger pursues him still. Women cannot see him without
loving him, and,
more than
all
But the strange rumours which had gone abroad about this redoubtable champion had reached her ears, and she determines to test Intheir truth by taking away the ring from his hand. stantly he becomes the withered old man which Odysseus appeared to be, when Athene took away all beauty from his When it is face and all brightness from his golden hair.' replaced on his finger, he is seen again in all the vigour of early manhood and in this lusty guise he is leading the daughter of the land to the altar, when he is once more taken away by the Fay Morgan to her beautiful home, from which, the popular tale still averred that, like Arthur, and
;
Od.
xiii.
431
xvi.
175,
304
more.*
not so
XIII.
which
it
range of myths with which, etymologically or otherwise, it is connected. The comparatively late date at
the Dane,
which the English story, as we have it, was put together, may be taken for granted but although from a certain point of view this fact has its significance, it has little to do with the nature of the materials out of which the legend Havelok is one of the Fatal Children has been evolved. who are born to be kings, and to destroy those who keep them out of their rightful inheritance and there is, therefore, but one maiden in the world who may be his wife. Into the Havelok myth the story of this maiden is introand thus we have in Denmark duced independently Havelok and his sisters entrusted to the care of Godard, and in England, Goldborough, the daughter of ^thelwald, entrusted to the care of Godric, the trust in both cases betrayed, and the treachery made to subserve the exaltation
;
;
Godard
is
Havelok, shall bear rule in Denmark, and Godric that oldborough shall not stand in his way in England. But
the Norns do not work in vain.
In the
infinite multiplicity of details
it is
introduced into the myth by French possible that some may be really borrowed from history, romance-makers while others are mere arbitrary fictions, as, from their stupidity, many of them may be fairly supposed to be. Others are as manifestly borrowed from the Ogier's horse, Broiefort, while his old familiar stores of mythical imagery. master is in the underground prison, is carried away, and made to serve in a lime-pit, where all his hair is burnt off his flanks, and his tail is shorn to the But when Ogier, whose weight crushes all other beasts, leans against stump. him, Broiefort, far from yielding, only strengthens himself against the weight. This is, plainly, only another version of the myths in which the sword or the cloak is useless except to the one man who is destined to draw the one or to put on the other, as in the stories of Arthur, Baliii, Lancelot, and Orendil. When Ogier draws his sword, we have, as we might expect, the comparison with which the weapons of Achilles, of Arthur, and other heroes have rendered
us familiar.
THE GREAT
FOOL.
;
30=
and this trust is in its turn betrayed, as it is by Harpagos and the messengers of Amulius in the stories of Cyrus and Romulus. When at midnight Grim rises to do Godard's bidding,
charge that he shall put him to death
he sees streaming from the mouth of the child the bright light which, encircling the head of Servius Tullius, betokened the future greatness of the son of the slave Ocresia, and as it gleamed round the head of Asklepios, warned the shepherd Aristhanas that he saw before him a divine child. Havelok is thus recognised by him as the son of king Birkabeyn, and the fisherman, to avoid the wrath of Godard, hastens away from Denmark, and takes up his abode in the town which bears his name in England. But what is Havelok to do in the new land ? His preserver is poor, he himself is meanly clad and without friends, and so, when he reaches Lincoln in search of work, he becomes the
scullion-boy in Earl Godric's kitchen.
legend, the Great Fool
yield,
^
is
still
the one to
whom
hosts
and it is he alone who is destined to be the husband of the young Fairfine, so Havelock alone can win the queenly daughter of vEthelwald. Thus it comes to pass that at the games held by Earl
way which
him
lad
Godric the kitchen-boy distances all his competitors in a renders all thought of coping with Haveiokand
impossible.
GoWborough.
an opportunity for humiliating GoldHe has promised her father that he will wed borough. her to the strongest man, and he will keep his word. The marriage is accordingly celebrated, and Goldborough finds herself in the hovel of Havelok with a feeling of disgust equal to that of the princess who in the Norse and German stories marries King Thrushbeard or King Hacon Grizzlebeard in their disguise as beggars. But like Grimm, Goldborough sees at night the flame which streams from Havelok's mouth, and she hears an angel say that she
Godric sees
'
Ixxiv.
3o6
is
the
man who
is
to be king of
Denmark.
Havelok, on waking, says that he, too, has seen a vision, which assured him that he was to sit upon king Birkabeyn's throne and with his wife and the three sons of Grim he sets sail from England to fight for and to win back his inheritance. In Denmark his might is at once proved by the destruction of sixty-one thieves, who, when they assail the
;
house
in
which he
is
sojourning, are
all
slain
by him and
The next
a great light streaming from his chamber, and going in, he beholds what Grim and Goldborough had beheld
before him.
The
tells
us of the dis-
comfiture and
death
Godard
in
romance ends with a period of repose as profound as that which marks the close of the Odyssey.^ But the English story of Havelok does not stand by itself. In the French poem, put together probably in the
The
loves of
Cumn.""^"
(a
name which
looks as mere a translation as the Gaelic Fairfine from the Greek Chryseis), and Havelok has become Havelok Curan.
Here, then, we have the story of the loves of Argentile and Curan, one of the narratives in Warner's poem, entitled Albion's England,' in which Curan, in order to win Ar'
gentile,
becomes a scullion in the household of Ethil, who compels her to marry him from the same motives which led Godric to insist that Goldborough should wed Havelok, If we ask what or w^ho is Curan, we are carried to the Danish hero whom the Angles call Anlaf-cwiran, and we are put on a track which ends in the identification of the name Anlaf with that of Havelok, whose story, as furnishing groundwork for the claim of the Danes through him to England, is connected with the myth of Guy of Warwick.^
Popular Romances of the Mi idle Ages, 'Havelok.' - The chronicle cited by Sir F. Madden gives to the kings of Denmark and Norway, who bring over Colbrand, the names Anelaphus and Conelaphus. In the metrical romance of Guy of Warwick these names appear in the formS
'
^07
But Havelok further presents a link with the Saga of Beowulf, as bearing a name which is only a modification of that of Higelac, one of the heroes of that myth. Haveiokand Whether this name is further to be identified "^'"'^twith the Danish Chochilaichus of Gregory of Tours, is a question which has an interest only in so far as it may tend to prove what is disputed by none, that the names of
historical persons
But when we
familiar to
find tlie
have found their way into popular legends. name Anlaf, Anelaph, Hanelocke, in
we
name
are
English ears
is
seen to
we
compelled to ask what stories are told of Hamlet besides that which has been told by Shakespeare. On the very face of the Shakespearian play we have the same myth repeated more than once and it is known that other versions of the drama existed before Shakespeare took the subject in hand. If we look into the incidents of Shakespeare's play we find (apart from the connexion of Denmark with England, which marks the story of Havelok and Grim) that the method of Hamlet's death agrees precisel)^ with that of his father. The latter is poisoned while sleeping in his orchard of an afternoon and the ghost tells
; ;
Hamlet
case,
guilt, is that
he had been stung by a serpent. But in either whether by accident or otherwise, we have the features common to a thousand mythical stories the snake which appears in the myths of Eurydike and Arthur, the poison which plays a part in many a story of dawn-maidens, the afternoon slumber into which Endymion sinks in the land of Latmos. When we go further back in the mythical genealogy of Hamlet, we find ourselves amongst a crowd of beings whose
names
Hanelocke and Conelocke, while the MS. English chsonicleZ/a;-/. 63, referred to by Sir F. Madden, speaks of the Danes who had claimed before, by the title of King Havelocke that wedded Goldesburghe, the king's daughter of Northumbr.*
'
; ;
3oS
Narkissos, Aethlios,
or
Fairfine.
We
who
may
The genealogy
of Hamlet.
Lay
as Hjarrandi, the
Hke Orpheus, Amphion, Hermes, or Pan, can charm all men with his sweet sounds, and whose name probably denotes nothing more than the hearBut Orendil is one of the three sons ing ear (ohr, auris). of Oygel, king of Treves, who with a slight change of name
being
who,
appears as Eigil, a counterpart of Tell, the shooting god, and is possibly the same as the Higelac of Beowulf. Like
his son
woman
in
the
queen of Jerusalem but when he sets sail in search of her, the fleet is held windbound for three years in the Klebermeer, another Aulis, until the Virgin hears his prayers and lets them go, as Artemis at last The sequel of sent a breeze to waft the Achaians to I lion. the story is a strange jumble of many myths. The fleet is wrecked when within sight of the Holy Sepulchre, and none escape but Orendil who, becoming servant to a fisherman, catches a whale, in the body of which is a grey coat. Although he wishes earnestly to possess this coat, and it is offered for sale at a very low price, he cannot meet the cost but when anyone else tries to put it on, the garment splits. When Orendil dons it, it not only becomes as good as new, but makes him invulnerable a myth which recalls not only the stories of Medeia and Nessos, but more especially those of Arthur, Balin, Lancelot, Tristram, and Galahad. The coat which will suffer only one man to put it on is but the sword which will yield only to one man's touch and the scabbard of Arthur's Excalibur possesses precisely the power of the grey coat of making its owner invulnerable. Henceforth Orendil bears the name Graurock, the man with the grey or gleaming robe,' In a tournament, in which
The word grey denotes strictly not subdued but dazzling light. It is the Glaukos of the Sarpedon myth, and Athene is Glaukopis, the maiden with the
'
flashing face.
309
he has to borrow a horse. He is miraculously provided with golden spurs, and he is, of course, the conqueror. The betrothal of Orendil with Queen Bride is followed by a war for the conquest of Jerusalem in which he outdoes Grettir, Herakles, or Rustem, by slaying single-
At
Orendil and his wife of the hour in which they must die, and when that time has come, they are borne away to
heaven.
The grey
frock becomes,
it is
scarcely necessary
had
been
king.^
steals
beings
beautiful Sita, or
fearful
and the
When
Grendel
but the which Beowulf is conqueror, is but a reflexion of the first, while both are repeated in the later
second struggle,
For these remarks on Hamlet I am indebted to the kindness of Dr. and I acknowledge my debt with the more gratitude, inasmuch as have been instituted for purely historical purposes. It has been his object to ascertain how far Hamlet belongs to a family which existed in history ; and the result of his search is that almost every name with which he is connected is the subject of myths of which it is impossible not to see the identity with the myths of other branches of the Aryan race. ^ Populai- Romances of the Middle Ages, 189. ' A further point of connexion is furnished by the name of King Birkabeyn, who is here the father of Havelok, and in the French poem is the father of Havelok Curan. Latham, 'Havelok the Dane,' Transactions of the Royal Society of Literature, vol. viii. new series.
'
Latham
his inquiries
310
encounter with the great dragon, which, hke Vritra and the Panis, Hke Fafnir and Python, keeps guard over his priceless treasures, which he hides away greedily beneath the the earth. Like Hamlet or Havelok, again, or like Achilles
and Herakles, Beowulf reaps no great harvest of his toil, although the king for whom he works is a more kindly master than Eurystheus. But in death as well as in life Beowulf is but a counterpart of the great son of Alkmene. The latter died by the blood of the Kentaur Nessos, whom he had smitten to death the former dies by the blood of the fiery dragon whom he has slain. The venomed drops which remain on his hands burn and swell, until the poison comes through his limbs. In his agony the hero asks to look again upon the choice treasures which he has
:
won
for the
and thus having feasted once more on the dazzling vision of golden cups, jewelled bracelets, and gleaming coffers, he hastens from the land of the living to the unseen regions, whither the Waegmundings had gone before him. It may seem but a barbaric vision yet the splendour which soothes the dying Beowulf is but the brilliancy of the golden doors and statues which shed their dazzling lustre on the palace of Alkinoos. So far as the conceptions differ, the contrast is
;
but the result of impressions made by the phenomena of sunset on the mind of the Teuton beneath his harsher sky, and on that of the Greek in his more genial home.'
The very
XV.
and
Romance
of Arthur,
without the guidance of etymology the analysis ^"^ classification of myths would be impossible,
^jj
primary myths must yield at once to the must be excluded from the class of primary myths altogether. In the secondary myths
'
The
exists in a single
It date at which the epic of Beowulf was composed is uncertain. manuscript of the tenth century. Craik, History of n^:ish
i.
Literature^
57.
311
tell
own tale philologically and point to the sources from which the materials for the myth were derived and when we find such names in myths which are common to many or to all the branches of the Aryan race, we conclude without hesitation that we are dealing with traditions which have come down to us from a time when the forefathers of The stories of Enthese peoples formed a single society. dymion, of Prokris, of Sarp^don and Glaukos, of Demeter and Persephone, are transparent and their nature is determined by the most cogent philological evidence. This evidence is scarcely less cogent when we come to the myth of the Teutonic Iduna, of whom, as of Persephone, we are told that Wuotan and all the ^sir mourned when she was stolen away, how the trees shed frozen tears, and the sun withdrew his face, until Loki brought her back in the form
their
;
of a quail.'
is
when
the stories
which philological tests may be applied, or perhaps with none. We can be under no doubt as to the meaning of tales in which
us with
{q.\n
names
to
all
maiden slumbers
hedge of briars, until the destined When Dornroschen awakes from her slumber at the kiss of the brave knight who has found his way to her chamber, the scullion-boy receives the blow which the cook had raised his hand to inflict a hundred years ago, and the maid goes on with the process of basting the meat, in which she had been interrupted when the It is but the thorn pierced the hand of the Rose Maiden. familiar form which the myth is sure to receive at the hands of the common folk but the transformation makes the task
flame, or an impenetrable
Bunsen asserts naturally that this myth is an exact counterpart of the earliest myth of Herakles, who falls into the sleep of winter, and lies, stiff and {God in History, stark, until lolaos wakes him by holding a quail to his nose. For Ortygia, the quail land, see p. 85. ii. 483.)
312
the origin of
determined by the character and sequence of their incidents. There is no etymological connexion, seemingly, between the Hindu story of Punchkin,' and the Teutonic tale of the giant who had no heart in his body ^ yet it is impossible not to see that the death of the one, both in the mode of its infliction and in the whole train of incidents which led to it, is the precise counterpart of the catastrophe which overtakes the other. The names Sisyphos and Ixion may explain themselves, although in the case of the latter this
which
is
has been disputed but apart from this it cannot be questioned that wealth and wisdom and a terrible punishment
;
are the characteristics of Sisyphos, Ixion, and Tantalos that the stone which Sisyphos heaves to the
hill
summit of the
only to see it roll down again, is but the blazing fourspoked wheel on which the body of Ixion is stretched as on
a rack at noon- day, and that the effects of drought could
scarcely be
more
by
the
myth of
earth or
the sun,
into
life,
who
down
close to the
makes the water flee away as he stoops to quench his thirst. The Ottawa tale of Iosco is a story of the antagonism between loskehi, the White One, with his brother Tawiseara, the Dark One.^ We have seen these brothers in the correlative deities of the Aryan world, appearing sometimes as
brothers,
times as both
or as enemies, somesometimes one light and one dark. The evidence of language sets its seal on these myths of the two dawns, Ushasau, or the two Rudras (Rudrau), the morning and evening breezes, of Varuna and Mitra, of Eros and Anteros, of Phaethon and Helios, of Herakles and Iphikles, of Glaukos and Sarpedon, of Prometheus and Epimetheus, of Soma and Sur3^a. But we cannot hesitate
sisters, as friends,
sometimes as
brilliant,
to place in their
company
i.
Romulus
Ih.
i.
138.
314.
313
and Neleus, of Theseus and Peirithoos, of Achilles and Patroklos, of the Icelandic Grettir and Illugi, of Rama and Luxman, of Krishna and Arjuna, of Danaos and Aigyptos, or to recognise these under
Pelias
Remus, of
Two
Brothers, the
the
Two
Untrue,
stories.
and
Two
and
similarity in a
marked
any
The conclusion is one which is, of course, quite independent of the further inquiry whether the stories stand to each
other as brother and
distant kinsfolk
sister, or father and child, or as more who have grown to manhood without having each other or known each of the other's existence.
ever seen
The
likeness
portation, or
it
plants from seeds which once came from a single tree but whatever be the cause, the likeness is still there, and accord-
may be grouped These remarks apply with special force to the romance, or rather the body of romances, in which King Arthur is a more or less prominent figure. There can be no question that in the chronicle of Malory we have a number of stories, the connexion between some of which is very slender, and which have been pieced together with no great dexterity and skill. The whole story, as he gives it, resolves itself into cycles, the heroes of which had each his own separate legend or tradition, which probably at first made no reference to Arthur. Of the whole narrative it may be said that its general outlines and its special
ing to these points of likeness, these stories
and
classified.
may be traced not only in other mediaeval romances, but in the traditions of almost every Aryan tribe. Nor can it be maintained that these resemblances are such as may be traced at the will of any who choose to find
features
them
in
novels,
if
these novels
314
The
is
are confessedly
;
and
it
the
how each
its
into shape
and determines
tale.
The story begins with an incident which recalls that of Alkmene and Amphitryon in the device by which Uther
Early years of Arthur.
her child,
birth
Pcndragon obtains access to Igerne, the wife of Gorlols. The incidents which follow the birth of Arthur,^ carry us to the tales which tell us of the
and early years of the Persian Cyrus, the Latin Romulus, or the Theban CEdipus. All these heroes are made known by doing something which others cannot do but the mode in which Arthur is revealed is identical with that in which Sigmund is made known in the Volsung tale. In the Arthur story the sword is firmly fixed in an iron anvil in the Volsung legend it is thrust into the roof-tree by the one-eyed stranger, who appears with a slouched hat and a spotted cloak.^ In the one case we have the inscription, that he who can pull the sword out of the stone and anvil is right wise born king of England in the other, the Whoso draweth this sword from one-eyed old man says this stock shall have the same as a gift from me, and shall find in good sooth that never bare he better sword in hand
; ; ;
:
than
all
is this.'
It would be impossible to explain Walter Scott's story of the Atttiqjiary, Asa picture of the times of ov his Legend of Montrose, as nature-m>ths. which it professes to treat, Ivanhoe may be worthless ; but the words and acts of Prince John and his followers, of Cedric and the Templar, may be the words and acts of real men. It is otherwise when we come to the exploits of Locksley at the tournament, for here Scott has chosen to insert a bit of popular legend belonging to the story of Robin Hood or William of Cloudeslee and Adam Bell ; and the affinity of these stories with the myth of Tell will not be dis-
puted.
"^
See p. 139. Popular Rof?iances of the Middle Ages, p. 2. This is the heaven-god Odin or Woden himself.
See
p. 284.
TONIGHT.
315
hand
to the
sword Gram,
'
as
if it
Sigmund myth
it is
indeed to the last degree unlikely, that the latter was directly suggested by the myth of Theseus, who draws
and
is
of
all
lands.
of
his
enemies
like
it
when
like
Achilles holds
heaven
the lightning.
According to the
later ideal,
Arthur
is
the king or
With
Theiovesof
^mg Arthur.
Orkney are cardinal points in the story. As in the Theban tradition, the ruin of the hero or of his kingdom must be brought about by his own son or descendants and Mordred and the wife of the king of Orkney stand to Arthur in the relation of Polyneikes and lokaste to CEdipus. The queen of Orkney is Arthur's sister, the daughter of Igerne, although he knows it not, as CEdipus knows not that in wedding lokaste he is wed;
But in the Arthur story it must be remembered that he dallies with the queen of Orkney, though she comes to his court with her four sons, as he dallies with the daughter of Earl Sanam, for the mere attraction of her beauty. In neither case has he any misgivings of conscience. If his relations with the mother of Mordred cause him sadness, this sadness is not awakened until he has dreams which forbode the ruin to be one day wrought. But if Arthur really belong to the same heroic company with Herakles and Sigurd, with Phoebus, or Indra, or Agni, this sensuous characteristic is precisely what we
ding his mother.
3i6
should look
So
it
is
with Paris
and
Diktynna and of
after thee,
Prokris.
so, too, Minos is the lover of So again the Vedic poet, address:
'
After thee
is
the chariot
;
Arvan, the
man after thee, the cows after girls,' who all seek to be wedded to
;
we have seen, are all wedded at one and moment to Krishna. Nor may we pass over the
first
and which
tells
should be born on Mayday, orders that all the children born on that day shall be brought to him. With these Mordred is placed in a ship, which is wrecked, and, as we may suppose, Mordred is the only one saved.' But the sword which Arthur draws out of the stone is not the weapon by which his greatest deeds are wrought.
Arthur's sword.
^^ ^^
suappcd
in conflict
Precisely the
same
is
Gram which Odin thrusts into the roof-tree of the Volsungs. The sword of Arthur, whether it be Excalibur, or, as some
it, Mirandoise, is bestowed on him by the Lake just as the shards of the sword Gram, welded together by Regin the smith, are brought by the Fair Hjordis to Sigurd her son, who now stands in place of his father Sigmund, But the Lady of the Lake and the
versions have
Lady
of the
mother of Sigurd are simply counterparts of Thetis, the nymph of the sea, who brings from the smith Hephaistos the armour which is to serve for her child Achilleus, in place of that which Hektor had taken from the body ot Patroklos. The parallel is complete, and its significance cannot be mistaken. The scabbard of this sword is even more marvellous
' With this we may compare the myth which represents Kamsa as ordering the slaughter of the new-born children, amongst whom he hopes that Krishna will meet his death see p. 147. The only difference is that Kamsa represents the darkness, while Arthur is the light; but the night destroys the day, and the day destroys the night, and what is said of the one holds good of the other.
:
317
than the weapon itself: nay, the sage Merlin tells Arthur that it is worth ten of the sword, for so long as he bears the sheath about him, the sorest blow shall not The scabbard
of Arthurs
and thus
sword.
Arthur
is
placed in the ranks of that large class of heroes in one way, whether as being
by some
particular
weapon
or instrument,
Balder by the mistletoe, or Ragnar Lodbrog by the viper. In all these stories a way is necessarily provided by
as
be brought about. Arthur, inis Aurendil with the grey and here cloak,^ must somehow or other be deprived of it this is done by means of Arthur's sister, Morgan le Fay, to whom he entrusts it for safety, but who, loving Sir Accolon more than her husband Sir Uriens, gives it to him, making
vulnerable with the scabbard, as
;
may
In a
which follows the king is well-nigh overcome but though he regains the sheath, yet Morgan contrives once more to get it into her hands. Excalibur she cannot take from the grasp of Arthur as he sleeps but she hurls the scabbard into the lake, and the death of the king at some time or other is insured. Nor is it here only in the Arthur cycle that this magic sword is seen. The whole story is repeated in the episode of the good Sir Galahad. When the day for filling up the Perilous Seat has come, a squire tells the king that he has seen a great stone floating down the river, and a sword fixed in it. Here again we have the inscription, by which the weapon is made to say that no man shall take it hence but he by whose side it ought to hang, and that he shall be the
;
At Arthur's bidding Lancelot, Gawaine, and Percivale strive to draw it forth but it will yield only to the touch of the pure Sir Galahad, who, in full assurance of winning it, has come with a scabbard only.
best knight in the world.
;
'
See
p. 308.
3i8
Arthur as
Arthurand
chiidren.
but a base-
bom
Grimm
calls
spend their early years in banishment or disguise or humiUation and when they come to claim their rightful inheritance, they are despised or jeered at by men of meaner birth, who can never be their match in strength and wit. The wise Odysseus is mocked for his beggarly garb as he stands on the day of doom in his own hall and this
; ;
is
reflected in count-
tell
us of a degradation culmi-
This story is brought in by a cowherd. The herdsman, supposing him to be his own son, complains of his folly but the wise Merlin, who happens to be present, declares that he is the son of King Pellinore.
nating
who
is
The same imputation of weakness is seen again in the demands made to Arthur for homage to his alleged sovedemands which are in each case refused, and which reigns lead to the discomfiture whether of King Ryons or of the
Roman
The
The
Caesar.
same
Balm.
subordinate to the
first
new
protagonist.
incident
is
but
in this
case the
weapon
*
who cannot be
A'ges, p. 7.
freed from
3T9
No
knights
of the court of
to rid her of
and Arthur himself is now not more sucHence, when Balin, the poor-clad knight, who has just been let out of prison, begs that he may be suffered to
the burden
cessful.
;
try,
the maiden
tells
him that
failed
it is
in vain for
him
to
do
so,
when
his betters
have
before him.
To
his hand,
however, the weapon yields as easily as those which were drawn forth at the touch of Arthur or of Galahad.
With
and
his
myth
approaches more
and tragic poets, than to the Helen of our Iliad and Odyssey. As Helen is with ^schylus the ruin of ships, men, and cities, so is Arthur here warned by Merlin that Guenevere is not wholesome for him and at a later time the knights who are besought to come forward as champions in her behalf demur to the request, on the ground Their reluctance that she is a destroyer of good knights. is fully justified. The real Guenevere of the Arthur story nor is sensual in her love and merciless in her vengeance is Lancelot the austerely devoted knight which sometimes
;
he declares himself to be. By equivocation or direct falsehood Lancelot contrives to avoid or rebut the charge brought but when, in the enagainst him by Sir Meliagrance counter that follows, that knight goes down beneath the stroke of Sir Lancelot and yields him to his mercy, the
;
latter
is
makes a
Roman
ladies
vanquished gladiator should It may, of course, be said that the incident which die. furnished grounds for the accusation of Meliagrance has been interpolated into the myth but the process is perilous which rejecis from a legend every portion that clashes
in the amphitheatre, that the
;
320
with our conceptions of the character of certain heroes. Assuredly it cannot be maintained that the acts which
roused the suspicions of Mehagrance are consistent with any notion of merely Platonic affection nor is it safe to
;
impute the coarseness which characterises Lancelot and Guenevere, Tristram and Isolte, wholly to the coarseness of the mediaeval storytellers. There is everything to support, and little or nothing to invalidate the conclusion, that the harsher and more repulsive portraits are the older and if in the original myth Lancelot had been a man such as later poets have painted him, the quest of the Sangreal could not have been accomplished, for it is only by personating Guenevere that Elaine becomes the mother of
;
Galahad.
But Guenevere,
The Round
Sangreal.
gift
to
Arthur
is
thc
to
;
Rouud Tablc. This table Merlin havc madc in token of the roundness
its
said
of the
world which
of
its
confined merely to
marvellous powers.
The
quest of the
Holy
Grail
may
be to all appearance a narrative wholly distinct from that which tells us how the fellowship of the Round Table was but in all essential characteristics the Round formed Table and the Sangreal do but reflect each other. Around the one Arthur and his knights hold high festival the other makes its presence felt among the whole company of
; ;
the
Round
Table,
filling
and placing before each knight the viands which he would most wish to have. They are both, in short, different forms of the same vessel of plenty which carries us at length to the Egyptian lotus and the Yoni of the Hindu.^ Appearing
first
symbol assumes the form, of a ship, as in the Argo, or the ship of Isis, and then passes through all possible forms of
'
See
p. 143.
VESSELS OF PLENTY.
321
boat-shaped vessels from the great cosmic mixuig-bowl of the Platonists to the Luck of Edenhall. Like the table of the Ethiopians, the Round Table may minister to the wants of the indifferent or the bad as well as of the good, while
the
Holy
Grail
may be
pure.^
same power is possessed hy the horn which Sir Lamorak sends to King Mark and this horn is manifestly the horn which Oberon gives to
of righteousness and purity, the
;
of Bordeaux, and which yields the costliest wine hands of a good man only.^ The story of the Sangreal is thus a reproduction merely of the story of the Round Table and it is not here only that we shall find ourselves moving within the same magic circle.^ With his election as king begin the toils and the wanderings of Arthur. No sooner is one enemy overcome than another assails him from some other quarter, ihewander'Alas!' he complains when he hears that the '"-'^'^"''"''
in the
;
Huon
king of Denmark is ravaging his northern lands, never have I had one month's rest since I became king of the land.' It is but the doom which lies on the mythical heroes of all countries and the reason is given in the Gaelic story which tells us that the spell laid by the Dame of the Fine
' ;
is
he
may not take his dinner, and where he may not sup, till he finds out in
' It must, however, be remembered that in the I/tad and Odyssey the Ethiopians are always 'blameless.' If we make this a condition of their feasting at their table, we have all the elements of the Christian myth of the
Sangreal.
- Myth, of Ar. Nat. book i. ch. ii. ^ The notion that greal is a welsh word, signifying a magazine, which passed into the Latinised form gradahs, may be safely dismissed as a mere hysteron prateron. The opinion that the Latin gradalis represents the Greek kralir, a goblet or mixing bowl, is far more plausible ; but the strange connexion of the vessel with the Holy Blood seems to justify the conjecture that ta
this
we owe
the
name
of the Sang-real.
322
he wins her in the end, and her found to be a garment endowed with the magic properties of the robe which Medeia received or inherited from HeHos. In short, there is but one being of whom this tale is eternally true, and that being is the sun, who can never rest until he joins in the evening the beautiful maiden from whom he was parted in the morning. The force of the evidence becomes irresistible, as We ascend from the wanderers of folklore stories to the great company of epical heroes, and beyond these to the divine persons whose real nature was closely known to those who spoke of them to Dionysos, the wine god to Phoebus, who cannot rest in Delos, but who, having wandered far away to the west, ever comes back to his bright birth-place to Wuotan or Odin, who is Wegtam, the pilgrim of the road, and to Indra
the world.'
fine
green kirtle
is
all
the
rest, is
a wanderer.
;
Thus, whcu
across
vciQXi
in
we come
noon they become almost of noon their power begins slowly but steadily to decline, it becomes impossible
while from the
moment
to resist
tlje
we
are reading of
heroes
which belong only to the one-eyed wanderer who daily performs his journey through the heavens. This power of growth until noon is possessed by Sir Gawaine, while his adversary, Marhaus, who here represents the opponent of the sun-god, waxes bigger and bigger at sundown, as the shades deepen. It is shared also by the Red Knight of the Red Lawns. This magical power in Gawaine (of which, with one of the many direct contradictions exhibited by the legends pieced together to form the Arthur story, we are told that Arthur alone was aware), is especially manifested
>
i.
291.
EPICAL CYCLES.
in the last desperate struggle with Lancelot,
323
which ends
in
any doubt yet remained that these otherwise inexRound Table or their antagonists are remnants of nature- xheweM myth, these would be removed by the transparent scene in which the three fatal sisters^ are brought The before us by the stream side in the forest of Alroy. images of the Past, the Present, and the Future with its budding hope, cannot be mistaken in the three maidens, of whom the eldest wears a circlet of gold on hair white with the snows of more than threescore winters, while the second has seen thirty years, and the third, whose head is crowned with flowers, is but in.her fifteenth summer. These maidens sit where the roads parts, watching for errant
If
^^^'^''^'
knights,
whom
they
may
It is
enough to say that Uwaine and Marhaus choose the more sober and discreet of the sisters the youngest falls to the share of Gawaine, and by her early desertion of him illustrates the truth that the young and his hopes, like the fool and his money, are soon parted. In the Arthur legends there have been brought before us already two distinct mythical cycles, the one telling the story of Arthur himself, the other that of the poor knight Balin. We now reach a third, in which Animr'Ro-^ are related the adventures of Sir Lancelot du "''""Anhur. Lake. This cycle is interwoven with the Arthur j{[; Lal"eiot.
;
i^iyt^,;^,^,
myth, which
is
made to serve
as a
common
frame-
*^
^-"'='^'-
and for two other cycles which are included with them. The main thread in the legend of Lancelot is the love which he bears to Guenevere, and which the queen
for these
work
fully
returns.
When
a stern
Morgan le Fay and three other queens one of them for his lady-love, Lancelot's
bid
him choose
is
ansvver
See
p. 5.
324
refusal
;
and to the daughter of King Bagdemagus, who him that he lacks one thing, the love of a lady, and warns him of the rumours which are busy in connecting
tells
his
name with
wedded man, but that he wishes only to keep his hands clean and his heart pure. The story
gives sufficient evidence that the love of Guenevere and
Lancelot
is not pure, and that if it had been pure, the quest of the Sangreal would not have been accomplished. But the narrator leaves, to be taken up hereafter, the
Arthur and Tristram. For the present he betakes himself to a fourth cycle of myth, which, is concerned with the adventures of Gareth. The story of this knight, who is brought into Arthur's court unable to walk, and leaning on the shoulders of two men, is, throughout, one of that vast class of solar myths which speak of weakness issuing in victory. The
first
which
thing related of him carries us to the other tales tell of great heroes whose lower limbs are not
If Gareth seems proportioned to the rest of their bodies. unable of himself to walk, we must remember that Odysseus
standing
sits his
is
presence
comparatively insignificant, but that when he is more dignified than that of Menelaos.'
it is
said that he
is
right
would
be so small of growth below. They are all, in truth, counterparts of the Shortshanks who figures in the folkBut the destiny of Gareth, who, lore of Northern Europe.'^ though the goodliest youth on whom the eyes of Arthur have
ever rested, yet
is
knows
neither his
name nor
his parentage,
Like Halvor in the story of Soria Moria Castle, he must grub among the ashes like the Lad who knew not how to shiver, he cannot be placed far away from the living embers which are to reveal his As he has no birth-name. Sir Kay confuture splendour.
for the present the kitchen.
; >
iLidd
iii.
211.
i.
3:5.
325
to the
bids
him go
have fat brose, so that at the year's be fat as a pork hog. The time for action at length comes, when a maiden beseeches Arthur to send succour to a lady besieged in her castle by the Knight of the Red Lawns but even now he must drink a bitter draught of humiliation. When he entreats Arthur that he may be sent on this service, the maiden asks indignantly if she is to be put off with a kitchen-knave, and hastens away in wrath. Sir Kay, who wishes to see how tJie ash-boy fares, speedily receives a stroke which compels him to
end he
may
believe
is
valour
with him,
constrained to
own
is
not so
may
is
This myth
worn by the wanderer who owns the Knapsack, the Hat, and the Horn in the German story, by the Gold Child
when he appears before the king in the hunter, and by the soldier who is seen
Buffalo Leather.'
guise of a bear-
tells him that, if he will follow her, his skin hewn as his coat. The answer of the youth
is
so hewn, he will
him.
In the issue,
be as well when he ask for no plaster wherewith to heal the young knight becomes lord of the
shall
is
that
castle of
Nor
is
to us in the legends of
only mythical incident, rendered familiar many lands, which has been intro-
duced into the story of Gareth. After the battle before the Perilous Castle, the youth thinks at once to win the lady of his love but she tells him that though she will never love another, yet he must be tested by flood and field till twelve months should have passed by, before she can be his wife. The spirit of the old myth is so far weakened, that means are
;
^
325
in a series
extravagantly exaggerated.
It
form in the hands of a tale-teller, to whom the story conveys not a tittle of its orginal meaning. The head of the knight, who, approaching Gareth in the dark with a drawn sword, is beheaded by him, is made to grow on his body again by means of salve which the damsel Linet applies to
When his enemy, thus restored to life, again attacks Gareth on the following night, the latter not only smites off his head, but hews it in pieces. But Linet is not to be thus baffled, and the murderer is again made to live. like exaggeration is seen in the power of the ring which the lady of the Perilous Castle gives to Prettyhands. The
it.
of
Gyges becomes
in
invisible or visible
;
which he handles it in the Arabian Nights story of the Wonderful Lamp the handling of the ring brings into sight the
slave.
way
demon who
is
its
which is green it will turn to red, red to green, blue to white, and so with all other colours, while he who wears it shall lose no blood. In other words, it will both disguise and guard him effectually and this is the idea which lies at the root of the Gyges myth, in which the ring represents the circular emblem of wealth and fertility common to the mythology of the whole human race, and pre-eminent in the Arthur story both of the Round Table and the vessel of the Sangreal. Having brought Gareth to the scene of his glory, the story now enters on a fifth cycle of myth, which retraces in
this power, that that
;
The fifth
cycle
^hc pcrsott of
tale
-Tristram.
If there
be
is
more
full
of incidents
common
'
and
See
p. 5.
327
meaning of which cannot be questioned. But in their love and their madness, their bravery and their sufferings, their triumphs and their punishment, they are but shadows each of the other. So close, indeed, is the
Guenevere herself strikes the equation which and Lancelot on the one side the counterparts of Tristram and Isolte on the other. By his birth
parallel, that
makes
herself
who
are destined
He
is
which his mother seeks her lord who has been entrapped and shut up in a dungeon. Like Macduff and Sigurd, Tristram is scarcely seen by his mother who, before she dies, has only time to give him his ill-boding name
but, as with other heroes, the
woes of
but
This story is repeated in the episode of Sir Alisanking Mark of Cornwall, who is here represented in the darkest colours, orders Sir Sadok to slay. Alisander is, of course, saved by Sadok who pretends to the king that he has drowned the lad. On growing up he receives from
hood.
der,
whom
mother the blood-stained sark of his murdered father, and swears to take vengeance on king Mark, who on hearhis
is still
him by means of Morgan le Fay. But no woman can approach him without loving him, and Morgan le Fay enables him to overthrow all antagonists, until at length he
wins the love of Alice the Fair Pilgrim. We have already had the counterpart of this tale in the story of Havelok the
Dane. Tristram
harper
'
is
passing
all
pre-eminently the huntsman and the other harpers that ever lived,' as are
Hermes, Orpheus, Amphion, Pan, Sigurd, Volker, Tristram and and many more. He is also a fearless knight, ^^^^'^^"sand alone ventures to encounter Sir Marhaus, whom the king of Ireland sends to demand tribute from the king of
'
See Appendix
III.
32S
Cornwall.
Marhaus
piece
is
smitten
The combat is long and fierce but at length down by Tristram's sword, of which a
;
left
sticking
in
his head.
This piece
is
care-
fully stored
away by
sorely
But Tristram, also, is Marhaus reaches only to die. wounded by the arrows of Marhaus, which were
this point it would be difficult to lay too Whatever may be said for African savages, it can never be maintained that the employment of poisoned weapons is a fit work for Christian chivalry, or that the fact of their being so used is credible. But what is to be said if we find this practice avowed without shame in the
poisoned.
On
great stress.
all
lands
Poisoned arrows, as
we have
by Herakles, and by him bequeathed to Philoktetes, who with one of them inflicts the deathwound of Paris. Nay they do not scruple to make use of poison in other forms. The poisoned robe of Medeia scorches to death the Corinthian Glauke the blood of Nessos seals the doom of Herakles the messenger of Morgan le Fay is burnt to coals by the garment which she had been charged to lay at the feet of King Arthur. The significance of such incidents has been perhaps suffiand we need not, therefore, ciently pointed out already perplex ourselves if the use of poisoned weapons is attributed to heroes of early or mediaeval Christendom. The relations which exist between Tristram, Isolte, and king Mark, precisely reproduce those which are found bctwccn Sigurd, Brynhild, and Gunnar in the Tristram and
seen, are used
; ;
'
thetwoisoites.
tale. In Isolte Tristram finds the he can give his whole heart, Avhile Tristram is the only man who can win the love of Isolte, as Sigurd is the only hero who can wake the heart of BrynBut both are under the same doom. The bride is hild. in each case, like Helen, the most beautiful of women, and she must in v-^ach case be wooed for another, and J\Iark of
Yoig^j^g
woman
to
whom
See
p. 1^3.
329
be traced even further. The naked sword which Sigurd places between himself and Brynhiid, when he lies down to sleep by her side, is placed again by Tristram between himself and Isolte, and is used for the same purpose in the German story of the Two Brothers, the Norse legend of Big Bird Dan, and the Arabian Nights tale of Allah-ud-deen,^ But if, like Sigurd, Tristram and Lancelot give their love to women who are, or must be, the wives of others, there yet remains in each case one whom each must wed, and as Gudrun is but a weaker reflexion of Brynhiid, so is Elaine, the mother of Lancelot's child, a weakened image of Guenevere, and Isolte of the white hands a feeble likeness of Isolte the fair.^ So, again, the enmity between Gudrun and Brynhiid is reproduced in the antipathy of the two Isoltes and the ill-concealed dislike of Guenevere for Elaine. Yet more, as Brynhiid, on learning that Sigurd has wedded her in the form of Gunnar, declares that she will bring about his death, so Isolte the Fair, on hearing that Tristram has married her namesake, warns him that henceforth she is his deadly foe. As a warrior, Tristram belongs to the class of heroes who resemble Herakles or Samson. Like them, xHstramas he is able single-handed to slay scores or hun- ='w^"''^-
The
parallel
may
dreds.
It
matters not
assault him, or
whether they do so secretly or openly. It makes no difference to Bellerophon whether the ambush into which he
* These instances alone suffice to prove not only the common origin of these popular stories, but their nature, and justify the remark of Sir G. Dasent that ' these mythical deep-rooted germs, throwing out fresh shoots from age to age in the popular literature of the race, are far more convincing proofs of the early existence of these traditions than any mere external evidence.' See further Myth, of Ar. Nat. i. 281. ^ If Guenevere is reflected in Elaine, the daughter of King Pelles, as Gudrun wears the likeness of Brynhiid, so is the story of the daughter of Pelles manifestly reproduced in the exquisite episode of the Fair Maid of Astolat, who also bears the name Elaine, the only difference being that the one would be, while the other really is, the mother of a child of Lancelot, In either case the spell which lies on the maiden is irresistible, as with Isolte the Fair it was impossible to withstand the witchery of Tristram's harping.
330
falls
foes
it
landic
himself surrounded by Knight of the Misshapen Coat whether he be assailed by a hundred knights at once, or to Tristram whether a whole troop of King Mark's men set upon him by himself In each case the assailants are
Grettir whether he
finds
blasted
by the thunderbolt.
With men
absurd impossibilities.
As narratives
which
tell
become full of meaning and we can thus as readily understand the madness which comes over Tristram and Lancelot as we understand the frenzy which seized on Herakles, We have seen that in the stories of Balin and Gareth Arthur himself becomes a subordinate personage, and that ^oo in the vcry points in which in his own myth Tristram and Arthur. j^^ jg ^^ pccuHar hero. In each case a sword is and in each to be drawn forth from a stone or an anvil case it moves lightly as a feather at the touch of the one knight who is destined to draw it out. It follows that if
ning, or the hurricane, these stories
;
this peerless hero is elsewhere secondary or defeated, we have passed out from the cycle of traditions immediately and thus we find Arthur unhorsed by relating to him Tristram in the legend which relates the career of the In a still more striking scene, the power of healing, latter.^ which Arthur vainly strives to exercise on Sir Urre of Hungary, is made to depend on the touch of Lancelot, for here we are in that portion of the tale in which Lancelot is the bravest and best knight in all the world. In the horn of Morgan le Fay we have another feature common to the myths of many ages and many lands. Exccpt in the hands of the innocent the liquor Taiismanic tests. Qf |-j^g horn is immediately spilt, just as in the socalled Orphic poem the testing-stone held in the husband's
;
'
33
hand hurls the faithless wife from her couch. The same marvellous power of discernment belongs to the horns of Bran, Ceridwen, and of Tegan Euroron. It is possessed also by the vessel of the Sangreal, which heals the In guileless knight, while it may not be seen by Lancelot. like manner the ship or barge of the dead tells the story of their lives or proclaims their wrongs. The same power which converted the horn of Amaltheia into a talismanic
test as the
this
barge of
the mistrustful
Holy GraiL
has
is
But the
sister of Percivale,
life
when,
same and yet another barge, which is to bear her to the city of Sarras, that there her body may be laid to rest in the Spiritual Place, in which that of the good Once again the ship Sir Galahad is to take its long sleep. reappears in the tale, when Arthur himself is to be borne away from the sight of men, and when the three queens, who
have already been seen in different guise in the early career of Gawaine and his brothers, once more do their office as the weird sisters. A clearer light is thrown on the nature
of this ship in the story of Sceaf, the father of Scild, in the
myth
of Beowulf
men
is
Here Sceaf comes, as he goes, in a ship, and when his work among done, he bids his people lay him in the ship, and in
;
the ship he
is
laid accordingly
and the most costly of ornaments, and with all things which may gladden his heart in the phantom land. Here we have in its fairer colours the picture which in many lands and ages has been realised with ruthless completeness. In all these instances we see the expression of the ancient and universal animistic conviction, which ascribed to the dead all the wants of the living, and which led men to slay beasts to furnish them with food, and to slaughter their wives or
332
Another boat-shaped vessel is the Sangreal ^ itself, which imparts to the Arthur myth, or rather to that of Lancelot^ its peculiar character. Whatever be The Sang. the beauty which the influence of Christian sentiment has thrown over this legend, all that we have to do in the first instance is to mark closely the points of likeness between this and other myths. These points of likeness are to be found in its shape, its healing and lifegiving properties, and its inexhaustible fertility. To these are added certain talismanic powers which, as we have
''^'^''
already seen,
it
shares in
common
is
But elsemost closely associated with the rod, the pillar, or the spear, the stauros or the pole, which became the special sign of the sun as the fertilising and fecundating power. Hence, even if the Grail vessel were not in this Arthur or Lancelot myth connected with any
where
emblem
spear-shaped signs,
we should be
Rhea and Demeter, of Serapis, of the milkwoman or in Hindu folklore, the lotus of HarpiLuck of Edenhall, the horn of Amaltheia, and Round Table of Guenevere. But the connexion of the Grail vessel with the spear-shaped emblem is not only not
;
the
it
is
prominence which is the more significant, if we assume that the romance-maker was utterly unconscious of the origin and nature of the materials on which he was working. If in other myths the upright emblem, the staff or rod of wealth and prosperity which Phoebus gives to Hermes,
These ships move of their own will, without oars, rudders, or rigging, and They may thus be fail to reach the port for which they are making. compared with the barks of the Phaiakians, and other mythical fleets. See p. 3.
'
never
-
See note
3, p. 321.
GALAHAD.
becomes the arbor
vitce,
333
and if in purely heathen models it is represented as shedding drops which denote the blood or the life, we have the whole framework of the myth, over which the introduction of Christian sentiment has shed a
colouring of marvellous beauty.
Bors,
we
are told that after seeing the Sangreal in the house of king
having laid himself down to sleep in his light, in which he discerns a spear, great and long, coming straight towards him. This spear is seen again in the supreme vision vouchsafed to the pure Galahad
Pelles,
armour, beholds a
two comrades, when, the holy Grail being manitwo bearing candles, the third a towel, and the fourth a spear, from which fall three drops of blood, and which is finally placed upright on the holy vessel. But it was obviously inevitable that this imagery should to Christians convey another meaning and thus the liquor, which in the horn of Oberon is the costliest wine, becomes the blood of the Saviour, which Joseph of Arimathea caught in the sacred dish in which He ate the lamb at the last passover with the disciples. That the
his
fested, four angels enter,
;
and
Galahad is, as we have seen, no peculiarity in the Grail myth. It is the characteristic of a large number of legends relating to the signs or symbols of life, fertility, wealth, healing, and power. But although almost all the closing scenes of the romance are lit up with the splendour of Christian feeling, there are features in it which we can no more ouenevere and regard as Christian, or even as human, than we ^'^'"^ can look on the narrative of certain events related in the Odyssey as in conformity with Achaian character. The high ascetic tone imparted to the close of Lancelot's relations with Guenevere may be and is probably due entirely and this fact must clearly to the force of Christian opinion distinguish the earlier and later forms of the myth. Rather it must be said that the whole romance, as we have it, is
;
334
really built
up on the assumption that the love of Lancelot and Guenevere is throughout sensual. The very achievement of the Sangreal depends on the birth of a child of Lancelot and except on such an assumption the result is
;
rendered impossible.
Lancelot
is
entrapped by Elaine,
because he supposes that he has been summoned to Queen Guenevere. But this is not a solitary instance. The same incident is repeated when the daughter of king Pelles visits
the court of Arthur
;
nor
is it
when the
urged that these are later additions which myth but in favour of such a notion there is little indeed to be said. It cannot be supposed that the romance-maker, who has drawn a
may be
mar
perfectly
consistent
character
in
Galahad,
would
have
between the career and the character of Galahad before his birth is destined to be the pure and spotless knight, and such he remains always. Not less earnestly are Guenevere and Lancelot made to declare that their
contradiction
of a
;
kind to
rellect
honour on king Arthur yet this solemn asseveration, made again and again, is contradicted by a series of incidents which they are compelled to keep out of Artnur's knowledge by a long course of equivocation and lying. In short, we have here two stories one in which Guenevere is faithful to her husband, and Lancelot looks on her as a man may look to his guardian angel, and another in which she is faithless, and responds to a sensual love on the part of Lancelot and all that we have to determine is, which of these stories is the earlier. It seems almost self-evident that the idea which has necessarily commended itself to modern
;
is but a thin coating of later Christian sentiment thrown over the earlier picture in which Guenevere not only seems to play but really plays the part of Helen, as she is
poets
333
drawn by the great tragic poets of Athens. When first Arthur thinks of wedding her, he is warned, as we have seen, by the wise Merhn that she will not be a wholesome wife for him and from the circumstances already noticed it is clear that according to the conceptions of some one or other of the romance-makers her actual faithlessness began before Lancelot had seen the future mother of his child. It may be urged that the sensual fury displayed by Guenevere, when she finds that the very plan which she has laid to keep Lancelot by her side leads to his being again entrapped by Elaine while he sojourns in Arthur's court, is to be charged to the corrupt imagination of a later age but it must be remembered that the very structure of the story which relates the career of Galahad utterly precludes this notion. Nay, Guenevere is not only a destroyer of many knights, as she might easily be on the hypothesis that though seemingly guilty she was really innocent we have seen that in the case of Meliagrance she combines cruelty with her sensuality.' As to Lancelot, who thus commits murder at her bidding, he avoids in this
; ;
:
to
knowledge of Meliagrance makes it possible for him employ the tricks of a dishonest pleader. Thus, then, we have treachery on the one side, and faithlessness on the other and the taking away of Guenevere from the court of Arthur, who had cherished him as his friend, answers to the taking away of Helen from Menelaos by the man in whom he had placed a perfect trust. \\\ short,
;
and the words of Menelaos before the walls of Ilion are echoed in those of Arthur before the gates of Joyous Gard. Fie on thy fair speech I am now thy mortal foe, for thou hast slain my knights and dishonoured my queen.' But in spite of all his efforts, the Christian sentiment of the romance-maker cannot disguise the nature of the materials which he was handling. If Arthur was
'
'
See
p. 319.
335
the
so
little
is
done amiss, as
he
disposed to think evil of another without due evidence, the persistence with which
here represented, so
he follows up to the death a quarrel with his friend on a charge which, according to some portions of the story as we have it, is unproven, and even after the touching protestations of innocence which mark the restitution of Guenevere to her husband, becomes inexplicable. But if the character of Arthur here drawn is not Christian, it is because the portraits of Achilles and Odysseus in our Iliad and Odyssey are not Achaian.' We have now reached the ending of the great drama. The victory of the snake Ahi is a victory of the great worm ^^ darkncss, which slays the light of day and Arthur and Mordred. ^.j^^g jj^ ^^ Arthur myths also visions of snakes bring the foreboding of the end. The king dreams that he sits in a chair, fastened to a wheel, beneath which lies a deep black water full of serpents and noisome things, and that suddenly the wheel turns round and he is plunged into the infernal stream, where the serpents seize him by all his lim.bs. From this dream he passes into a half- waking state, in which he thinks that he sees the form of the dead Gawaine, and hears his voice warning him not to fight on the morrow, but to make a month's truce with Mordred, whose name (although little can be said of the names in these later compositions) seems to betoken him as the murderer, biter, or crusher. The king follows Gawaine's advice but his doom is not thus to be averted. It had been agreed that if during the conference between Arthur and Mordred a sword should be raised on either side, this should be the signal for mortal battle. But while they are yet speaking, the snake again plays its part. An adder bites the heel of one of Arthur's knights, who raises his weapon to slay the venomous beast and Mordred's people, taking alarm, rush upon their adversaries. The prophecy of Merlin is well-nigh accomplished. The father and the son
; ; ;
'
See
p. 276.
y^j
by the other's hand. In vain Sir Lucan warns Arthur to remember his dream Arthur will not hear. He sees the traitor who has done all the wrong, and betide him life or betide him death, he is resolved to slay
But Mordred, writhing like a snake along the spear which has passed through his body, smites Arthur on the temples with the sword which he holds in both hands, and the king falls back in a swoon. It is the old tale of the Fatal Children, of children born to be great, born to slay their parents. There is death everywhere and the phrases which described the death of the day and the night, of the sun and the darkness, of the dawn and the dew, explain
him.
;
heroes or
stories.
maidens
feature
who
represent
One
is
more remains.
The
gone who could wield the unerring spear, or bow, or sword and his weapon must go with him. Hence Arthur's sword must no more be profaned by the touch of mortal hand and as the sun rises from the eastern waters when Phoebus springs to life on Delos, and plunges into his sleep like Endymion or Odysseus in the western sea, so the sword Excalibur must be restored to the waters from which it had arisen. Arthur himself, as we have seen, is borne away in the barge in which the weird sisters have long waited for him but he departs, not to die, but only to heal Arthur in the
;
; ;
him of
his
grievous
wound
in
in
the valley of
vaieoiAviUon.
which Endymion takes his rest. Still, as the ages rolled on, and experience taught men more and more that there is no man who shall not see death, and as the 'belief grew that in telling Arthur's story they were speaking of a man who had really lived on the earth, so was the need felt more and more of saying plainly that he died. But the old myth still retained something of and the story-tellers who chanted the lays of its old power
Avilion, the
Latmian land
338
Hunding nor Arthur the peerless knight had and that he who had been king should
ever died at
yet be king
again. Arthur was now, in short, one of that goodly company which numbers in its ranks the great Karl and Bar-
barossa, Sebastian
of Portugal,
the
dead for the sun, while under that spell of night, whether in her beautiful or in her awful forms, which keeps True Thomas beneath the
hills
Moor Boabdil. None of these is men see him not, is but slumbering
of Ercildoune, or Tanhaiiser
in
the
caves of the
Arthur charmed slumber of the Cretan Epimenides or the Seven Sleepers of Ephesus and under this spell lies not Arthur only, but the wise Merlin who had foretold his birth and destiny, had received him as a babe, and had witnessed his fame.^ In his wisdom and foresight, in his perfect knowledge of a coming fate, which yet to Arthur's surprise he makes no
in the grotto of
Kalypso,
Merlin,
Hellenic Odysseus.
attempt to avoid. Merlin - strongly resembles the But the point of the story told about
him
sage for a damsel who, he knows, cares nothing for him. Yet he suffers the maiden, who is a water-nymph, to entice him
into a cavern in which she imprisons him beneath a great stone.
This is precisely the story of Tanhaiiser and the goddess of the Horselberg with very slight modification it is the story of Thomas of Ercildoune, and of Prince Ahmed and the Peri Banou in the Arabian Nights Tales. Here he is kept fast in an imprisonment from which none can deliver him except the woman who lured him into it or, as the story avers, not a hundred men could lift the huge stone beneath
; ;
' The Arthur story has been shown by Mr. Campbell to be in all essential features the same as the Highland legend of the history of the Feinne. Popular Taies of the IVest Highlands, iv. 267.
See Appendi.x V.
MERLIN.
which Merlin made great dole.
legend of the philosopher ton Irving
here
it is
339
is
This
substantially the
Abu
in
the sage
who contrives
within the gate of his enchanted paradise but the besotted affection of the old man for the blooming maiden is precisely reproduced,
it is
who
Whenever the sage shows symptoms of awakening from his charmed slumber, the tones of her magic harp speedily lull him to sleep again. As she is herself imprisoned by him, this is obviously the only way
can set him
free.
which she can prolong his captivity. In the Merlin him to himself, because she has enticed him to enter in, while she stands without.^ Romances like those of Bevis of Hampton and Guy of
in
notion of Merlin being a demon child is the result of the same degraNeither in Teutonic dation which converted Odin and the ^sir into devils. nor in Hellenic lands did the Christian missionaries question the existence of the of the tribes to whom they preached. in the mythologies gods or heroes named The deities were allowed to live, but they lived on under a curse. But that theje deified or supernatural beings might connect themselves with mortal women, was a belief unquestioned, whether by those who framed the story of the hero Astrabakos (Herod, vi. 69), or of the loves of the angels in Hebrew Hence the child of a deified nero or demigod and of a mortal woman tradition. would, in the estimation of Christian teachers, be the offspring of a diaboHcal marvellous powers of the child would be the natural result of his The incubus. extraordinary parentage and the same power which made lamos acquainted with the language of birds would enable Merlin to vindicate the name of his mother, or at the least to convict her accusers of sins not less than those which were laid to her charge. Like most other mythical beings, Merlin has enemies who are bent on taking his life ; and his wisdom is specially proved by his power of revealing the reason why the walls of a castle fall down as soon as they are built, a result due to the agency of dragons underneath a running water. This revelation of Merlin may be compared with that of the griffin or the giant in the German story of the Old Griffin (Grimm) and the Norse tale of Rich Peter the Pedlar (Dasent), and perhaps also with the problem on which depends the life of the giant or the sorcerer in the Hindu story of Punchkin (Frere, Deccan Tales), and the Teutonic tale of the Giant who had no heart in his body. The Merlin story, which Jeffrey introduces into the life of Arthur, is found in Nennius [History of the Britons, p. 42), who, however, calls the child Ambrose, and having said that he was conceived by no mortal man, makes him assert that a Roman consul was his father. Whatever be the date of Nennius, his History' is probably two centuries earlier than that of Jefirey.
The
'
Z2
340
'
a comparatively late age than the genuine growth of popular mythical tradition but this very fact, if it be admitted, only XVI. makes more noteworthy the adherence of the Hampton, romancc-maker to the old models. When he
could insert at will the fancies of his own mind, it is strange that he should still keep within the charmed circle
of the oldest
Like Arthur, or Tristram, or like them and many born to greatness others, he is in peril from those who wish to take his life, and the device which Saber hits upon to hide the fact that Bevis is not slain is one which we find far beyond the circle of Aryan folklore. The sequel of the story seems to be built
Lancelot, Bevis
is
:
Aryan myths.
on the model of that of Bellerophon. Like him, or like Grettir, Bevis is a match for any number of men who may assail him like him he is the victim of treacherous letters which order his host to put him to death. Like him, he is subjected by his host to terrible dangers but from the noisome pit full of reptiles, answering to the Iron Stove or the
: ;
Glass Coffin of German tales, Bevis escapes as Bellerophon escapes from the ambuscade which is placed for his destruction.
With
are
common
to the
myth
Logedas Raja and other popular Hindu legends.^ He returns to the home where he had left the lady of his love, clad in palmer's raiment, and is told that of all who come
in such garb she, like Penelope, asks tidings of the man of many griefs and wanderings who has left her mourning. As Odysseus, again, is recognised by his dog Argos, so is Bevis known at once to his trusty steed Arundel. Like other
is a slayer of dragons and a tamer of and Ascapard plays the part of a Troll who may be made to do good service but is not altogether to be
kindred heroes, he
giants,
trusted.
Doubtless the constant repetition of incidents proves a comparative lack of imagination on the part of
There were versions which represented Bevis as a son of Olger the Dane. Frere, Deccan Tales.
BEVIS
the romance-maker
Josian,
;
AND
it
GUY.
still
34r
but
shows
more
clearly the
who
lulls
be
is
own wrongs.
simply In the
maiden of Eastern and Western tradition can alike put on, and which, passing through the phase exhibited by the
ugly frog or toad
in
German
it is
folklore, carries us to
the
myth
it is
Of
as sheer an impossibility as
The
great strife
is
followed
by a long period of
and
his horse
peace and happy love, until at Arundel, and the devoted Josian
together.'
last Bevis,
all
pass
away from
earth
The
of
the story of
Guy
of
Arthur story in xvii. maiden who serves as guide to Gareth in his Warwick, disguise as Pettyhands, and in the ordeal to which he is subjected by the lady of the castle. But not only is Guy a knight-errant and a slayer of dragons and noisome beasts the doom of the wanderer presses on him still more heavily. He toils hard and he achieves great glory, that he may win the maiden whom he loves and when he has won her, forty days only pass before he feels that he must go from her side, and putting on a pilgrim's dress he wanders away to the Holy Land. But he has still mighty works to do and the Ethiopian giant and other foes fall beneath his hands. In his later wanderings he comes across his friend Thierry, of whom an incident is recorded which is found in other legends, and illustrates the old animistic belief of the the separable soul which can go out from the body and
;
;
; '
in
the
Fopiiiar
140,
342
return to
again.
of the weasel which creeps from Thierry's throat differs not much from that of the snake.' Of the closing scenes in the
life
of
Guy
all
is
The
poor and needy makes him shrink from the thought of breaking in upon her works of mercy, and turning away, he takes up his abode in a hermit's cell. When he feels that he has but a few hours to live, he sends her a ring by and the wife instantly knows that the poor a herdsman Like pilgrim is her husband the great Guy of Warwick. Kleopatra, she clasps the hero in her arms, as he gently breathes his life away and as Kleopatra lingers not long upon earth after Meleagros is gone, so Guy ^ has been but
;
Myth, of Ar. Nat. i. 402-404. Of this incident Mr. Tylor {Primitive ' This is one of those instructive legends which preserve Culture, i. 397) says for us, as in a museum, relics of an early intelle. tual condition of our Aryan race, in thoughts w hich to our modern minds have fallen to the level of quaint fancy, but which still remain sound and reasonable philosophy to the savage. Karen at this day would appreciate every point of the story ; the familiar notion of spirits not crossing the water, which he exemplifies in his Burmese forests by stretching threads across the brook for the ghosts to pass along ; the idea of the soul going forth embodied in an animal ; and the theory of the dream being a real journey of the sleeper's soul.' It is possible that this idea may be faintly traced in that scene in the wanderings of Vicram Maharaja (Frere, Deccan Tales, 129), in which the cobra emerges at will from But the connexion cannot go beyond the mere suggestion of the his throat. imagery ; for the story of Vicram makes it evident that the cobra, which enters into his throat is the snake of winter, which makes the raja miserable until he can be freed from it nor can he be freed from it except by the maiden who returns If any doubt still r mained as to the in spring from the cheerless land. nature of this myth, it would be set at rest by the fact that the slaying of the cobra is followed by the recovery of the treasure which he had stolen, as it is recovered from the dragon Fafnir by Sigurd. 2 Fvfular Romances of the Middle Agesy 162.
:
HINDU
EPICS.
343
a fortnight dead when the sorrow of FeHce is ended by her union with him in the land where there is no more parting.
The beautiful hues of Eos cannot linger long in the sky, when the Sun-god has gone to his rest. The longest epic poems in the world are those of the
Hindus
, ;
is
not in
Of
their oriscin
.
and growth we know no more than is known of bharata. the growth of the Iliad and the Odyssey and their composite character is scarcely questioned by any, perhaps by none. In the case of the Mahabharata the original poem, whatever it may have been, has been literally buried under the mass of accretions which have gathered round it and we have to remember that in India the temptations to introduce new matter into old poems were far stronger than in Hellas. The institution of caste must be defended and, more particularly, no opportunity must be lost for maintaining the ascendency of the Brahmans, and of enforcing the precepts by which they sought to regulate the religious
; ;
xvm. The
Maha-
life
of the people.
Hence the
narrative
is
interlarded with
by the cumbrous Brahmanic fancies which have been thrust into it. poem so put together can have only a comparatively slight interest except for Asiatics but there is, nevertheless, little doubt as to the nature of the foundation on which this huge superstructure has been reared. In its present shape the poem may be somewhat more recent than the Ramayana, but its framework is almost certainly older. It was seemingly unknown to Megasthenes, who was in India towards the close of the it was known in fourth century before the Christian era It has been the second half of the first century of our era. inferred, therefore, that it took shape at some time between But, however this may be (and the questhese two dates. tion is one of the greatest uncertainty), it may be safely said that the war between the Pandavas and the Kauravas,
story put out of sight
344
which forms
or Hellenic
main
subject, is
myth which
;
relates the
the
Ramayana
as
Homer. The former is attributed to Krishna Dwaipayana Vyasa, who is also the forefather of He is the son of the most prominent actors in the story. the nymph Satyavati, who calls on him after the death of his half-brother Chitrangada to receive his two widows as These women become the mothers of Dhritahis wives. rashtra and Pandu. Of these two Pandu is elected king on the death of Santanu, a descendant of Bharata but owing
shadowy
as that of
himself to a hermit
life
in
the
forest,
and Dhrita-rashtra,
who
is
place.
Pandu, because they are acknowledged by him but they are also Bhima, for instance, being called children of different gods the son of Vayu, the god of the wind,^ and Nakula and Sahadeva being a twin whom Madri bore to the Asvins,^
called children of
They are
The
children of Dhrita-
known as the Kauravas. The eldest of these is Dur-yodhana, who is throughout represented in the character of Eurystheus, the enemy of Herakles. The Pandavas, being brought to the court of Dhrita-rashtra, are treated by him with great kindness, and brought up with the Kauravas but the jealousy of the latter is roused when the latter names YudhiThis act brings shthira his Vira-raja, or heir apparent. about the first expulsion of the Pandavas, answering to the first banishment of the Herakleids. The Pandavas now live in the forest but while they are there the king of the Panchalas proclaims that his
is
who
'
See
p. 182.
"
See
p. 59.
345
daughter Draupadi would select as her husband the worthiest among the suitors who might present themselves. The condition imposed was the bending of a bow, which xhePandavas D^^upadi. remains stiff in the hands of all except Arjuna, ^"'^ Theseus, and other who thus answers to Sigurd, Arthur,
Western heroes. Hastening home to their mother, the Pandavas tell her that they have won a great prize, and she, not knowing what it was, bids them share it between them. On this follows the polyandrous marriage of Draupadi an incident not explicable, it would seem, by any reference to Aryan manners or customs.^ The victory of Arjuna led to the recall of the Pandavas by Dhrita-rashtra, who now placed them as rulers in Indraprastha, while he allotted Hastina-pura as the Yudhi-shthira portion of his own sons. In the former Yudhi- Kauravas. but shthira reigns with consummate wisdom and justice the announcement of his intention to perform the Rajasuya sacrifice, which would give him supremacy over other kings, again arouses the wrath of the Kauravas, who invite him Yudhito Hastina-pura, and there tempt him to gamble. shthira loses everything his palace, his kingdom, his brothers, himself, and his wife. Through the influence of the blind old father of the Kauravas they are all restored
;
is
this
it was before. But time he had played under the condition that, if he lost, the Pandavas should spend twelve years as hermits in the forest. This compact may be compared with the covenant which binds the Herakleids not to attempt the recovery of their inheritance for fifty or for a hundred years. The
is
as complete as
myth.
The Pandavas
at the
end of
this
time resolve to
to their enemies
lost.
To them and
' It is excused in the poem on the plea that the five Pandavas were all portions of one deity, and might therefore be regarded as one person. If the incident is to be taken as in any sense historical, it points to the polyandrous
marriages
still
common among
certain
non-Aryan
tribes of India.
345
Krishna offered the choice of himself armed as an ally, or the aid of a large army. The Kaurava chief Dur-yodhana eagerly took the army Arjuna attached himself to the god, who agrees to be his charioteer.' The result was that at length three Kauravas alone remained alive with Dur-yodhana, who was mortally wounded but these three made a raid into the land of the Pandavas, and left none remaining except the five brothers, who go to Hastina-pura, where Yudhi-shthira is crowned king. The sequel is, from a merely human point of view, both pathetic and touching, but it has nothing to do with the original myth, which ended with the triumph of the Pandavas in Hastina;
pura.'^
by the
Naiaand
The Mahabharata has been swollen to its enormous size intrusion of- a number of episodes which are themsclvcs as bulky
33
the Iliad
or Odyssey.
In
Damayanti.
addition
its
to
Harivansa,
besides
tures
other
themes,
and adven-
that
story
of Nala and
Dama-
yanti
his
repeats
that
of
Yudhi-shthira and
each case the king loses his wife and by gambling, and is obliged to leave but like his kingdom for a hermit's life in the f'-rest Yudhi-shthira, he recovers all that he has lost, and he not
Draupadi.
In
all
treasures
'
Kuru-kshetra. The poem, which is certainly later than most parts of the Mahabharata, is really an exposition of Brahmanic theology, assigning to Krishna the functions of the highest Vedic
armies,
deities.
^ This sequel relates the journey of the Pandavas with Draupadi to the Himalayas, for the purpose of reaching the heaven of Indra on Mount Meru. is remarkable chiefly for the firmness with which Yudhi-shthira refuses to enter the gates of heaven, unless hisl^rothersand Draupadi, and his dog, are admitted Entering it on this condition, he finds that they are not there, and not also. only refuses to remain without them, but resolves to share their sufferings in The trial turns out to be the result hell rather than be separated from them. of Maya, or illusion, and all live thereafter happily with Indra.
As thus serving Arjuna, Krishna sings who are about to fight the battle of
It
See
p. 140.
SITA
AND RAVANA.
347
home loaded
as
is
its
name
;
ascribed to the
sage Valmiki.
its
Its
age
a matter of uncertainty
its latest
is,
but
if in
pre-
xix.
sent form
bharata in
latter
somewhat older than the Maha- yana. shape, the original framework of the
as
poem
we have
seen, probably
much
older.
;
The
that of the
to
Lanka
(Ceylon),
would
is
Aryan conquerors
of
of India.
Rama
himself
and the story of his career is given at less length in the Vana Parva episode of the Mahabharata.^ His earthly father is Dasa-ratha, and his mother Kausalya, and in Lakshmana, the son of Sumitra, another wife of Dasaratha, he has a secondary as devoted to himself as Patroklos
Vishnu
;
is
to Achilles.
He
by breaking the bow of Siva, even bend.^ As heir to the throne of Ayodhya, he first wins the love, and then awakens the jealousy of Kaikeyi, the second wife of Dasa-ratha. Rama is expelled, and her son Bharata, being chosen king on the death of his father, refuses to usurp the place which belongs
of Janaka, king of Videha,
else could
which no one
to
Rama
time of exile
his absence.
but as the latter will not return until his allotted is past, Bharata consents to act as regent during
Rama
is
now induced
to
go southwards into
whom
aid of
he
'
carries off
by
home.
With the
'
Dowson,
'
gita,'
Hindu Mythology, articles BhagavadHarivansa,' 'Mahabharata,' 'Nala.' For the alleged historical subClassical Dictionary of
stratum of the 'Mahabharata,' see Myth, of Ar. Nat. i. i8o, note 2. - Dowson, Classical Dictionary of Hindu Mythology, article 'Rama.' ^ For the reference here made to Parasu-rama, see Dowson, Classical Dietionary of Hindu Mythology, p. 257.
348
Rama
succeeds in
is
and rescuing
purity,
Sita.
But although he
fire,
assured of Sita's
safely
he refuses to receive
brought by Agni.
return of
follows the
Rama
of the
poem comes
Rama's suspicions impelled where her twin sons were born. Going to Ayodhya when they were yet youths, these children of Rama were recognised by
addition, which tells us that
him
their father,
who summons
it
Sita asserts
earnestly,
of her words.
live.
*
and bids the earth show the truth chasm opens in the ground, and Rama is
whom, he
says, that
he cannot
He
The connexion
of the rising
and setting sun with water has been brought before us in a vast number of myths and in the stealing away of Sita by Ravana we have the counterpart of the seduction of Helen
;
by
Paris,
is
faithful,
while Helen
Results of the
their value
unnecessary to say, very widely both in and their interest but whatever may
;
^e their mcHts or defects as works of art, the icai tradiaon. j-ggyits of the analysis to which they have been submitted leave no room for reasonable doubt as to the origin and nature of the materials out of which they have been shaped. The processes by which they have been
Aryan
my^th-
may seem
to be
somewhat
Dowson,
See
Mythobgy,
p. 260.
p. 59.
NATIONAL
monotonous
;
EPICS.
349
yet
keenness with out repetitions, or trace the substantial identity of any given story with other
tales
little in
might seem to have charm of the tales themselves. Rather, it may be said, that our knowledge of the source whence the stream flows will add indefinitely to the interest with which we trace its wanwith which at
first
sight
it
common,
will
derings, until
by
the confluence of
its
tributary waters
it
human
must appear absurd, or impossible, or disgusting, not unfrequently be invested with a touching truth and
beauty.
'
APPENDIX.
The theory that the mythical system of the Greeks, and more especially the theology of the Iliad and Odyssey, is the corrupted form of a Divine revelation imparted to man in his infancy, has been maintained with great earnestness and force by Mr. Gladstone in his ' Homeric Studies,' and more recently in Juventus Mundi.' This revelation Mr. Gladstone formulates in a series of propositions which are, he asserts, contained inferentially in the early chapters of Genesis. {See Mythology of the Aryan Nations,' The scope and method of the inquiry are enforced in the i. II.) following question ' If we produce out of the Olympian system, from its Apollo, its Athene, its Leto, its Iris, and its various other persons and particulars, ideas identical in substance with those that are embodied in the first chapter of Genesis, how can we avoid the conclusion, in parity of reasoning, that those ideas, marked and peculiar as they are, which are found existing alike in the poems of the Aryan Greeks and in the sacred books of the Semitic Hebrews, were common to those Aryans and those Semites before the epoch of their separation ? Mr. Gladstone asks that this proposition may be examined, and equitably judged, without any premature view to consequences ;
'
' :
justly insists that 'we have no right to import the consideration of results, which we may dislike, into the examination of questions of evidence.' The question is, indeed, strictly one of fact. But there are certain preliminary considerations which, although they must not be allowed to bias us unduly, may yet fairly be taken into account. The supposition that the Greek or any
and he
other myths
embody a number
by
352
APPENDIX
I.
Divine revelation, and that these beUefs were implanted in men centuries or millenniums before they could be realised in fact, seems to involve us at the outset in a maze of painful difficulties and the question is surely justified, which would ask a reason why a series of propositions should be laid before men which they could not fail to misunderstand, from which, as so misunderstood, they could derive no possible benefit, and which, as Mr. Gladstone himself admits, are contained in the earliest records only by a dim and feeble foreshadowing. We seem, therefore, scarcely free to resort to the theory of a primitive revelation, unless other methods
of explanation fail us altogether and on the other hand we seem to be well within the bounds of truth in asserting that all the important characteristics of the Olympian gods in the Iliad and Odyssey are explained with the clearness of demonstration by the method of comparative mythology. It is, of course, necessary for the maintenance of Mr. Gladstone's tlieory that the theology of the Iliad and Odyssey should be entirely dissevered from what is called nature-worship. In other words, it is impossible for him to admit that the conceptions of deities named in those poems were at the outset obtained from impressions left on the mind by the phenomena of the outward world. If these deities are simply embodiments of ideas suggested by sensible objects, the question is but the case is altered if there answered before we enter into it be a never-baftled Athene, and an Apollo who is alone and always in absolute harmony with the will of the eternal Zeus.' Hence he draws broad and deep a distinction between Homeric and post-Homeric mythology, by which terms he means the mythology of the Iliad and Odyssey and that of all other Greek poems, epic, lyric, or dramatic. If this distinction should turn out to be an arbitrary assumption, the controversy is at an end ; and the question will be soonest settled by a reference to what the Iliad and Odyssey At really tell us of the deities of which they make mention. the outset we are confronted with the fact that these poems speak of Zeus, Apollo, Hermes, Demeter, Aphrodite, without making any reference to incidents in their mythical history which do not fall within the scope of the poet's purpose. This purpose was to stir the minds of men by the relation of certain events
;
:
'
'
'
in
and
in
doing
this the-
poets refer incidentally to a vast number of narratives which they do not care even to summarise. We have, therefore, no excuse for supposing them to be ignorant of traditions relating to the Olympian gods, merely because they happen to take no notice of
them.
The gods of the Olympian hierarchy are, ]\Ir. Gladstone contends, strictly anthropomorphic, or, as he prefers to call them, the-
APPENDIX
anthropic.
I.
353
In other words, the Apollo and the Athene of the Iliad and Odyssey are beings with human bodies, who speak and in some act sort like human beings, and exhibit the working of human feelings and passions, and thus no room is left for deities like the Vedic Agni, the child of two sticks rubbed together, who comes into the world puny and deformed, but soon acquires a terrible power by devouring all that lies in his path, and dies when his food fails him. But if the essence of the anthropomorphic idea lies in the power of appealing to or exciting human sympathy, then this anthropomorphic or humanitarian character belongs to many other deities or beings whose claim to it Mr. Gladstone
rejects.
Among these is Dem^ter, who, we are told, ' is but a sleeping partner in the thearchy, and has no practical share whatever in But this remark applies to her, obthe conduct of affairs.' viously, only as she is spoken of in the Iliad or the Odyssey and it is not easy to see why without the most cogent evidence we should allow that the Achaian conception of Demeter is to be gathered from those poems only. If in these we read little about it, we have an exquisite picture of the mourning mother and her beautiful child in the so-called Homeric Hymn a picture in which the relation of marvels and wonders nowhere interferes with the current of genuine human feeling, and of human feeling for the most part in its tenderest and most attractive forms. From the moment when the bright maiden is dragged away by the chariot of Hades from the plains of Enna to the hour when the bitter grief of the mother is changed into radiant joy by the sight of her child at the trysting-place Eleusis, the whole hymn appeals to our common human feeling with a force altogether beyond that of the ordinary records of Olympian doinga in the Iliad or the Odyssey. The story exhibits, it is true, a chain of cause and effect which. The sun lies beyond the range of ordinary human experience. and moon are actors or speakers in the great drama ; the grieving mother is a being who can appear before Zeus in Olympos as a peer of his celestial hierarchy ; and of her sorrow all living things are partakers. But while even for Achaians the tale must have been transparent, although even for them the goddess must have been the image of the earth refusing to yield its fruits while her summer child is in the deadly abode of winter, there was nothing in it to check the warm current of purely human feeling in them, there is nothing to chill it in us. The form bowed down in sorrow by the side of the fountain, the gentle tenderness of the daughters of Keleos, the matronly dignity of Metaneira, are not rendered less human, and excite our sympathy none the less, because we see the child Demophoon plunged daily into his bath of fire,
;
AA
354
APPENDIX
I.
or because the eating of the pomegranate by the maiden must be followed by her return to the land of shadows. Hermes, again, in the Odyssey is a purely anthropomorphic god, whose acts and words are marked for the most part by great gravity and decorum ; but Hermes is also the hero of the hymn which bears his name, and we may fairly ask on w^hat grounds we are justified in asserting that the poet of the Odyssey knew nothing of the story embodied in that hymn. There, too, the interest is human throughout but it is difficult, if not impossible, to believe that the hymn-writer had not some consciousness of the materials with which he was dealing. His birth in the morning, his soft harping at midday, the huge strides with which in the evening he hurries after the cattle of Phoebus, the grinding of the forest branches until they burst into flame, the sacrifice which Hermes prepares, but of which he cannot taste, though sorely pressed by hunger, the wearied steps with which he returns to his cradle, passing through the opening of the bolt like the sigh of a summer breeze or mist on a hill-side,' must, with all the other incidents of the tradition, have taught the poet that the mysterious being who was to bear for ever the title of the master-thief was the wind which drives the clouds of Phoebus across the heaven, which takes counsel with the Thriai in tlie coverts of the mountain glens, and receives from the sun-god the solemn charge which makes him the guide of human souls to Hades. Of this wonderful story, which has delighted the East and the West for hundreds or thousands of years, we hear nothing in the Odyssey, for the simple reason that the poet had no motive for introducing it. Like the Iliad, the Odyssey is a poem dealing with only a few of the incidents connected with or arising out of the war of Troy. Scant references or passing allusions attest his knowledge of a vast number of other incidents or traditions which did not fall within the scope of his plan nor have we, seemingly, anything in the poem to show that he wished to assign Whether before he a different origin to the messenger of Zeus. put on his human form Hermes was worshipped by the forefathers the Avhich perhaps simply as wind, is a question of the Achaians Thinkers whose authority it is not very necessary to answ^er. should carry great weight have doubted whether any worship was ever offered to any elemental god unless some idea of the bodily form of that deity was present to the mind of the worshipper. In most cases the two thoughts would probably be blended in a way which would almost dely analysis and such a blending we may notice especially in the idea of Ushas, as we have it in the hymns of the Rig Veda. Nothing is more certain than that for the writers of these hymns Ushas was veritably the Dawn which each morning spreadher rosy flush across the heaven, which re;
'
APPENDIX
I.
355
vealed the bright cows feeding in the pastures of the sky, and which in the long series of her visits brings to all living things old age, decay, and death. But the warm and genuine feeling of human affection with which she was regarded is not less beyond all doubt. Ushas, in short, is in these hymns the beautiful being, who is the forerunner, the mother, the sister, or the wife of the brilliant sun-god w^hom, nevertheless, she must not look upon in his unclothed splendour, and who can tarry with his bride only during the time of twilight. It is the simple framework of the touching story of Eros and Psyche, and the framework also of the tale, perhaps even more touching, of Urvasi and Pururavas in the If it be said that the story of their beautiful drama of Kalidasa. loves is to the later poet a story simply of human joy and sorrow, of the origin of which he had not the faintest suspicion, the position is one which we need not greatly care to disturb, although much of the language of Kalidasa, like that of the jwets of the Iliad and It the Odyssey, would seem to warrant a different conclusion. seems well-nigh impossible to suppose that the author of the hymn to Hermes was wholly unaware of the nature of the god whose story he was telling. Leave out all names, and put the tale before a child in the form of a riddle, asking him who it is that sings sweetly when he is born, that stalks with giant strides when only a few hours old over mountain and moor, dashing the trees of the forest together till their branches burst into flame, roasting meat which he cannot eat though he longs to do so, and when tired of doing mischief steals back wearily to his cave and
lies
key he will be able to unlock the legend of Orpheus, who could by his voice charm the Argo into the water when the efforts of the heroes were powerless to move it, and whose harping stirred trees and rocks He will see the same legend in another form in the into motion. soft whisperings of Pan, whose gentle pipings wake the slumbering echoes at the same moment on the mountain-top and in the hidden glen ; and in the song of H ermes, which sounded sweeter in the ears of Phoebus than any strain ever heard in the halls of Olympus, he will recognise the magic melody of the piper of Hameln, which drew the happy troop of children to the paradise which they saw far down in the depths of the blue river. Of all these beings, Hermes, Phoebus, Orpheus, and the rest, some might be the objects of a greater, some of a lesser worship, and they might be so to a people who had acquired a marked dislike for deities of a nakedly elemental character, such as, in some at least of the descriptions given of him, is the Vedic Agni. It would become, therefore, the object of S'.ich a people to invest A A 2
' '
down to sleep like an infant in his cradle. readily answer, It is the wind ; and with this
The
child will
356
APPENDIX
far as
;
T.
might be possible, with an exckisively human personality but this would not make the origin of the idea from which these beings had taken shape to be anything but what it was. Their anthropomorpliic or humanitarian character had arisen from conceptions suggested by the sights or sounds of the outward world ; and the evidence of the change, although it might be placed in the background, could not be obliterated. It has not been obliterated in any one instance. The Zeus who is described to us as ruling in Olympus and as exhibiting in himself some of the worst vices of humanity, and the absolutely righteous Zeus whom the worshipper approached in times of trouble and sorrow, were two distinct beings. But of the origin of the ideas which have given sliape to the Olympian Zeus and other gods we are left in no doubt. Mr. Gladstone argues that, if the original meaning of the name Zeus be the material heaven, we are no more justified in determining herefrom that the Achaian Greeks worshipped that material heaven, than we should be justified in holding that because a divine object is worshipped under the name splritus in Latin dcnd pneiima in Greek, therefore the material thing we call breath was ever the object of adoration.' There is no need of making such an assertion with reference to the worship of the Achaian Greeks ; but it is certainly a fact that Pan and Favonius, to say nothing of Hermes and Orpheus, are, if such phrases must be used, humanised embodiments of the air which breathes through the sky. Whether the embodiment thus obtained becomes an object of adoration is quite a secondary question. The result might or might not be such the main point to be determined is the originating idea, and this idea in the case of some of the deities
them, so
'
:
is seen with unmistakable clearness. Pieces of meat, are told by the poet, may be roasted over Hephaistos, who in such passages is the elemental fire as strictly as is Agni in any of the hjmns of the Rig Veda. In like manner when we say that the relation of the Olympian Zeus to the material heaven is that of a ruler, we only say of him what may be said with not less truth of the Vedic Dyaus. His character is still so closely in harmony with the old conception, ihat he must remain in the region of which he is the king. The other gods can visit the earth and take part in the quarrels of mortal men ; he alone descends not from the clear heaven, whence he looks down on all that is being done beneath him ; and when the last hour ofSarpedon is come, his grief takes the form of rain which falls in blood-red drops upon the earth. In the multiplying of his loves we have simply the fertilising power of the heaven, and in legends like that of Danae the mode by which his will is accomplished points to the action of light upon the outward world. As in the Vedic hymn
of the Iliad
we
APPENDIX
'
I.
357
Aditi is praised as at once father, mother, and son,' so is Zeus both the brother and the husband, and his own daughters through many generations become the mothers of his children. This is the language, not of a poet who is determined to keep out of sight,
or to get rid of, the elemental origin or characteristics of his gods, but of one whose expressions are influenced, perhaps without his knowing it, by the thoughts and ideas of earlier ages which had not learnt to draw a distinction between the visible heaven and the deity who dwelt within it. Still less equivocal is the parentage of Phoebus Apollo, the glorious god, whose locks are never shorn, who is born in Delos, the land of light, and rules in Lykia, another land of light, through
Unscathed himself, which flows the golden stream Xanthos. he is the destroyer of the dragon, the rotting of whose body in the sun is said to have suggested the name of his Pythian sanctuary but as the dragon-slayer, he is simply one of a large band of gods and heroes. He does no more than is done by Kadmos (Cadmus) or Herakles, Theseus or CEdipus nor is the battle described with the wealth of incident which is lavished on the great conflict between Indra and the throttling snake Ahi. These dragons, again, have nothing in common with the subtle They offer no temptations to sin, they hold serpent in Genesis. out no delusive promises, they cannot harm their conquerors. They are, in short, simply demons of drought, who shut up the waters needed to refresh the thirsting earth, and their death is followed at once by the outpouring of the life-giving flood. The Hydra slain by Herakles is a monster of a different kind and its connexion with water is manifested by its name. Here we have a myth in which the sun is described as causing drought by drying up the rivulets ; but until the main source which feeds the multitude of springs in marshy or swampy land is dried up,
;
the attempt to
Herakles
his task
assails the
Hence cut off these lesser streams is vain. Hydra's neck, and when the head is severed,
must
lie
is
done.
But
to the
the traditions of the Delian and Delphian god and, as in the case of Hermes, we must have very cogent evidence before we can allow that this appeal is inadmissible. Unquestionably, its meaning would even to a child
be not less obvious than that of the hymn to Hermes. If Leto, the mother of Phoebus, is, in Mr. Gladstone's words, 'wholly functionless, wholly inactive,' and without a purpose,' except in so far as she is his mother, so also is the night which is the parent of the day or of the god who banishes the darkness. It was, in fact, impossible that the original idea could be developed
'
into a
much more
definite personality.
353
APPENDIX
I.
It may, therefore, be fairly questioned whether an Olympian system, to be found in the Iliad and Odyssey exclusively, has any Regarding these poems apart from any preconceived theories as to the time or the mode in Avhich they grew up, we have in them the narrative of certain incidents in a well-known struggle in which certain superhuman beings take part. These beings are, in their general character, anthropomorphic, or theanthropic, or humanitarian, for all these words may be needed to express the desired meaning ; but in every one of them there are features which point unmistakably to the ideas of earlier times, when men were content to express the feelings awakened in them by the objects or phenomena of the outward world. This is a change which was not confined to the mythology of the Achaian people. find it carried out to a large extent in that of the Rig Veda ; nor is it easy to discern any radical difference between the Olympian gods as portrayed in the Iliad and Odyssey, and the same gods as they appear in the works of the great lyric and dramatic poets of ancient Hellas, unless, indeed, it be in certain features Avhich would seem to indicate that priority in point of time belongs to the latter rather than to the former. In his Homeric Studies Mr. Gladstone laid great stress on the degradation of certain actors in the Iliad and Odyssey as they appear in Greek lyric poems and dramas. Thus the wisdom and prudence of Odysseus become mere selfish cunning and trickiness, and the Helen who is more sinned against than sinning, and in the Odyssey is restored -to her home pardoned and even glorified, appears in the drama of ^schylus as the bane of all amongst whom she is thrown. There is no doubt that the pictures of these actors are in the Iliad and Odyssey more graceful, refined, and attractive ; but in the order of thought these more delicate conceptions are always rather of later than of earlier growth, and the arguments based on their greater antiquity may be reversed. It would appear, then, that we have no grounds for drawing
existence.
We
'
'
that distinction between what is called Homeric and post-Homeric mythology on which Mr. Gladstone lays special stress. Into the
Homeric controversy
characteristics of the
it
is
Olympian or Homeric hierarchy are, as we liave seen, far more easily and more completely explained by referring them to the forms of thought and speech prevalent in the mythopreic ages than to any other causes. It can, however, by no means be taken for granted that our Iliad and Odyssey constitute the Homer of Solon and Peisi';tratos, of the lyric and tragic poets, of Herodotus and Thucydides. The evidence at our command seems all to point in another direction and this evidence is derived from the whole character of the Greek lyric and tragic poetry, and of the illuitrations of Greek myths to be
;
APPENDIX
seen on the vase paintings.
In a
still
I.
359
higher degree, perhaps, it is furnished by the poems themselves, which from beginning to end assume in their hearers a familiar knowledge with a multitude of incidents and mythical traditions, to which they make merely a passing reference or allusion. It must not, however, be forgotten that the theories, which question the great age of the text of these poems, in no way question the antiquity of the materials used in their composition. 'I'hey do but assert that the Homer of Plato was not identical with the Homer of Herodotus and Thucydides, and therefore could not have been the Homer of the lyric and tragic poets ; and the inferences involved in them are simply those which may be reached by comparing the treatment of subjects in our Homer, which seems to be the Homer of Plato, with tlie treatment of the same subjects in the dramas of /Eschylus and Sophokles. At the same time, these are questions which must be settled before we can even enter on the examination of arguments which assume the vastly higher antiquity of our Iliad and Odyssey, and assign to them a place wholly different from that of all other products of
Greek
literature.
The
great changes
underwent down
clearly exhibited
by Mr. Sayce, who, in his Introduction to the Science of Language,' ii. 104, following Mr. Paley's method and accepting his conclusions, asserts that 'the Atticisms which occur on every page, and caused Aristarchus to consider Homer as an Athenian, as well as words and phrases which seem to belong to the Periklean era, are witnesses to more than one Attic recension after the poems had been transferred to the mainland of Europe.' But if from the text we turn to the contents or matter of the poems, it is certainly not easy to discern a form of religious thought radically different, or even differing largely, from that which we meet with elsewhere ; nor if we confine ourselves to internal evidence, can we shake off the suspicion, if not the conviction, that the mythology of the Achaian or Greek people had very litde to do vidth their religion. The course of the people generally is from the lower to the higher, while the myths, which, when translated into the conditions of human existence, were at the outset startling and shocking, become mere sources of corruption and impurity. The Iliad and Odyssey exhibited to the people a sensual and lying Zeus ; the people themselves prayed to Zeus ; but it is a mere arbitrary and groundless assumption that the Zeus to whom the people prayed was the Zeus of the epic poems. The What,' poems themselves answer the question in the negative. asks Professor Max Miiller, did the swineherd Eumaios know of the intricate Olympian theogony? Had he ever heard the name of the Clmrites or the Harpyias? Could he have told who was
' '
'
36o
the father of Aphrodite,
I
APPENDIX
it
;
I.
doubt
who were her husbands and her children? and when Homer introduces him to us, speaking of
that rule
it,
this hfe
of just gods, who hate cruel deeds, but honour justice and the righteous works of men.' In short, as the mythology grew more complicated, and in some parts more degrading, the ideas of morality and religion became more reasonable and more pure. If we turn to the Hesiodic Works and Days,' we find the poet bidding his friend to deal with all men according to the rule of righteousness which comes from Zeus, and telling him that justice and truth shall in the end prevail, that they who do evil to others inflict evil on themselves, that the eyes of God are in every place, that the way of evil is broad and smooth, and the path of good rough and narrow at first. But in the same poem we are told how Zeus bade the gods make Pandora fair to look upon, but evil within, and laughed at the thought of the miseries which should overtake mankind when all the evils snould be let loose from her box, while, to crush them utterly, hope should remain a prisoner within it. If in relating such tales the poet was not conscious that the Zeus who thus cheats and torments mankind is not the Zeus who commands them to do justice and mercy, how is it possible to explain the fact that he can use the same name without a thought seemingly that he is dishonouring the just and holy god whom he reverences ? In these poems, then, we have a religion, and we have a mythology ; but between the two there is an absolute severance. What grounds have we, therefore, for asserting that the case stands otherwise with the mythology and theology of the Iliad and the Odyssey ? Writing before Mr. Gladstone's Homeric Studies were given to the world, Professor Max Miiller had expressed his deliberate opinion that among the lowest tribes of Africa and America we hardly find anything more hideous and revolting than the stories told of Kronos and his offspring ; and he had added that it seems blasphemy to consider these fables of the heathen world as corrupted and misinterpreted fragments of a divine revelation once granted to the whole race of mankind.' By Mr. Gladstone's admission the expressions or figures by which these beliefs were imparted were at best only adumbrations of things to come, while, to prove his hypothesis, there is need of a never who is alone and always in baffled Athene, and of an Apollo absolute harmony with the will of the eternal Zeus; nor can this conclusion in its turn be established except by severing that myth in the Iliad or Odyssey from the same myth as exhibited in Greek That this severance cannot be justified or lyric or tragic poetry. warranted by the facts of the case, has been shown conclusively. Even in the Iliad Athene is signally baffled in the conspiracy to
' ' '
' '
APPENDIX
detlirone Zeus, in
IT.
361
Poseidon
that there
which she is and if in the case of Apollo it was necessary to believe was an absolute harmony between himself and Zeus, of what practical avail would this belief be if it was confined to the author or authors of a single poem? This belief was certainly not shared by Euripides, who speaks of Zeus as smiting with his Elsethunderbolt the son of Phoebus because he raised the dead. where we are told that Phoebus, in his fierce wrath at the death of his son, smote the Kyklopes (Cyclopes); that for this offence he was compelled to serve the Trojan Laomedon, who cheated him of his wages, and that then he found a more genial master, but a That the dragon slain by master still, in the Thessalian Admetos. him at Pytho had in the Achaian mind no connexion with the idea of human disobedience, and that it was simply one of the demons of drought slain by gods or heroes in all lands, we have already seen. So completely is the image of the Hellenic Phoebus opposed to the form which, confining his view to the IKad and the Odyssey, Mr. Gladstone ascribes to it. But if the Olympian system falls to the ground, or if, rather, it would appear never to have had a substantial existence, the issue is one which surely brings into clearer light the action of the Divine Spirit on the soul of man. If Greek mythology was not the same thing as Greek religion, we can understand how the latter, as set forth in the Hesiodic poems and in the teaching of the great dramatists, rose steadily to a higher standard, while the former became more cumbrous, arbiWe can see in the one trary, and repulsive in its complications. the working of the Spirit from whom all holy desires, all good counsels, and all just works proceed ; in the other a necessary growth from forms of thought and language which had reference to the incessantly changing phenomena of the sensible Avorld. I may refer the reader who wishes to examine the subject more in detail, to the Mythology of the Aryan Nations.'
;
'
11.
363
APPENDIX
its
IT.
incidents not a whit more historical than the earUest. These inferences or conckisions are, it is now asserted, altogether upset, and the results of comparative mythology generally impugned, by the foct that some half-dozen names in the Nibelungenlied sound like the names of persons who lived in the fifth or sixth centuries of the Christian era. The story of Sigurd, the hero of the Edda,' we are told, ' with all the accessory characters, and all the adventures a favourite example of the solar myth \vith the new school is so closely imitated to all appearance in the Nibelungenlied, the great German epic composed centuries after it, that here if anywhere comparative mythology appears to have won a great victory. The names are the same, and the adventures very like. It would then follow necessarily that the
being in
at all events (if not both) was mythical and not hisBut, strange to say, there is an historical basis for this historical basis so certain, that not even the mythologers can gainsay it. Closely as the names appear to correspond to those of the Edda, they correspond just as closely to historical personages who lived after the Edda was known and referred to in literature. Sigurd represents Siegbert, king of Austrasia, 561-75 A.D. Gunther represents Gundicarius, king of Burgundy, in 435 a.d. So Brynhild, Irenfried, Dietrich, and Atli, are the reflexions of Brunehault, Hermannfried (Irminfried?), Theolater later
torical.
poem
poem an
doric,
and Attila. Here then, where comparative mythology might possibly have explained everything here, where, in default of other evidence, we should all have been quite content to accept its explanation, it is shomi to be a false and delusive guide.' Mahaffy, Prolegomena to Ancient History,' p. 89.
;
'
is the meaning of these propositions? The assertion that the Nibelung song has a sure historical basis would seem to justify the supposition that the song contained a certain amount of
What
and
recorded a number of facts which to whom they were attributed, to be and can be proved to be historical. But these sentences are, beyond doubt, not intended to convey this meaning. It is admitted that the actors in the Nibelung tale were, speaking generally, the same as those of the
history
it
women
known
men and women who play their part in the Volsung story, and that the adventures attributed to the former are very like those of the heroes of the latter. The historical basis (astonishing as it seems) is limited to the names. These correspond closely, we are told, to the names of some persons who lived about the fifth or sixth
century, and as this resemblance of names cannot be denied, therefore the poem is historical. This is really equivalent to asserting that the Arthur romance would become an historical poem of the nineteenth century, if a version of it were published which for the
APPENDIX
name Duke
II.
2,^^
of Arthur the British king should substitute that of Arthur It would not be pretended that the actions of WelUngton. of the duke were those of the Celtic chief; but if wnth his name a few other names should be given of contemporaries of the Duke of Wellington which correspond to those of the Arthur romance, the story would have an historical basis so certain that not even The argument is even more the mythologers could gainsay it. ridiculous, and, in the strict sense of the word, impertinent. Sigurd, or rather Siegfried, is said to represent the Austrasian king Siegbert but he is the lover of Brynhild, who is the sister of Gunther or Gundicar, king of the Burgundians. They belong therefore to the same generation but the Siegbert and Gundicar with which Mr. Mahaffy identifies them were separated by an interval ot nearly a century and a half. If this throwing of dust into our eyes is to be suffered, probably no poem has ever been written which might not lay claim to a strictly historical character. The truth is that, in spite of the fancied resemblance of a few names Avhich is not nearly so close as he represents it to be, Mr. Mahaffy puts no more trust in the narrative of the poem, as a history, than if these names were not found in it at all. He does not believe, nor does he pretend to believe, that the historical Gundicar or Siegbert or Attila did any of the things which in the poem they are said to have done. He merely wishes, on the strength of a certain resemblance of a very few amongst a multitude of names occurring in the same poem, to discredit the method and the conclusions of a science which has laid its foundations on the laws of language and on the analysis of a vast mass of myths which are the common inheritance of all the Aryan nations. The argument is scarcely ingenuous, nor can it be regarded as prompted by a disinterested love of truth. We might therefore be justified in saying that further reply is uncalled for. But it may be well to show that Mr. Mahaffy's assertions have not even the poor significance which he claims for them. The question, beyond doubt, turns less on the names of the actors than on their careers ; and of this fact it cannot be questioned that Mr. Mahaffy is well aware. If the series of deeds attributed to Sigurd and Etzel, Jormunrek, and Gunnar, were done by Siegbert and Attila, Hermanric, and Gundicar, the tradition would certainly become historical ; but, of course, Mr. Mahaffy does not pretend that this is the case. The resemblance and indeed the close correspondence of the Nibelung names to those which occur in the Saga of the Volsungs, is not denied ; but it has been remarked that Jornandes, who wrote long before the murder of the Austrasian Siegbert, already knew the daughter of the mythic Sigurd, Swanhild, who was born, according to the Edda, after the murder of her father, and who was after;
364
APPENDIX
'
IT.
wards killed by Jormunrek, whom the poem has again historicised in Hermanicus, a Gothic king of the fourth century.' (Max Miiller, 'Chips from a German Workshop,' ii. 112.) If we had no other warrant for the inference, this resemblance of names would justify the surmise that popular tradition is tempted to assimilate the names of ancient heroes to those of persons living at the time when the tradition takes shape ; and this surmise would not be weakened by the fact that the character of Etzel in the Nibelungenlied is utterly unlike that of the historical Attila. But this temptation was not confined to names. The epic poems of a nation may be regarded as giving a tolerably faithful picture of the society of the age in which they are composed ; but the age of the Nibelungenlied was in manner and form of thought separated from the age of the Volsung story by no gulf which would render the task of adapting the poem to a later time a matter of any special difficulty. If any names in the Nibelungenlied reflect the names of historical persons of the fifth or later centuries of the Christian era (and even this is in a high degree doubtful), the utmost that can be said is that the names of some kings and queens and warriors of those times lent themselves easily to the purpose of the more modern poet ; but this facility (even if we admit the fact) was purely accidental, and thus the resemblances of name impart no historical character to the poem, if by this term we mean a claim to credibility for the incidents related in the (Max Miiller, 'Chips,' ii. 113.) That the colouring narratives. thrown over the poem should be made, so far as it was possible, to suit the political and social conditions of the age when it was composed, is in no way surprising but so far as the incidents are concerned, it is no more than a colouring, and writers who would willingly trace the historical elements of the tale have found themselves compelled to admit that the real events noticed in the poem are very few in number. The historical Attila had a brother whose name is given as The Etzel of the Nibelung lay is the son of Bludi, or Bleda. Budli, not his brother and Bunsen has acknowledged the difficulty of making an expedition of Attila himself to the Rhine fit in with what we know of the history of those years. _(' God in History,' See also Mythology of the Aryan Nations,' i. 289, note.) ii. 478. All that can be said is that the poet or poets of the Nibelung lay have adapted the names of the older legend to names of living or recently living persons, whenever it was possible to do so ; that they have introduced some fresh names which were likewise borne by historical persons, and that they have further imparted to the story some appearance of agreement with great events Nor can the fidelity with of their own or of a recent age. which the poet adheres to the manners of his time be ascribed
:
'
APPENDIX
III.
365
necessarily to the narrative of the acts of the several personages of the drama. The subordinate or unimportant details are probably described with exactness and care. There would be no temptation to depart from existing customs with regard to dress, weapons, food, the precedence of ranks in the state, religious
worship, or the usages of war. But the care of the poets to represent these things aright imparts no credibility to narratives of events which are in themselves impossible (' Mythology of Aryan Nations,' i. 289) ; and when we find that these impossible events form the groundwork of a thousand other stories, whether Greek, or Teutonic, or Scandinavian, we are at once justified in asserting that in the common element thus found we discover the real character of these tales ; that in the Helgi and Volsung stories this common element is, in Bunsen's words, 'purely mythological, namely, the combat of the sun-god, who is slain by his brother and avenged by a younger brother' (' God in History,' ii. 474) ; and that this element must also pervade the Nibelung lay, in which, substantially, neither the names nor the incidents are changed. Thus the final conclusion is that, although a certain (and this a very small) amount of historical material may have been introduced into a story with which, until it was so introduced, it had nothing to do, the Nibe-
lung romance has no historical character. It is simply and absolutely impossible that Siegfried should represent the Austrasian Siegbert, or Gunther the Burgundian Gundicar, unless the poets who first introduced these names into the traditions intended that they should represent those chieftains or kings in other words,
' '
unless the poets of the Edda knew that centuries after their day these kings would rule over Austrasia and Burgundy, and would do moreover precisely those acts which they described as the deeds of the Sigurds and Gunnars of long past ages. The utter absurdity of such a supposition surely needs not to be pointed out.
III.
of the Arthur legend, the other given separately. The points or difference between the two are not uninstructive. In both Tristram is the child of sorrow. In the one he is born while his father still fives, in the other the death of the father precedes the birth of the child. But in both the wife is left alone and forsaken. The story of the Norwegian merchant ship, the captain of which orders sail to be set in order to beguile Tristram, who is
366
APPENDIX
tale
III.
an incident in the of Faithful John, and to the version of the myth of lo, generally taken to be a piece of Euemerism, as given by Herodotus. Tristram, like the heroes of all these tales, is the slayer of worms or dragons but the narrative which relates Tristram's special exploit is manifestly identical with the story related in Grimm's tale of the Two Brothers. The lying steward of the Tristram myth is the lying marshal of the other ; and the mode in which each is convicted is precisely the same. For the connexion of this tale with other legends, see Mythology of Aryan Nations,' i. 162 et scq. The difference to all appearance most noteworthy between the two stories of Tristram is that which relates to the character of king Mark of Cornwall, who in the version of Thomas the Rimer is genial and faithful, while in the other he is an embodiment of falsehood and treachery. Such contradictions, if the story be regarded as in any way a narrative of historical facts, would suffice to deprive it of all credibility but in the old myths the beings whom the sun has to supplant are not always malignant; and the two phases of Mark's character are reproduced in the Ring of the Frithjof Saga, and the Rinkrank of Grimm's popular German tale. In all these narratives, the good and the bad king Mark, the kindly Ring and the hard Rinkrank, each deprive the young and beautiful hero of his bride in each case the maiden is united witli her lover Sir Henry Strachey (' Morte d'Arthur,' either in life or in death. xiii.) regards the fact that Mark appears in his more genial form in the older romance as evidence that the later romance- writer found in the king's treachery some sort of palliation for what Sir Walter Scott calls the extreme ingratitude and profligacy of the hero. The charge of ingratitude seems but scantily borne out, or rather even according to Malory's story it has no foundation at all. The truth is, that if we judge the story from the standard of our human moi'ality, we shall find profligacy everywhere. Tristram pledges his faith to Isolte in Ireland but when he returns to Cornwall, he and king Mark quarrel not for her, but about the wife of tlie Rather it may be said that in the relations Earl Segwarides. but tlie of Mark with Isolte Tristram displays a singular fidelity multiplication of theories is really not needed to explain variations which are common to the myths of the Aryan nations generally. Here, as elsewhere, the method of comparative mythology makes enter into controversies which can have an it unnecessary to interest only on the supposition that we are dealing with powers and persons which are in some degree historical. Hence we need not take into account the conclusion of Mr. Price (Inti-oduction to Warton's History of English Poetry,' 1824) that Sir Walter Scott had wholly failed to prove any connexion between this romance
at chess with him, points to
on board playing
German
'
'
APPENDIX
IV.
367
and the Rimer of Ercildoune. It might rather be doubted whether Thomas the Rimer was a poet at all, for of the man himself we can scarcely be said to know anything, and by Sir Walter
Scott's admission the in the Merse,
name
name
John Rymour, a freeholder of Berwickshire, being among to Edward I. in 1296 ('Tristram,' if the poet's existence be proved, Sir Walter Scott But even p. 6). admits further that the romance existed before him and we are
those
IV.
(p.
330.)
clearly or convincingly than this fact the which the Arthur romance as we have it has
But this assertion cannot be twisted into a charge that unity of authorship is denied for compositions which have manifestly proceeded from a single poet or story-teller.
of Arthur might have been first put into its present form by Malory, although we know that it was not but it would be none the less a fact that the stories of Arthur, Balin, Lancelot, Gareth, Tristram, of the Isoltes, and the Elaines, and Guenevere, repeat each other that this likeness is inherent in the materials on which the romance writer worked and that he was compelled in each episode to give the supremacy to the hero of If then into this episode the heroes of other tales that episode. be introduced, it follows inevitably that they must play in it a subordinate part. If the whole legend of the Trojan war has grown up on a framework supplied by phrases which spoke of the struggle of the solar powers in the east to recover the dawn goddess who with her treasures of light and beauty had been stolen from the west, it is a self-evident fact that Sarpedon, the creeping light, who comes from Lykia, the brilliant land, through which flows the golden stream of Xanthos, is a solar hero, along Avith his friend Glaukos, the gleaming day, which survives the death of the young sun of the morning. But it is not less clear that this piece of genuine solar myth is misplaced in the later structure of the Iliad, for Paris as stealing away Helen from the west represents the robber Panis who seek to detain Sarama in their strongholds, and that they who take part with him are defending the citadel of night and darkness against the children of the sun who are come to take away the dawn-maiden from the east and lead her to her western home. Hence, in mythical congruity, Sarpedon ought to be fighting by the side of Achilles but to the old story-tellers such inconsistencies were matters of little moment ; and not only
; ; ; ;
368
APPENDIX
V.
Sarpedon, but Memnon, the very child of Eos, the dawn, is arrayed on the side of Hektor, and therefore also of Paris. Yet the real spirit of the myth is in no case violated, for to Sarpedon Ilion is a spot far to the west of his bright Lykia and no sooner is he slain than the old phrases assert their supremacy, and Phcebus himself wraps in a pure white robe of evening mist the body which Sleep and Death bear through the still night hours to the gleaming portals of the dawn. These inconsistencies, which are surely unavoidable when independent myths are woven together, illustrate precisely the changes which pass over Lancelot or Arthur in those parts of the tale which bear no immediate relation to themselves.
;
V.
The most
Arthur
is
earnest defence of the historical character of King perhaps that of Lappenberg in his History of England. It amounts practically to little more than this, that the rapid spread of Jeffrey's legend over a great part of Europe proves that the belief and this argument, it is clear, in the hero of it was deeply rooted may be urged with equal force in favour of the stories of Valentine and Orson or Jack the Giant-killer. William of Malmesbury, writing seven centuries ago, speaks of the many fables told about him by the Britons. William, it is true, mentions Arthur as a man who deserves to be celebrated not by idle fiction, but by genuine history; but he has no other mode of constructing or reconstructing that history than that which had been applied by Euemeros before him and has been applied by Lappenberg after him. On the other hand, Dr. Lingard has no hesitation in asserting that if we divest his memory of the fictitious glory which has been thrown round it by the imagination of the bards and minstrels, he will sink into equal obscurity with his fellows. We know neither the period when he lived, nor the district over which he reigned.' (' History of England,' i. 72.) Mr. Freeman, having insisted on the totally different character of the story of the English conquest as told by the English Chronicles and by Jeffrey of Monmouth, has not thought it worth while to take any Dr. Lingard adds that when the notice of the Arthur legend. reader has been told that Arthur was a British chieftain, that he fought many battles, that he was murdered by his nephew and was buried at Glastonbury, where his remains were discovered in the reign of Henry IL, he will have learned all that can be
:
'
'
It is ascertained at the present day of that celebrated warrior.' very doubtful whether he can ascertain or learn nearly so much. In the case of a chieftain with whose life mythology has by uni-
APPENDIX
versal consent
V.
369'
been busy, the twelve victories which he wins provoke comparison with the twelve labours of Herakles, while the chronology which marks the result of the battle of Mount Badon is as little to be trusted as any other part of the legend. The annals of the vEscingas of Kent are constructed on an eight times recurring cycle of eight years and Lappenberg, who upholds the historical character of Arthur, traces this number through every stage in the career of the English conquerors. (' England under the Anglo-Saxon Kings,' i. 75.) The remaining incidents which Dr. Lingard is content that the reader should believe if he likes to do so, are, of course, perfectly possible ; but if our knowledge of them be derived solely from the legendary narrative of his exploits, it is worth neither more nor less than the chronology of the events which took place in the House that Jack Built. We may learn the truth of these facts, if they be facts, from other sources, as we learn from Eginhand that Hruodland, Roland, the prefect of the British march, fell at Roncesvalles. From the legend we learn nothing.
;
B B
INDEX.
ABB
Abbas,
24.1
ARE
Aiglaer, 90 Aineias, 76, 266 Aiolos, 197 Ais, 244 Aisa, 62
15,
Achilles,
276
13
Admetos, 15,91, 106,265 Akshanah, 98 Aktaion, 163 Adonai, 67 Alberich, 288 Adonis, 67, 76, 159
Adiasteia, 61
yEgis, 73, 114 yEneas, 76, 77, 276 yEolus, 197 Aero, 163 Aerth, 143 yEsculapius [Asklepios]
Alkinoos,
3,
217, 280
45 ^thra, 116, 119 Agamedes, 86 Agamemnon, 279 Agave, 67, 227 Agenor, 66 Ages, The, 172 Agni, 164, 167 Agraulos, 240 Ahana, 58
Ahi, 34, 127
/Esir, 3, 44,
Antigone, 23, 121, 126, 132 Antikleia, 126 Antilochos, 267 Antiope, 118, 126, 195 Anubis, 150 Anupu, 150 Aphaia, 159 Aphrodite, 28, 55, 7J, 170
Alpheios, 92
Althaia, 68
Amaltheia, 225
Apna-purna, 239
Apollon, 8, 15, 84 Deiphinios, 87 Noiiiios, 147 Thyrxis, 144
Amazons,
1 18, 153 Ambrosia, 43 Amen-ra, 148 American Indian legends, 178 Ammon, 148 Amoun, 148 Amphiaraos, 87, 92
seq.
Aidoneus, 244
Aietes, 197, 261
Apsaras, 204 Ara, 60 Arbhu, 191 Amphion, 195 Amphitrite, 72, 205, 2IO Arcadia, 40, Areiopagos, 199 Amphitryon, 135 Ares, 15, 67, 170 Amulius, 14. 130 B B 2
98
372
INDEX.
ARE ATR
Atropos, 6x
Attabiscar,
Attliis,
CLO
of,
300
Brahm, 45 Brahma, 34
Bran, X44
Briseis, 267,
274
Aun, 210
Aurentil, 297
Brond, 137
Bronte, 36, So, 170 Brynhild, 5, 17, 288
Buri,
Aigos, II Argos Fanoptes, 152 Argos, the dog, 340 Argynnis, 1 1, 75 Ariadne, 18, 1x8 Arion, 192
Arislai-j 5,205
Aurora, 29 Ausera, 30 Aushasi, 140 Autolykos, X02, 283 Autonoe, 163 Avilion, 70 Azidahaka, 1 3 1, 2IO
44
Cabiri [Kabeiroi]
Cacus, 58, 106, 251
Cadmus [Kadmos]
Csecius,
Aristoclemos, Arjuni, n, 75
no
BaalHamon,
1
252
Amis, 196
Artemis, 22, 53, 106,
34,
67
Tauropola,
158,212
158
e'.
Calliope,
seq.
Balarama, 148
Baldur, 42, 43, 1x3, 13 7,
Cassandra [Kasandra] Castor [Kastor] Cattle of the Sun, 7 Cecrops, 134 Balmung, 292 Centaur [Kentaur] Barbarians, 155 Cerberus [Kerberos] Barbarossa, 338 Asklepios, iS, 43, 90 Ceres, 48, 231 pjassarides, 230 Asmodeus, 256 Ceridwen, 144 Bearer of God, 44 Asphaliaios, 209 Bellerophon, 15, 1x5, 153 Chalybes, 153 Asterion, 65, 152 Chandragupta, 132 Belleros, 115, 155 Asterodia, 11, 12, 95, 15 Chaos, 28, 44 Bellona, 200 Asteropaios, 160 Charis, 64, 75 Beowulf, 253, 3x0 Astraios, 51, 194 Charites, 63 Berchla, Frau, 237 Astyages, 14, 131 Charles the Great, 131 Besla, 44 Asuras, 255 Charles's Wain, 42 Bet t la, 44 Asvins, 59, 62, 82, 341 Charon, 246 Bevis of Hampton, 340 Atalante, 69, 99 Charybdis, 205 Bhagavadgita, 346 Ate, 60, lOi, 266 Bhava, Bhavani, 84, 146 Chatumerus, X37 Atergatis, 210 Cheiron, X02, 163 Bheki, 87 Athamas, 67, 2x6 Chemosh, 2x1 Bhovvanee, X46 Athem, 45 Children, the Fatal, 14, Bhuranyu, xx, 66 Athene, 26, 58, 70, 73, Bjelbog, X37 90 20S Chimera, 15, 105, 156 Blarney, 45 Akria, 71 Chione, 2x8 Boabdil, 338 Glaukopis, 72 Chnas, 67 Bolthorn, 44 Koryphasia, 71 Chrysaor, 85, X04, 221 Bona Dea, 239 Optiletis, 72 Chumuri, 34 Bor, 44 Tritogeneia, 71 Cicones, 277 Boreas, 182, X09 Athens, 194 Circe [Kirke] Bori, 192 Atlas, 99, 1X2 Cleo, 64 Bosp( los, Atli, 290 et seq. 153 Clotho [Klotho] Bragi ix, 49 Atman, 45 190 140 Balin, 318
Bali,
INDEX.
CLO
DIA
Enyo, 200
Z7Z
FOL
Eos, II, 22, 29, 6;, 134 Epaphos, 149, 153 Ephialtes, 198
Cloudeslee, 139 Dia, 96 Clym of the Clough, 139 Diana, 32, 53 Clytemnestra, 220 Dianus, 32, 53 Codes, 133 Dii Consentes, 239 Cocytus, 246 Dii Indigetes, 238 Coelian hill, 49 Dikte, 36 Census, 50, 239 Diktynna, 159, 160 Cornucopia;, 330 et seq. Diktys, III, 115 Correlative deities, 59, 83, Diomedes, 199, 265
157, 312, 313 Curetes, 69
Cybele [Kybele] Cvclops, Cyclopes [Kyklops, Kyklopes] Cynosarges [Kynosarges] Cynossema [Kynossema] Cynosure [Kynosoura]
Cyrus, 14, 127, 131
240
Erinys, li, 59 Eriphyle, 93
Eiis, 60,
76
Erp, 290
Eieokles, 93, 126 Ethiopians, Table of the,
144, 321 Etzel, 293 Eumoios, 37, 281 Eumenides, 59, 121, 125
Eunomos,
Europa,
94, 107
13,
65
Euryale, 112
Daphne,
89
Dasyu, 123
Dyu, 71
Davy
Jones's locker, 46
Dawn
maiden, 54
Euryanassa, 14, 98 Eury bates, 14 Eurydike, 14, 95, 190 Euryganeia, 14 Eurykleia, 14, 233 Eurymedousa, 14 Euryphassa, 14 Eurystheus, 15, 60, 301 Eurytos, 14, 102 Euterpe, 64
Dawn, Myths
Deimos, 76
Earth,
143, 231
Evadne, 92
Excalibur, 301, 317
Echemos, 109
Echidna, 34, 78, 105
Deiokes, 132 Echis, 34 Delos, i^, 40, 85 Echo, 95 Delphi, 66 Eckesax, 49 Demeter,7, 43, 231 etseq. Eerophoitos, 125 Demodokos, 170 Egeria, 64, 119 Demophoon, 233 Egvptus, 213 Deo, 233 Eileithyia, 146 Derketo, 210 Elaine, 329 Despoina, 48, 237 Elektra, 60, 197 Deukalion, 37, 132, 176 Eleusis, 232 Devaki, 146 Elfland, 161 Devas, 255 Elysion, 67, 247 Devil on two sticks, 257 Endymion, 12, 95 Dew, Myths of the, 22 Enosichthon, 200 Dharma, 145 Enyalios, 200
Fafnir,
5,
17.
287
374
JNDEX.
FRE
GRE
Greyman, 257 Grimm, 304 Gudrun, 288 et seq. Guenevere, 319 et seq. Gunadhya, 193 Gunnar, 2SS et seq. Gunther, 293 Guttorm, 289 Guy of Warwick, 341 Gyges, ring of, 326
HYA
Heosphoros, 65
Hephaistos,
26, 65, 66, 75. 165, 169
298
of,
144
Herakleids, 109 Herakles, 15, loi labours of, 102 Hercules, Herculus, no, 251 Here, 39, 43, 73, 78, 102,
Gaia, 28
Gaieochos, 208 Galahad, 317 et seq.
170 Hermeias, 11
Hermes,
8,
Hades,
et seq.
244
133 et seq.
Gandharva, 55, 97 Ganesa, 240 Ganymede, 65 Ganymedes, 65 Garanus, 251 (iaieth, 324 Gari, 46 Gawaine, 322
Hadufians, 137
Hagen, 291
Hahnir, 287 Haimon, 126
Halirrhothios, 199 Hamadryads, 23S, 243
Heroic Age, 173 Herse, 22, 240 Hertha, 144 Herwig, 297 Hesioneus, 96
Hesperides, 96, 107 Hesperos, 94, 96 Hestia, 39, 91, 166 Hialprek, 170 Hamdir, 290 <^e, 35 Piper of, (iemini, 83 Hamelin, 1S9, Hilda, 142 Hildebrand, 294 Genii, 238 192 Hildeburg, 296 Geography, Mythical, 153 Hamlet, 307 et seq.
Hamar, 48
Hanuman, 348
254
i
Hildegund, 295 Himeros, 74 Himinbiorg, 49 Hippokrene, 221 Hippolochos, 138 Hippolytos, 118 Hipponoos, 155
Hippotes, 197 Hjarrandi, 297
Hjordis, 103, 170 Hnikar, 46 Hoard, the Golden, 295 Hodr, 43, 113, 137, 245 Hogni, 290 et seq. Holda, 237 Holy coat of Treves, 309 Hope, 176 Horai, 78 Horant, 297
Glaukos,
6, 72,
Glistening Heath,
Godard, 304 Godric, 304 Gokala, 146 Goldborough, 304 Golden Fleece, 15 Shower, 16, ill Goose-girl, the, 29S
Gopias, 147 Gorgons, 15, 16, 221 Govinda, 145 Graces, 63 Graiai, 16, 112
Grail, the holy,
320
Gram,
63
Havelok, 304, 307 Hebe, 65, 80, 108 Hekabe, Hecuba, 264 Hekaergos, 91 Hekate, 66, 157 Hekalebolos, 66 Hekatoncheires, 37, 179 Hekatos, 66, 91 Hektor, 76, 79, 272 Hel, 44, 256 Helche, 293 Helen, 40, 76, 1 13, 319 Helene, II, 58 Kunopis, 40, 59 Helgi Sagas, 2S9 Helios, u, 15, 65, 88,94 Helle, 4, 216
309
Ilellen, 177
299
Hemera,
74,
237
INDEX.
HYD
Hydra, 105, 2^,0 Hyllos, 109
375
LIB
Klotho, 61
joc
Jocasta [lokaste] Jonakr, 290 Gardens, Jormunrek, 290 Joseph of Arimathea, 144
Jotun, 44
Klymene, 94
Klytaimnestra, 220
Hyperborean
Moneta and
Jugalis,
87,
Kosmos, 44
Kouretes, 69, 163, 242
Ialmenos, 265
lamos, 90, 92 lapetos, 36
lasion, 237 lason, 130, 261 Ida, 36, 41
Terminus,
52,
10
no
seq-,
Kybele, Kybebe, 241 200 Kalliope, 64, 190 Kyklopes, 36, it, 46 Iliad, component parts of Kallirrhoe, 254 Kyknos, 199 the, 267 Kalos, 171 Kynopis, 40 Ilion, 104, 264 Kalydonian boar, 68, 107 Kynosarges, 40 Inachos, 151 Kalypso, 160, 279 Kynosoura, 40 Indra, 14, 17, 33 Kama, 45 Kynossema, 40 Parjanya, 34, 46 Kamsa, 145 Savitar, 46 Karali, 166 Indus. 33 Karme, 159 Labyrinth, 171 Ingebjorg, 298 Kasandra, 264 Lachesis, 61 Ino, 67, 217 Kastor, 59, I02 Laertes, 265, 281 lo, 151 Kauravas, 343 Laios, 14, 16 lobates, 156 Kebren, 265 Laistrygones, 278 lokaste, 16, 24, 120 Kedalion, 163 Lampetie, 13 lolaos, 104, 109 Kedem, 67 Lamyroi, 247 lole, 104, 108 KeingrJa, 299 Lance ot, 319 et seq. Iphianassa, 95 Kekrops, 134, 241 Laodameia, 138 Iphigeneia, 61, 159, 266 Keleos, 233 Laomedon, 15, 91, 104, Iphikles, 104 Kentaur, 15, 97 209 Iphimedousa, 197 Kephalos, 18, 22, 95, Lares, 52, 74, 169 Iris, 49, 233 Larvae, 169 Isandros, 138 Kepheus, 115 Latin gods, 50 Isis, 149 Kephisos, 95 Latmos, 12, 84 ship of, 143 Kerberos, 31, 104, 245 Laverna, 190 Ismene, 121 Kerdo, 167 Leda, 85 Isolte, 328 Keto, III Legends, Tribal, 16 Issi, 257 Kikones, 277 Lemures, 169, 247 Ixion, 41, 80, 96 Kilix, 66 Leophontes, 123 Kipicho, 45 Lethe, 84, 246 Kirke, 4, 160, 279 Leto, 13, 73 Janus, 32, 53 Kleio, 64 Leukothea, 217 Jason [lason] Kleitos, 65 Liber, 48 Jemshid, 144 Kleopatra, 69 Libera, 48
Ilia,
Kyanean
rocks, 191
376
Lie
Lichas, io8
Lif,
INDEX.
MED
Medusa,
15, 112,
ODI
221
43
Megaira, 61
80
Linga, 143 Linos, 102, 196 Logi, 172 Loki, 42, 48, 136, 171 Lotus, 143
Lucerius, 52, 91
organic, 9
dis-
Dew,
22, 23
Melpomene, 64
Naiads,
79,
Memnon,
266
65,
134,
Nala, 346
Menelaos, 276 Menestheus, 119 Naraka, 22, 23 Mercury, Mercurius, 189 Narcissus [Narkissos]
Merlin, 31
Narkissos, 95
Naubandhana, 162
Nausikaa, 280
Necessity, doctrine Nectar, 43 Neis, 95 Neith, 150
of,
60
Lykegenes,
13,
Lykomedes, 119
Lykos, 195 Lykosoura, 40, 86 Lykourgos, 92 Lyktos, 36 Lympha, 204 Lynkeus, 213
Lyrkeios, 214
Capita, 71
Minos, 6, 66, 116, 132 Minotauros, 105, 171 Mithras, 33 Mitra, 33 Moerre, 68 Moirai, 61, 68
Neleus, 130 Nemesis, 60, 95 Neoptolemos, 103 Nephele, 216, 260 Neptunus, 212 Nereids, 46, 203 Nereus, 202 Nessos, 15, 107 Nestor, 265
248,
Nibelungenlied, 5, Molion, 48 291 et seq. Molionids, 48, 197 Nibelungs, 235 Moloch, 67, 105, 211, 229 Nick, Old, 46 Monotheism, 38 Nicor, 46 Mordred, 315, 336 Niflheim, 77, 256
Mandane, 131
Manduci, 247 Manes, 169 Mania, 74
Muninn, 46
Muses, 63, 64 Mutinus, Muttunus, 231
50,
Nix, 60 Nixes, 46
Manu, 132
Marhaus, 322 Mars, 200, 241
Marspiter, Maspiter, 241
Nymphs,
16
Master Thief, 18, 1S8 Matarisvan, 166 Matuta, 74 Mavers, 200 Maypole, 143 Medeia, 15, 175, 262
distinction between, 7
Oannes, 210
Oberon, 321 Ocean, 49 Odin, 42, 45
liiblindi,
46
INDEX.
ODI
in
POP
Phrixos, 4, 217 Phthah, 151 Picumnus, 238 Picus, 239
Pierides,
Pieros,
PAL
Pallas, 72 Pan, 151, 194 Pandareos, 98 44 Odysseus, 103, 171, 2C5 Pandaros, 266 Pandavas, 283 343 et seq. OEdipus, 14, 15, 16, 120 Pandora, 73, 175 et seq. Pandrosos, 240 (Egir, 49 Pani, 34, 58 Oegishialm, 49 Parasurama, 347 OLneus, 68, 94 Parcce, 61
Odin Hakol-berend, 46
of,
64 64
220
CEnone, 265 Ogen, 49 Ogier, 304 Og>'ges, 49 Ogygia, 279 Oiagros, 190 Oidipous [CEdipus] Oinopion, 162 Okeanos, 49, 78 Olger the Dane, 70, 301 Olympia, 40 Olympian gods, 25, 39 Olympian System of the Iliad and Odyssey, 351 Olympos, 25 Omphale, 107 On, 210 Onnes, 87 Ops, 238 Oreads, 204, 243
Oreithyia, 195 Orendil, 297, 308 Orestes, 266
Plouton, 237 Pluto, 237, 245 Podarge, 197 Poias, 108 Polybos, 120
j
Pavana, 193
Pegasos, 156, 221 Peirithoos, 119 Pelasgos, 42
Peleus, 76, 265 Pelias, 130, 261 Pelops, 98
Polymnia, 64
Polyneikes, 92, 126 Polyonymy, 10, 13 Polyphemos, 219, 257
Penates, 52, 169 Penelope, 194, 281, 283 Pentheus, 67, 105, 227 Peplos, 142 Periphetes, 117, 170 Persephone, 7, 77, 234
Perseus,
seq.
14,
Pomona, 239
Pontos, 35, 203
Popular
stories
Ahmed and
the
Peri
15,
no
et
324 314
18
Briar-rose, 236,
Champa Ranee,
Cinderella, 4 Dame of the fine
294
Phemios, 294
Phenicia, 40, 66 Phenician worship, 224 Phenix, 150, 267 Philoktetes, 103 Philomela, 196 Phineus, 113 Phix, 124 Phlegyas, 96 Phobos, 76 Phcebus, 36, 84
Green
144, 148
Oska-byrr, 45 Osk-mayjar, 45 Oska-stein, 45 Otos, 198 Ourania, 64 Ouranos, 31, 32 Ovelgunne, 257
Farmer
203
Weathersky,
Akersekomes, 43
Phojnix, 66, 68 Phol, 137
Paieon, 90
Palaimon, 67, 211
Palici,
239
Frog Prince, 87 Giant who had no heart in his body, 339 Glass Coffin, 340 Gold Child, 324 Golden Bird, 56
378
INDEX.
POP
Popular stories Great Fool, 305
:
POP
Popular
stories
:
]
Two
Hacon
House
236
Grizzlebeard,
Rhea Silvia, 200 313 Viciam Maharaja, 19 Rhodopis, 4 White Snake, 56 Rhot-amenti, 150 Widow and her Daugh- Ribhu, 191
Sisters,
ters,
the
Wood,
96
Rig Veda, 29
Wolf and
little
Iron Stove, 96, 340 Jew among the Thorns, 192 Karpara and Gata, 3 Knapsack, the Hat, and the Horn, 324 Lad who knew not how
to shiver,
the Seven Kind, 43 Goats, 36, 2S5 Ring, the magic, 303
37,
73,
Poseidon,
172,
Rishis,
42
et seq.
Rohits, 62
Roland, 300
Roman
201
religion,
14,
Romulus,
52 127
130
324
Master-smith, 170 Master Thief, 318 Maurice Connor, 193 Prithivi, 31 Moor's Legacy, 181 Procrustes, 117 Nix of the Mill Pond, Proetos, 156 Prokne, 196 98, 236 Nuad of the Silver Prokris, 18, 22 Hand, 46 Prokroustes, 117 Old Dame and her Hen, Prometheus, 37, 42, 237 137, 152, 165 Old Griffin, 339 Proteus, 83, 87, 202 Old Soldier, 342 Protogeneia, 12 Panch Phul Ranee, 4 Psyche, 55 Pilgrim of Love, 4 Psychopompos, 47 Punchkin, 312, 339 Pururavas, 55 Queen Bee, 56 Putana, 147 Rapunzel, 236 Pylaochos, 172 Rhampsinitos. Trea- Pyrakmon, 170 sures of, 3, 87 Pyriphlegethon, 246 Rich Peter the Pedlar, Pyrrlia, 176 Pytho, 87 339 Robber and his Sons, Python, 287 258 Shifty Lad, 4, 87 Shortshanks, 3, 324 QuiRiNUS, 201 Sick Queen, 87 Qvasir, 43
73,
Sammuramit, 210
Sangreal, 144, 321
266
Satyrs, 243
Saurii,
290
Schamir, 180
Scheria,
280
Snake Leaves, 5 Snow-white and RoseRa, 148 Ramayana, 248, 347 Ravana, 250, 347 Suria Moria Castle, 324 Recaranus, 251 Surya Bai, 288 Regin, 117, 2S7 The Dwarf, 236 Reidartyr, 47 Three Wishes, 192 Reidmar, 287 Thrushbeard, 305 Remus, 14, 127, 130 True and Untrue, 313 Reris, 285 Twelve Brethren, 56 Rhadamanthys, 66, 149 Two Brothers, 313, 329 Rhampsinitos, 3
red, 63,
Schoeneus, 69 Secondaries, 93
Seilenos, 100, 243 Seirens, 191, 205
Seirios,
90
Soaring Lark, 56
Sodewa
Bai,
163
Seistron, 142
on
Greek
religion,
225
Semo
INDEX.
SER
Serpents in mythology, 92, 106 Servius Tullius, 305 Sesame, 180 .Set, Sethi, 150
379
VEN
Swan-maidens, 204 Symplegades, 191, 261
Syrinx, 191
Syrma, 195
of
Tiphys, 261 Tisiphone, 61 Titans, 37, 178 Tithonos, 65, 95 Tiu, 33 Treasure, the lost, 292 et
seq.
of,
203
Trimurtti, 34, 81
162
Shemesh, 211
Sibylline books, 193 Sidero, 131
Tanhaiiser, 160, Triptolemos, 234 129, Tristram, 14, 326 et seq. 161, 274 Trita, 72, 210, 254 Tantalos, 26, 41, 98 Tritogeneia, 71 Tara Bai, 160 Triton, 72 Tarnkappe, 37, 113 Tritopatores, 72 Tarquin, 193
Telemachos, 94, 281 Siegfried, 291 et seq. Telephassa, 13, 66 Siggeir, 285 Telephos, 13, 127 Sigmund, 117, 284^ Signy, 285 Tell, 138 Sigrun, 2S9 Tellus, 241 ^igtyr, 47 Telodike, 167 Sigurd, 5, 14, 17, 117, Telphoussa, 86 Temenos, iio 288 192, 284, Tereus, 196 Silanus, 192, 243 Terminus, no Silvanus, 239 Terpsichore, 64 Sinfjotli, 286 Sinis, 117 Terra, 241 Sisyphos, 7, 8, 9, 58 Tethys, 78, 212 Sita, 250, 347 Teutamidas, 114 Siva, 34, 166 Teuthras, 127 Skambha, 82, 164 Thalia, 64 Skeiron, 117 Thanatos, 106, 109, 133
Skidbladnir, 3, 48 Skuld, 61 Skylla, 177, 205 Sleipnir, 47
Trophonios, 86 Troy, tale of, 264, 273 Tuesday, 33 Tuisco, 36 Twilight of the gods, 137 Tydeus, 48 Tyndareus, 48, 220 Typhaon, 78 Typhoeus, 250
Thaumas,
60, 197,
203
Thebes, 67
Theseus, 122
18,
105,
16,
Soma,
Sphinx,
270
Vahni, 81
the Rimer, 129,
Thomas
160,
219, 253 Sterope, 36, So, 170 Stheino, 112 Styx, 246
43
Valkyries, 45
of,
Sushna, 34
Sutala,
84
Svar, 63, 78
Thrym, 48
Thunor, 47 Thursday, 47
Svayambhu
Cloacina,
-38o
INDEX.
VER
ZOl
Weapons, mythical, 86, 301, 314, 316 poisoned, 103, 328 Wegtam, 138, 322 Weird Sisters, 61, 323 Wind, Myths of the, 187
Ymir, 44
Yoni, 143 Yudishthira, 344
Zagreos,
148,
230
et seq.
18
Wish-god, 43
Wishing-stone, 45 Wish-maidens, 45 Witchcraft, 263
Vishnu, 34, 48, 85, 139 Vola, 138 Volker, 293 Volsung, 14, 90, 284, 293 Saga of, 116 Voluspa Saga, 43
,
Xanthos,
Vulcan, 171
Vurdh, 6r
94, the
189
1
271
river,
128
Xisuthros, 179
Wainamoinen,
Wayland
249
Yama,
70,
83, 104
Meilichios, 229 Nephelegeretes, 46 Olympios, 37 Ombrios, 46 Pater, 32 Phyxios, 264 41, Xenios, 41 239
Pistios,
Zaleukos, 92 Zephyros, 65, 196 Zethos, 195 Zeus, 26, 32, 174 Ephestios, 41 Herkeios, no Horios, 52 Horkios, 41, 239
Zio,
LONDOir PRIMTBD BY 8POTTISW0ODE AND CO., KEW-STEEET SQUABH AND PABLIAUXKT STBKST
;
LIST OF
CO:S
Paternoster Square,
London.
LIST OF
CO.'S
PAGE 2
Poetry
International Scientific
.
Military Works,
.29 .31
.43
,
PAGE 34
44
GENERAL LITERATURE.
ADAMS,
F.
0.,
From
vols.
Earliest Period to the Present time. With Maps and Plans. Demy Svo,
11.
New
2iJ'.
the 2
ADAMSON,
Svo,
T.,
B.D.'Ihe Truth as
it is
in Jesus.
Crown
8s. 6d.
The Three Sevens, Crown Svo, 5^. 6d. The Millennium or, the Mystery of God
;
Finished.
Crown
Svo,
cloth, 6s.
A. K.
IT.
B.
From
Svo,
R.,
6^.
a Quiet Place,
A New
Volume of Sermons.
Crown
5^-.
ALLEN,
ilZ^.Abraham : his Life, Times, and With Map. Second Edition. Travels, 3800 years ago.
Rev.
Post Svo, Grant,
T. W.,
ALLEN,
ALLIES,
^..<4. Physiological
-Esthetics.
Large
post
Svo, 95.
Life.
The
Result of a
Life's Decision,
bd.
ANDERDON,
Rev. W. H.VasXi Apostolici ; a Chronology of the years between the Ascension of our Lord and the Martyrdom Crown Svo, cloth, 2s, 6d. of SS. Peter and Paul.
&
Co!s Publications.
AXDERSON,
R.
Every Detail in connection with Earthen and Masonry Dams. Royal 8vo, 2 2s. ARCHER, Thomas. About my Father's Business. Work amidst
tion of
the Sick, the Sad, and the Sorrowing. 8vo, 2s. 6d.
Cheaper Edition.
Crown
Six
ARMSTRONG,
Lectures,
Richard A., ^.^. Latter-Day Teachers. Small crown 8vo, 2s. 6d.
Arthur. Social Politics. Demy 8vo, 14^. Free Land. Second Edition. Crown 8vo, 6s. AUBERTIN, y. y.K Flight to Mexico. With Seven full-page Illustrations and a Railway Map of IVIexico. Crown 8vo, 7^'. 6d.
ARNOLD,
BADGER,
In which
Sentences are
George Bercy, D.C.L.K.n English- Arabic Lexicon. the equivalent for English Words and Idiomatic rendered into literary and colloquial Arabic.
^s.
BAGEHOT,
Third Edition.
Seventh
Crown
6d,
Lombard
Edition.
Street.
A Description of the
Svo,
Js.
Money Market.
Crown
6d.
Some
and Topics
connected
BAGENAL,
BAGOT,
Philip
C.E.
Accidents
in Mines:
their
Causes and
Crown Svo, 6s. The Principles of Colliery Ventilation. Second Edition, Crown Svo, 5^-. greatly enlarged. BAKER, Sir Sherston, Bart. Halleck's International Law; or.
Prevention.
Rules Regulating the Intercourse of States in Peace and War. New Edition, revised, with Notes and Cases. 2 vols. Demy
Svo, i%s.
to Quarantine.
Crown
BALDWIN,
Capt.
y.
of
BALLIN, Ada
With Crown Svo, 7^-. 6d. BARCLA V, Edgar.Monntain Life in Algeria. With numerous Illustrations by Photogravure. Crown 4to, i6s.
BARLOW,
BARNES,
yames H.-TYve
Ultimatum
Svo, cloth, 6s.
of
Pessimism.
An
Ethical Study.
Demy
Outline
of
English
Speechcraft.
A
BA RNES,
William, continued.
List of
BARTLEY,
Life.
G. C. 71 Domestic
Economy:
suitable
Every-Day
for children
of all ages.
BAUR,
Ph.K
Philological Introduction to
Greek and Latin for Students. Translated and adapted from the German, by C. Kegan Paul, M.A., and E. D.
Stone, M.A.
Second Edition.
Crown
8vo,
6^.
BAYNES,
Canon R. H.K% the Communion Time. A Manual for Holy Communion. W^ith a preface by the Right Rev. is, 6d. the Lord Bishop of Derry and Raphoe.
Rev.
BELLA RS,
Rev. JF. The Testimony of Conscience to the Truth and Divine Origin of the Christian Revela-
tion.
3^. 6d.
BELLINGHAM,
Baron
Henry, il/. P. Social Aspects of Catholicism and Protestantism in their Civil Bearing upon Nations, Translated and adapted from the French of M. le
\Vith a preface by His Eminence de Haulleville. Second and Cheaper Edition. Crown Svo, Cardinal Manning.
3^. dd.
BENN,
BENT,
Alfred
^K The Greek
Philosophers.
2 vols.
Demy
Svo,
cloth, 28^.
J.
Theodore.
Genoa
With
How
the Republic
Rose and
Fell,
With 18
Illustrations.
BLOOMFIELD,
BLUNT,
The
Demy Svo, \Zs. Lady. Reminiscences of Court and Dipthree portraits and six illustrations by Demy Svo, cloth, 28^, 2 vols.
lomatic Life.
the Author.
Third edition.
Sermons.
Svo, 6j.
The Ven. Archdeacon. The Divine Patriot, and other Preached in Scarborough and in Cannes. Crown
BLUNT, Wilfred S. The Future of Islam. Crov/n Svo, 6s. BONWICK, J., i^i?, (7,5, Pyramid Facts and Fancies.
Svo,
55-.
Crown
BOUVERIE-PUSEY,
An
Crown
Svo,
5^.
S.
E.
BOWEN,
Scriools,
\s.
English
Grammar for
Beginners.
Fcap. Svo,
&
Go's Publications.
^.History of the Holy Eucharist in 2 vols. Demy 8vo, iS^. BRODRICK, the Hon. G. C Political Studies. Demy 8vo, 14^. BROOKE, Rev. S. A. 'Lite and I-etters of the Late Rev. F. W.
Great Britain.
Robertson, M.A.
I.
Edited by.
Uniform with
Portrait.
7^^.
Robertson's
6d.
Sermons.
2 vols.
^Yith
Steel
Library Edition. With Portrait. 8vo, I2s. In i vol., 8vo, 6s. Popular Edition. III.
II.
The
Spirit
Sermons.
A New
^s. 6d.
Volume
of
The Fight
Fifth Edition.
Crown
Sermons.
8vo, 5j.
First Series.
Crown
Crown
Sermons.
8vo,
5j.
Second
G.,
Series.
BROOKE, W.
Act.
8vo,
With a
3J. 6d.
Statement of
revised
its
Provisions,
Notes,
and Index.
Third
Edition,
and corrected.
Crown
Six Privy Council Judgments. 1850-72. Third Edition, Crown 8vo, g^.
Annotated by.
Its
BROWN,
Rev. J. Baldwin,
B.A.The Higher
Life.
Reality,
Experience, and Destiny. Fifth Edition. Crown 8vo, 5^. Doctrine of Annihilation in the Light of the Gospel of Love. Five Discourses. Third Edition. Crown Svo, 2^. 6d. The Christian Policy of Life. A Book for Young Men of Third Edition. Crown 8vo, 3^. 6d, Business. BROWN, y. Croumbie, LL.D. Reboisement in France", or,
Records of the Replanting of the Alps, the Cevennes, and the Demy 8vo, \2s. 6d. Pyrenees with Trees, Herbage, and Bush.
BROWN,
The Hydrology of Southern Africa. Demy Svo, \os. 6d. S. Borton, B.A.~The Fire Baptism of all Flesh
the Svo, 6s,
or,
Coming
CroM-n
BROWNE,
W. R.
The
With a Preface by
BURCKHARDT,
Renaissance in Italy.
Middiemore.
2 vols.
I
A
Mrs. Richard. Tiie
List of
BURTON,
Photographs,
Cheaper Edition
one volume.
6d.
BUSBECQ,
Ogier Ghiselin a^^. His Life and Letters. By Charles Thornton Forster, M.A., and F. H. Blackburne Daniell, M.A. 2 vols. With Frontispieces. Demy 8vo, 245'. CARPENTER, Dr. Phillip P. His Life and Work. Edited Ijy
his brother, Russell
Lant Carpenter.
8vo,
'js.
With
Portrait
and Vignettes.
Second Edition.
Crown
6d.
CARPENTER,
LL.D., M.D., F.R.S., ^/r.The Principles of Mental Physiology. With their Applications to the Training and Discipline of the Mind, and the Study of its Morbid
IF. B.,
Conditions.
Illustrated.
Sixth Edition.
8vo, \2s.
CERVANTES. TYie Ingenious Knight Don Quixote de la Mancha. A New Translation from the Originals of 1605 and
1608.
By A.
J.
3 vols.
Demy 8vo,
42^-.
CHEYNE,
Translated Rev. T. A'. The Prophecies of Isaiah. Second Edition. with Critical Notes and Dissertations. 2 vols. Demy 8vo, 25J.
CLAIRA UT.
Elements
With 145
of
Geometry.
Crown
Translated
by
Dr.
Kaines.
Figures.
CLAYDEN,
P. 7F. England under Lord Beaconsfield. The Pohtical History of the Last Six Years, from the end of 1873 to Second Edition, with Lidex and conthe beginning of 18S0. Demy 8vo, 16^. tinuation to March, 1S80.
of the
World
Sixth Edition.
Crown
The Childhood
of Religions.
the Birth and Growth of Myths and Legends. Crown Svo, 5^. li'. 6d. Special Edition for Schools.
Ninth Thousand,
Jesus of Nazareth. With a brief sketch of Jewish History to the Time of His Birth. Small crown 8vo, 65. COGHLAN, y. Cole, D.D.The Modern Pharisee and other Sermons. Edited by the Very Rev. H. H. Dickinson, D.D., Dean of Chapel Royal, Dublin. New and Cheaper Edition. Crown Svo, "js. 6d.
COLERIDGE,
St.
With an InFairy Tale. .Sara. Phantasmion. troductory Preface, by the Right Hon. Lord Coleridge, of Ottery New Edition. Illustrated. Crown 8vo, 7 J. dd. Mary.
Memoir and
Daughter.
is.bd.
Letters of Sara Coleridge. Edited by her With Index. Cheap Edition. With one Portrait.
_.^
&
Co.'s Publications.
Being Illustrations from the Old and New Collects Exemplified. Testaments of the Collects for the Sundays after Trinity. By the Author of " A Commentary on the Epistles and Gospels." Edited by the Rev. Joseph Jackson. Crown 8vo, <,s.
Life.
CONNELL,
and Danger
in India.
Small
COOKE, Prof. J. P. Scientific Culture. Crown 8vo, \s. COOPER, H. y.The Art of Furnishing on Rational and .Esthetic Principles. New and Cheaper Edition. Fcap.
8vo,
is.
6d.
CORFIELD, Prof., ^/.Z?. Health. Crown 8vo, 6s. CORY, William. K Guide to Modern English History. Part I. MDCCCXV.-MDCCCXXX. Demy Svo, ^s. Part II.
MDCCCXXX.-MDCCCXXXV.,
Arthnr.'Vlcie
155-.
CORY,
Col.
Eastern Menace.
Crown
Svo,
"js.
6d.
COTTERILL,
Crown
H.
B.Kxi Introduction
to the
Study
of Poetry.
Mill.
COURTNEY,
Crown
W.
Svo,
Z.The Metaphysics
5^.
of
John Stuart
bd.
COX,
Bart.K History of Greece from the Earliest Period to the end of the Persian War.
Demy
the
Svo,
36j'.
of
Aryan
Nations.
New
Edition.
General History of Greece from the Earliest Period to the Death of Alexander the Great, with a sketch of
the subsequent History to the Crown Svo, ^s, 6d.
present
time.
New
Edition.
Tales of Ancient Greece. New Edition. Small crown Svo, 6s. School History of Greece. New Edition. With Maps. Fcap.
Svo,
3^-.
6d.
The Great Persian "War from the History of Herodotus. 6d. New Edition. Fcap. Svo, A Manual of Mythology in the form of Question and Answer. New Edition. Fcap. Svo, 3^,
"^s.
An Introduction
COX,
Myth-
Popular
Edition, in
i
Romances
vol.
Crown
Svo, 6s.
or. Is Christ the
COX,
Rev.
Samuel.SsilvSLlor
Seventh Edition,
Mundi
Crown
Saviour of all
Men ?
Svo,
5^'.
A
COX,
Rev. Samuel.
List of
continued.
on the Book of Job.
:
The Genesis
Demy
of Evil, and other Sermons, mainly expository. Second Edition. Crown 8vo, ds,
A Commentary
Svo, \^s.
With a
Translation.
CRAUFURD, A. ^.Seeking for Light Sermons. Crown Svo, 5^. CRAVEN, Mrs.K Year's Meditations. Crown Svo, ^s. CRAWFURD, (9jct/a/</. Portugal, Old and New. With Illustrations and Maps. New and Cheaper Edition. Crown Svo, bs.
CROZIER, John
Crown
Cyclopsedi'a of W. Cox,
I)
Beattie,
Svo, 6s.
Common
Bart., RI.A.
'js.
With 500
6d.
ALTON,
Rev.
Cadets.
Edition.
John Ncalc, M.A., /?.A^. Sermons to Preached on board H.M.S. "Britannia." Small crown Svo, 3^'. 6d.
Naval
Second
DAVIDSON,
Rev. Samuel, D.D., LL.D.T\iQ New Testament, translated from the Latest Greek Text of Tischendorf A New and thoroughly revised Edition. Post Svo, 105. 6d. Canon of the Bible Its Formation, History, and Fluctuations.
.
:
55.
The Doctrine
of Last Things contained in the New Testament compared with the Notions of the Jews and the Statements Small crown Svo, cloth, 3J-. dd. of Church Creeds.
Frieze, and other Essays.
Essays on
DA VIES,
and Morality.
Crown
Svo,
"js.
6d,
DAWSON,
Eighth Edition.
Third Edition.
The
Edited
by George St. Clair. Second Edition. Crown Svo, 6s, Three Books of God Nature, History, and Scripture.
St. Clair.
Crown
DE REDCLIFFE,
DESPREZ,
am
;
a Christian ?
Apocalypse
Phillip S., B.D. "Daniel and John of the Old and that of the New Testament.
or, the
Demy
Svo, I2s,
&
Go's Publications.
without God. Conferences by. Rev. Translated from the French by Rosa Corder. Crown 8vo,
cloth, 5^.
DOWDEN,
a Critical Study of
his
8vo, I2s.
Edition.
D RE WRY,
DREWRY,
G. 0.,
of
the Stomach.
G. 0.,
;
Fcap. 8vo,
2s. 6d,
Platter
Edition.
its
Effects.
New
and Cheaper
DUFFIELD,
A. tators.
7. Don Quixote
With
all.
his Critics
and CommenMiguel db
and end q
DU MONCEL,
EDGE IVOR T/f,
7s. 6d.
the Phonograph.
Small crown 8vo,
F.
5^.
Second Edition.
KMathematical
Psychics.
EDIS,
Robert IV., F.S.A., ^/.r. Decoration and Furniture of Houses a Series of Cantor Lectures, delivered before the Society of Arts, 1880. Amplified and Enlarged. With 29 Full-page Illustrations and numerous Sketches. Second Edition, Square 8vo, \2s. 6d.
Town
its
Present
ProSvo,
Form.
vincial 2s. 6d.
Common
Crown
Education Library.
Magnus :~
An
Introduction to the History of Educational Theories. By Oscar Browning, M.A. Second Edition.
3^. 6d.
:
his Life
3J. 6d.
By
Laurie, A.M.
By
Mahaffy, M.A.
Austin
Selected and
6s.
;
Edited by
6d.
Caldecott.
ELSDALE,
Henry.
Crown
Svo,
^s.
10
List of
ELYOT,
Sir Thomas. T\ve Bolie named the Gouernour. Edited from the First Edition of 1531 by Henry Herbert Stephen
Croft, M.A., Barrister-at-Law. With Portraits of Sir Thomas and Lady Elyot, copied by permission of her Majesty from Holbein's Original Drawings at Windsor Castle. 2 vols. Fcap. 4to,
50J-.
Eranus.
Edited by F.
8vo, 2S.
Collection of Exercises in the Alcaic and Sapphic Metres. W. CORNISH, Assistant Master at Eton. Crown
of
told
to
Illustrations.
A Book
of
Common
hold Use,
Second Edition,
Crown
8vo,
4^'.
6d.
In Three Parts.
Fcap, Svo,
is.
6J.
*j* Parts
I.
and
II.
Two
Picture Maps,
"Fan Kwae"
By an
old
now ready. at Canton before Treaty Days 1825-1844. Resident. With frontisiDiece. Crown Svo, cloth, 5^.
FELKIN,
yl/. Technical Education in a Saxon Town. Published for the City and Guilds of London Institute for the Advancement of Technical Education. Demy 8vo, 2s.
IT. IF.
FLOREDICE,
the
Mere
Irish.
Small
Demy
FORMS Y,
Ancient and its Connection Rev. Henry. An Outline of the History of the City from its First Foundation dowm to the Erection of With numerous Illustrations the Chair of St. Peter, A.D. 42-47, of Ancient Monuments, Sculpture, and Coinage, and of the Royal 4to, cloth extra, Antiquities of the Christian Catacombs, 2 los, ; roxburgh half-morocco, 2 12s. 6d.
Rome
:
ERASER, Z?^;/a:/(/. Exchange Tables of Sterling and Indian Rupee Currency, upon a new and extended system, embracing
Values from
One Farthing
to
and
2s, 2,d.
gd, to
FRISJVELL,
y.
Self.
Essays for
Home
Life.
CroNvn Svo,
&
Go's Publications.
Samuel R., and J. BASS MULLINGER, M.A. Introduction to the Study of English History. Large Crown 8vo, <js. GARDNER, Dorsey.QyxaXrQ Bras, Ligny, and "Waterloo. A Narrative of the Campaign in Belgium, 1815. With Maps and
Plans.
Demy
8vo,
i6j-.
:
GARDNER,
GEDDES,
The Means
Fourth
Life after
enlarged.
Middle Age.
4^.
Edition,
yatnes.TLislovy of the Administration of John de 'Witt, Grand Pensionary of Holland. Vol. I. 1623-1654. With
Portrait.
Demy
Svo, 15^.
GENNA,
GEORGE,
^.
Irresponsible
Philanthropists.
Henry. Progress and Poverty an Inquiry into the Causes of Industrial Depressions, and of Increase of Want with The Remedy. Second Edition. Increase of Wealth. Post Sewed, price 6d. Svo, 7^. 6d. Also a cheap edition.
:
GILBERT,
^/;x
Autobiography
and several
Wood
Engravings.
Crown
2>xu>, "js.
GLOVER, K,
yl/.^. Exempla Latina. A First Construing Book, with Short Notes, Lexicon, and an Introduction to the Analysis of Sentences. Fcap. Svo, 2s.
GODWIN,
by C. Kegan Paul.
Crown
Svo,
7^. 6</.
GOLDSMID,
With
his
Portrait.
Sir Francis Henry, Bart., Q.C., J/. P. Second Edition, revised. Crown Svo, 6s,
Memoir
of.
GOODENOUGH,
Engraved
Commodore J. (7. Edited Letters and Journals. Portrait. Square Svo, 5^.
Memoir
by
his
*^* Also a Library Edition with Maps, Woodcuts, and Steel Engraved Portrait. Square post Svo, 14^'.
;^F. Studies in the Literature of Northern With a Frontispiece designed and etched by Alma New and cheaper edition. Large crown Svo, 6s.
GOULD,
Rev. S. Baring, M.A.TYie Vicar of the Rev. R. S. Hawker. With Portrait. Edition, revised. Square post Svo, los. 6d,
Morwenstow
Memoir of
Third
Past.
New
6d.
GOIVAN, Major
Waiter
E.A.
IvanofT's Russian
Grammar.
(i6th Edition.) Translated, enlarged, and arranged for use of Students of the Russian Language. Demy Svo, 6s,
12
A
William,
Social.
List of
GRAHAM,
and
M.A.
Demy
GRIFFITH,
Thomas, A. A/. The Gospel of the Divine Life Study of the Fourth Evangelist. Demy 8vo, 14^.
GRIMLEY,
GRiJNER,
the Spiritual
Rev. N., 71/..4. Tremadoc Sermons, chiefly on Body, the Unseen ^?Vorld, and the Divine Humanity. Third Edition. Crown 8vo, 6s.
Studies of Blast Furnace Phenomena. ^/.Z. Translated by L. D. B. Gordon, F.R.S.E., F.G.S. Demy Svo,
Rev. Archer.
GURNE y.
"Words of
Mission
of Instruction
and Suggestion.
IIAECKEL,
Translation Prof. Ernst. Tho. History of Creation. With revised by Professor E. Ray Lankester, M.A., F.R.S. Coloured Plates and Genealogical Trees of the various groups Edition. Plants Second Post of both and Animals. 2 vols. Svo, 32J.
The History
Illustrations.
of the Evolution of
2 vols.
Man.
With numerous
Prefatory Note
Freedom
With a
5^.
Half-Crown Series
Sister
Dora
the late
a Biography.
True "Words
By
for
Brave
Men
Sailors.
Charles Kingsley. An Inland "Voyage. By R. L, Stevenson. Travels with a Donkey. By R. L. Stevenson. A Nook, in the Apennines. By Leader Scott. Notes of Travel being Extracts from the Journals of Count VoN Moltke. Letters from Russia. By Count Von Moltke. English Sonnets. Collected and Arranged by J. Dennis. Lyrics of Love. From Shakespeare to Tennyson, Selected and Arranged by W. D. Adams. London Lyrics. By F. Locker. Home Songs for Quiet Hours. By the Rev. Canon R. II.
:
Baynes.
HALLECK^S
Demy
International ; or. Rules Regulating the Intercourse of States in Peace and War. A New Edition, revised, with Notes and Cases by Sir Sherston Baker, Bart. 2 vols.
,
Law
Svo, 38^,
HARTINGTON,
The Right Hon. the Marquis of, iJ/./". Election Speeches in 1879 and 1880. With Address to the Electors of North-East Lancashire, Crown Svo, y. 6d.
&
Go's Ptihlications.
13
MaterialismThe Rev. H. R., iJ/.^. Current Coin. Drunkenness Pauperism Emotion Recreation Devil Crime Edition. Crown 8vo, 55-. The Sabbath. Fourth and Cheaper
Arrows
8vo,
5j.
in the Air.
Crown
Speech in Season. Fifth and Cheaper Edition. Crown 8vo, ^s. Thoughts for the Times. Twelfth and Cheaper Edition.
Crown
Svo,
^s.
New
6d.
HAWKINS,
Sermons Edtvards Comerford.Spivil and Form. Crown Svo, 6^-. preached in the Parish Church of Leatherhead.
HA YES,
A. H., yunr.'^Q^f/ Colorado, and the Santa Fe Trail, With Map and 60 Illustrations. Crown Svo, 9^. HELLWALD, Baron F. Tow. The Russians in Central Asia.
Critical
Examination,
down
to
the
Present Time,
of
the
Geography and History of Central Asia. Translated by Lieut. With Map. Large post Col. Theodore Wirgman, LL.B.
Svo, \2S.
HENRY,
Edited by Matthew Philip. -DlSLVie?, and Letters of. Large crown Svo, cloth, "js. 6d.
Svo, cloth,
2s. Gd.
HIDE, Albert. TYie Age to Come. Small crown HIME, Major H. W. L., 7?.^.'Wagnerism A
;
Protest.
Crown
of the Physician. To which is added Law of Human Life, and on the Relations between Organic and Inorganic "Worlds. Second Edition. Crown Svo, 35. dd. Philosophy and Religion. Selections from the MSS. of the late James Hinton. Edited by Caroline Haddon. Crown
Svo,
55.
By Various Writers. Willi Third and Cheaper Edition. Crown Svo, ^s.
Witl-
^10
loj-.
The Questions
Post Svo,
1 2 J.
of
dd.
Illustrations.
vols.
The Mystery of Pain. New Edition. Life and Letters. Edited by Ellice
duction by Sir W. W. Steel by C. H, Jeens.
Fcap. Svo,
i.r.
Gull,
Bait.,
Fourth Edition.
Crown
14
List of
:
HOOPER,
Mary.J^ilXlQ Dinners Ho-w to Serve them -with Elegance and Economy. Seventeenth Edition. Crown
Svo, 2s. Gd.
Cookery for Invalids, Persons of Delicate Digestion, and Children. Third Edition. Crown Svo, 2s. 6d.
Every-Day Meals.
for
Svo,
Being Economical and Wholesome Recipes and upper. Fifth Edition. Crown
of James Hinton, with an Introduction by Sir W. "W. Gull, Bart., and Portrait engraved on Steel by C. H. Jeens. Fourth Edition. Crown Svo, %s. 6d.
Fourth edition.
Crown
6d.
HORNER,
Revised Edition.
trations.
Crown
Svo.
Limp
With
Illus-
Vol. I. Churches, Streets, and Palaces. Vol. II. Public Galleries and Museums.
\os. 6d.
5^.
of Electricity.
With 170
Small
Svo,
By a Layman.
crown Svo,
3^. 6d.
HUGHES,
3^.
Henjy.llciQ
Redemption
of the "World.
Crown
6d
HULL, Edmund
With a Medical C. P. The European in India. Guide for Anglo-Indians. By R. S. Mair, M.D., F.R.C.S.E. Third Edition, Revised and Corrected. Post Svo, 6^.
Rev. E.,
HUNTINGFORD,
HUTTON,
Arthur, and Value in relation to the Catholic Priesthood. With a Preface by His Eminence Cardinal Newman. Demy Svo, 14J.
:
D.C.L. The Apocalypse. With a Demy Svo, gs. M.A.The Anglican Ministry Its Nature
HUTTON,
Rev. C. F. Unconscious Testimony ; or, the Silent Witness of the Hebrew to the Truth of the Historical Scriptures.
Svo, cloth, 2s. 6d.
Crown
JENKINS, E., and RAYMOND, J. The Architect's Legal Handbook. Third Edition, Revised. Crown Svo, 6s. JENKINS, Rev. R. C, I\T. A. The Privilege of Peter, and the
Claims of the Roman Church confronted with the Scriptures, the Councils, and the Testimony of the Popes themselves. Fcap. Svo, 3^. 6d.
JERVIS,
The Galilean Church and the Rev. W. Henley. Revolution. A Sequel to the History of the Church of
from the Concordat of Bologna
iS.v.
France,
to
the
Revolution,
Demy
Svo,
&
Go's Publications.
15
JOEL, L.A Consul's Manual and Shipowner's and Shipmaster's Practical Guide in their Transactions Abroad. With Definitions of Nautical, Mercantile, and Legal
Terms
;
French,
German, Italian, and Spanish ; Tables of the Money, Weights, and Measures of the Principal Commercial Nations and their Equivalents in British Standards j and Forms of Consular and
Notarial Acts,
Demy
8vo, 12s.
JOHNSTONE,
JOLLY,
C.
K,
yJ/.^. Historical
some of the
less
William,
Scotch
Weaver and
JONCOURT, Madame
Svo, 3J.
(id.
Crown
With 30
JONES, JONES,
C.
Illustrations.
Lucy.
Sixty-five Receipts
being Three Hundied and : approved by experience. Crown Svo, 7.s. 6d.
JOYCE,
P. W., LL.D., etc. Old. Celtic from the Gaelic. Crown Svo, ^s. 6d.
J.
Romances.
Translated
JOYNES,
of a Tourist in Ireland.
2s.
Second
6d.
its
KAUFMANN,
and
its
Rev.
M, ^.^. Socialism
Crown
Svo,
^s.
its
Nature,
7^. 6d.
Dangers,
Remedies considered.
;
Svo,
Utopias
More
or,
Sir
Thomas
to
Karl Marx.
Crown
KA Y,
Joseph. Tvee Trade in Land. Edited by his Widow. With Preface by the Right Hon. John Bright, M.P. Sixth Edition.
Crown
Svo,
5^.
Christ.
Parchment
The Red Line Edition, 6^. ; or vellum, ^s. 6d. The Cabinet Edition, small Svo, edges, 2s. 6d. The Miniature cloth limp, is. ; cloth boards, red edges, is. 6d. Edition, red edges, 32mo, is.
*^*
All the above Editions
may be had
KENT,
C Corona
Oblata.
4to, 15J.
De
Catholica ad Petri successoris Pedes Summi Pontificis Leonis XIII. AsIn Quinquaginta Linguis.
sumptione Epigramma.
Fcap.
KERNER,
Dr.
List of
KETTLE WELL, Rev. ^.Thomas a Kempis and the Brothers of Common Life. 2 vols. With Frontispieces. Demy 8vo,
30J.
KIDD,
Laws
KINAHAN,
G. Henry, JILR.LA.The Geology of Ireland, with nubierous Illustrations and a Geological Map of Ireland. Square 8vo, iSs.
KTNGSFORD,
KINGSLEY,
Anna,
M.D.rhe
Perfect
^Way
in
Diet.
A
of
Treatise advocating a Return to the Natural and Ancient our Race. Small crown 8vo, 2^.
Food
Charles, il/.^. Letters and Memories of his Life. Edited by his Wife. With two Steel Engraved Portraits, and Wood. Eleventh Cabinet Edition. 2 vols. Crown
All Saints' Day, and other Sermons. Edited by the Rev. W. Harrison. Third Edition. Crown 8vo, ^s. 6d. True ^Words for Brave Men. A Book for Soldiers' and Sailors' Libraries. Eighth Edition. Crown 8vo, 2s. 6(1.
KNIGHT,
Professor
and
Literature.
6d.
KNOX,
Alexander
Algeria.
^. The
New
7^. ()d.
Playground
edition.
New
and cheaper
LA URIE,
LEE,
S.
5.The Training
Crown
8vo,
Papers.
Other World
Edition,
",
or.
Glimpses of the
8vo, 15^.
A New
Crown
LEWIS, Edward
Dillon.
Law
and
Procedure.
Demy
LINDSA V, W. Lauder, M.D. Mind in the Lower Animals in Health and Disease. 2 vols. Demy 8vo, 32^, Vol. II. Mind in Disease. Vol. I. Mind in Health.
LLOYD,
Waller. The
Hope
of the
5^-.
World An
:
:
Essay on Universal
Redemption.
Crown
8vo,
LONSDALE,
LORIMER,
land.
Margarel. Sister
Dora
a Biography.
With
Portrait.
Twenty-fifth Edition.
Peter,
Crown
D.D.
John
and
Knox and
and
the Church of
Eng-
His
Work
in her Pulpit,
Parties.
Liturg}', Articles,
Demy
upon her
Victor Lechler.
New
his English Precursors. By Gerhard Translated from the German, with additional and Cheaper Edition. Demy 8vo, \os, 6d.
&
Co.^s Ptihlications.
17
Teresa."
3^. 6d,
LOWDER,
Charles. A
Biography.
By
the Author of
"
St.
New and Cheaper Edition. Crown 8vo. With Portrait. MACHIAVELLI, Niccoli. The Prince. Translated from the
by N. H. T.
bevelled boards, 6j.
Italian
MACKENZIE,
Supper,
Alexander. Ho-w India is Governed. Being an Account of England's work in India. Small crown 8vo, 2s.
its
MACNAUGHT,
History.
Rev. >/z. Coena Domini : An Essay on the Lord's Primitive Institution, Apostolic Uses, and Subsequent
Demy
Svo,
I4J'.
MAGNUS,
MAIR,
R.
Mrs. About the Jews since Bible Times. From the Small crown Svo, ds. Babylonian Exile till the English Exodus.
S.,
Indians. Being a Compendium of Advice to Europeans in India, relating to the Preservation and Regulation of Health. With a Supplement on the Management of Children in India. Second Edition. Crown Svo, limp cloth, 3^-. 6d.
MANNING,
His Eminence
Cardinal. Tlcie
Vatican Council.
Crown
Svo,
5^.
Many Voices. Crown Svo, cloth extra, red edges, 6s, MARKHAM, Capt. Albert Hastings, R.N.TYio. Great Frozen Sea A Personal Narrative of the Voyage of the Alert during the Arctic
:
Expedition of 1875-6. With 6 Full-page Illustrations, 2 Maps, and 27 Woodcuts. Fifth and Cheaper Edition. Crown Svo, 6j-.
Polar Reconnaissance
to
Novaya Zemlya
4^. 6d.
in 1879.
;
With 10
Demy Svo,
i6j-.
or,
Scripture
Small
MA R TINEA U,
McGRATH,
Edition.
on Morals.
Small
crown 8vo,
Terence. '^'\c^^xvQ?,
from Ireland.
New
and Cheaper
Crown
Svo, 2s.
MEREDITH,
iJ/.y^. Theotokos, the for "Woman. Dedicated, by permission, to Lady Agnes Wood. Revised by the Venerable Archdeacon Denison. 32mo, limp cloth, \s. 6d.
Example
The Church
7^. 6d.
MILNE, James.-HaiAes
Money
2s. id,
of Exchange for the Conversion of Sterling into Indian and Ceylon Currency, at Rates from is. 8d. to per Rupee. Second Edition. Demy Svo, 2 zs.
MINCHIN,
the
Autumn
: Notes of a J. (7. Bulgaria since the of 1879. Small crown Svo, 3^. 6(f.
War
Tour
in
A
St: George 'nsAMTQ
Natural Philosophy.
List of
MIVART,
and Thought An
:
Introduction to a
Demy
MOCKLER,
it is
Grammar of the Baloochee Language, as E. spoken in Makran (Ancient Gedrosia), in the Persia-Arabic and Roman characters. Fcap. 8vo, 5^.
of
Rev. W. Nassau, M.A.HisXovy of the Church England from 1660. Large crown 8vo, 7j. 6d. MORELL, J. 7?. Euclid Simplified in Method and Language.
MOLESWORTH,
Being a Manual of Geometry. Compiled from the most important French Works, approved by the University of Paris and the Fcap. 8vo, 2.s. 6d.
MORSE,
E.
S.,
Illustrations.
R/i.D.'First Book of Zoology. With numerous New and Cheaper Edition. Crown 8vo, 2s. 6d.
;
MURPHY,
considered in
or, the Papacy John Nicholas. TYie Chair of Peter its Institution, Development, and Organization, and
in the Benefits
which
for
on Mankind.
Demy
it
has conferred
MUNRO,
Selections
Writings.
y. H.,
Major-Gen. Sir Thomas, Bart., K.C.B., Governor of Madras. from his Minutes and other Official Edited, with an Introductory Memoir, by Sir Alexander Arbuthnot, K.C.S.I., CLE. 2 vols. Demy 8vo, 30^-.
NELSON,
of the
Scientific
Study
NEWMAN,
A
Being Selections from his various Works. Arranged with of. Sixth Edition. With Portrait. the Author's personal Approval. Cro^vn 8vo, bs. *#* Portrait of Cardinal Newman, mounted for framing, can be had, 2s. 6d.
New
"Werther.
By Loki.
Its
2s.
6d.
to the Fragments Translated and Annotated with a and Internal Evidence relating
Demy
A New Commentary
on
the
Gospel according to
8vo,
3^. 6d.
NICOLS, Arthur, F.G.S., 7^./?. a ^.Chapters from the Physical History of the Earth an Introduction to Geology and
Palceontology.
With numerous
Illustrations.
Crown
I.
8vo, 5j.
NOPS,
Marianne. Class Lessons on Euclid. Part Crown 8vo, the First two Books of the Elements.
containing
Notes on
St. Paul's Epistle to the Galatians. For Readers of the Authorised Version or the Original Greek. Demy 8vo, 2J. 6d.
&
Co*s Publications.
19
Primer. New Edition in Three Parts. Crown 8vo, each *** The Three Parts can also be had bound together, 3J.
OATES,
Frank, F.R.G.S.liA^XdihelQ Land and the Victoria Falls. A Naturalist's Wanderings in the Interior of South
Edited by C. G. Gates, B.A. Africa. Demy 8vo, 2\s. tions and 4 Maps.
With numerous
Illustra-
OGLE,
W., M.D., F.R.C.P.Kx\?,\oX\& on the Parts of Animals. Royal 8vo, \2s. 6d. Translated, with Introduction and Notes. Kathlem. Frederic Ozanam, Professor of the Sorbonne His Life and Work. Second Edition. Crown 8vo, 7^. dd.
5^.
O'MEARA,
Small
OSBORNE,
Rev.
W.
New
cloth, 5^.
OTTLEY,
H. Bickersteth.i:\i& Great
Dilemma.
Witness or His
Own
3^-.
Accuser.
6d.
Six Lectures.
Crown
Svo, cloth,
Our Public Schools Eton, Harrow, Winchester, Rugby, Westminster, Marlborough, The Charterhouse,
Crown
Svo, 6j.
OWEN, OWEN,
",
or.
Book
of
With Notes,
Critical, Exegetical,
and
Historical.
Demy
Svo, \%s.
An
Including an
OXENHAM,
Rev. F. Nutcombe.'VJ'hsLl is the Truth as to Everlasting Punishment. Part II. Being an Historical Inquiry into the Witness and Weight of certain Anti-Origenist Councils.
Crown
one volume,
'js.
Protestantism,
Anglicanism.
Being a Layman's View of some questions of the Day. Together with Remarks on Dr. Littledale's "Plain Reasons against join-
PALMER,
the
late
1840-1841.
Rome." Crown Svo, cloth, y. 6d. William. Notes of a Visit to Russia in Selected and arranged by John H. Cardinal
Newman,
with portrait.
Crown
Svo, cloth,
Sj-.
6d.
Parchment Library.
French Lyrics.
Choicely Printed on hand-made paper, limp parchment antique, 6s. ; vellum, 'js. 6d. each volume.
20
List of
Parchment Library. continued. The Fables of Mr. John Gay. With Memoir
DoBSON, and an etched by Sir Godfrey Kjieller.
portrait from
in Verse for the Sundays and The Christian Year. Holy Days throughout the Year. With Miniature Portrait of the Rev. J. Keble, after a Drawing by G, Richmond, R.A.
Shakspere's Works.
Volumes.
Now
publishing
in
Twelve
Monthly
Q. Horati Flacci Opera. Edited by F. A. Cornish, Assistant Master at Eton. With a Frontispiece after a design by L. Alma Tadema, etched by Leopold Lowenstam.
Edgar Allan Poe's Poems. With an Essay on his Poetry by Andrew Lang, and a Frontispiece by Linley Sambourne. Shakspere's Sonnets. Edited by Edward Dowden. With a
Frontispiece etched by Leopold Lowenstam, after the Death Mask.
English Odes.
Selected by Edmund W. Gosse. With Frontispiece on India paper by Hamo Thornycroft, A.R.A.
By Thomas
A.
Kempis.
With
Design by
W.
B. Richmond.
:
Tennyson's The Princess a Medley, With a Miniature Frontispiece by H. M. Paget, and a Tailpiece in Outline by
Gordon Browne.
Poems
Lady
Dedicated to Selected from Percy Bysshe Shelley. : With a Preface by Richard Garnett and_ a Shelley. Miniature Frontispiece.
by Le Rat,
after
Cameron.
Paraclete: An Essay on the Personality and Ministry of the Holy Ghost, with some reference to current Second Edition. Demy 8vo, I2s,
Capt.
PARR,
Zulu Wars
crown 8vo,
H. Hallain, C.M.G.K Sketch of the Kafir and Guadana to Isandhlwana. With Maps. Small
:
5^.
PARSLOE,
Sketches, Historical and Joseph. OvlT Railways. With Practical Information as to Fares and Rates, Descriptive. Crown 8vo, 6s, etc., and a Chapter on Railway Reform.
&
Go's Publicatmis.
21
With Nineteen
Mark. The Renaissance of Art in France. Steel Engravings. 2 vols. Demy 8vo, 32^-.
Second Edition.
PEARSON,
RENRICE,
and Women.
Living. Crown
Book
5^.
for
Young RIcn
8vo,
Maj.
J.,
K.O-ran.
PESCHEL,
PETERS,
Oscar. Th.^ Races of and their Geographical Distribution. Large crown 8vo, 9^-.
Dr.
Man
F.
Trans-
lated by.
(id.
PLAYFAIR,
Photographs, Maps,
etc.
Royal 4to
cloth,
^3
3^-.
POLLOCK,
Frederick. S^inoza.i
his
Life
and Philosophy.
Delivered at the
5^,
Kindred Literatures.
Small crown Svo,
5J.
PRICE, Prof. Boiiamy. Currency and Banking. Crown Svo, 6j. Chapters on Practical Political Economy. Being the Substance
of Lectures
delivered
New and Cheaper Edition. Large post Svo, Proteus and Amadeus. A Correspondence. Edited by Aubrey De Vere. Crown Svo, 5^. Pulpit Commentary, The. (Old Testament Series.) Edited by the
Rev.
J. S.
ExELL and
the Rev.
Canon H. D. M. Spence.
Genesis. By the Rev. T. Whitelaw, M.A. ; with Homilies by the Very Rev. J. F. Montgomery, D.D., Rev. Prof. R. A. Redford, M.A., LL.B., Rev. F. Hastings, Rev. W. An Introduction to the Study of the Old Roberts, M.A. Testament by the Rev. Canon Farrar, D.D., F.R.S. ; and Introductions to the Pentateuch by the Right Rev. H. CoTTERILL, D.D., and Rev. T. Whitelaw, M.A. Seventh Edition.
I
vol.,
I5J-.
Exodus.
Rev,
16;.
J.
Urquhart, and
By the Rev. Canon Rawlinson. With Plomilies by Orr, Rev. D. Young, Rev. C. A. Goodhart, Rev. J. the Rev. H. T. Robjohns. Third Edition.
22
List of
Pulpit Commentary, The. contimied. Leviticus, By the Rev. Prebendary Meyrick, M.A.
and Homilies by Rev.
Prof.
With Cave, Redford, LL. B., Rev. J. A. Macdonald, Rev. W. Clarkson, Rev. S. R. Aldridge, LL.B., and Rev. McCheyne Edgar. Third Edition. 15^. Numbers. By the Rev, R. Winterbotham, LL.B. with
Introductions by the Rev. R. Collins, Rev. Professor A.
;
Homilies by the Rev. Professor W, Binnie, D.D., Rev. E. S, Prout, M.A., Rev. D, Young, Rev, J, Waite, and an IntroFourth duction by the Rev. Thomas Whitelaw, M.A.
Edition.
I5J-.
Deuteronomy.
By the Rev. W. L. Alexander, D.D. With Homilies by Rev. C. Clemance, D.D., Rev. J. Orr, B.D., Rev. R. M, Edgar, M.A., Rev, D. Davies, M.A. Second edition,
Joshua.
S.
By Rev. J. J. Lias, M.A. ; with Homilies by Rev. R. Aldridge, LL.B., Rev. R, Glover, Rev, E. De Pressens6, D.D., Rev. J. Waite, B.A., Rev. F. W. Adeney, M.A. and an Introduction by the Rev. A. Plummer, M.A., D.D. Fourth Edition, 12s, bd. Judges and Ruth. By the Right Rev. Lord A. C. Hervey, D.D., and Rev. J, Morrison, D.D. ; with Homilies by Rev, A, F, Muir, M.A., Rev. W. F. Adeney, M.A., Rev. W. M, Statham, and Rev. Professor J, Thomson, M.A, Fourth
;
Edition.
1
loj'.
bd.
SamueL
by Rev.
By
Smith, D.D.
Rev. Prof.
with Homilies
Chapman, and
Rev. B. Dale.
1
Kings.
By the Rev. Joseph Hammond, LL.B. With Homilies by the Rev. E, De Pressens6, D.D., Rev. J. Waite, B.A., Rev, A. Rowland, LL.B., Rev, J. A. Macdonald, and Rev.
J.
Urquhart.
;
Third Edition.
i5j-.
Ezra, Nehemiah, and Esther. By Rev. Canon G, Rawlinson, M.A. with Homilies by Rev. Prof. J. R. Thomson, M.A., Rev. Prof. R. A. Redford, LL.B., M.A., Rev. W. S. Lewis, M.A.,
Rev,
Clarkson, B.A., Rev, F, Hastings, Rev, W. Dinwiddie, LL.B., Rev. Prof. Rowlands, B.A., Rev, G, Wood, B.A., Rev. Prof, P. C, Barker, LL.B., M.A., and the Rev, J. S.
Exell.
Fifth Edition.
I vol.,
J,
\2s. bd.
Pulpit Commentary, The. (New Testament Series.) By Very Dean Bickersteth, D.D. with Homilies St. Mark. by Rev. Prof. Thomson, M.A Rev. Prof. Given, M.A., Rev, Prof. Johnson, M.A., Rev. A, Rowland, B.A., LL.B., Rev. A. MuiR, and Rev, R. Green, 2 vols. Second Edition. 2\s, Punjaub, The, and North-"Western Frontier of India. By an Old Punjaubee. Crown 8vo, ^s.
;
Rabbi Jeshua.
An
Eastern Story.
Crown
8vo,
y.
bd.
Kcmn
Paul, Trench
&
Ca.'s Publications.
RADCLIFFE, Frank R.
RAVENSHAW,
Z
scriptions.
Illustrations,
13^- 6^-
John Henry, B.C.S.Ga^xv\ Its Ruins and InWith 44 Photographic Edited by his Widow. Royal 410, and 25 facsimiles of Inscriptions.
of Logic
:
An
is.
Essay.
Crown
Realities of the
Future
Life.
6d.
RENDELL,
8vo,
^1/. Concise Handbook of the Island of Madeira. With Plan of Funchal and Map of the Island. Fcap.
J.
\s.
6d.
REYNOLDS,
Rev. J.
The Mystery
Crown
8vo, 6j.
of Miracles,
New
and
Enlarged
Edition.
RIBOT,
77^. English Psychology. A Second Edition, Revised and Corrected Translation from the latest French Edition. Large post 8vo, gj.
Prof.
:
Heredity
Psychological Study on
its
its
Phenomena,
9^.
its
Laws,
its
Causes, and
Consequences.
ROBERTSON,
I.
The late Rev. F. W., M.A.l^iie Edited by the Rev. Stopford Brooke, M.A.
and
With
Letters
of.
Two
vols.,
Steel Portrait.
12^.
Crown
II.
8vo,
bd.
Library Edition, in
III.
A Popular
Four
Demy
i
Edition, in
Series.
vol.
Sermons.
The
Race, and other Sermons. Preached ham, Oxford, and Brighton. Large post 8vo, Is. 6d.
Human
at Chelten-
Notes on Genesis.
3x. 6d.
New
Crown
8vo,
Expository
Lectures on St. Paul's Epistles to the Corinthians. A New Edition. Small crown 8vo, 5^-.
other Literary Remains.
A New
2s.
An
Analysis of
The Education
*^*
of the Race. Translated from the German of Gotthold Ephraim Lessing. Fcap. Svo, 2s. 6d. The above Works can also be had, bound in half morocco. Portrait of the late Rev. F. W. Robertson, mounted for framing,
can be had,
2s. 6d,
Human
24
A
Mountain and
tions.
List of
RODWELL,
G. F., F.R.A.S., i^.C^", Etna : its Eruptions. With Square 8vo, gj. T. IV. H.,
ROLLESTON,
Translated from the Greek, with a Preface and Notes. crown 8vo, 3^. 6d,
Rosmini's Origin of Ideas. Translated from the Edition of the Nuovo Saggio SulP origine delle Demy 8vo, cloth. Vol. I. now ready, price i6j.
Fifth Italian
idee,
3 vols.
Author's
Life,
Thomas Davidson.
RULE,
SALTS,
Marlin,
M.J.
The
of
Archbishop
Britains.
Rev.
Alfred,
2 vols.
Life and Times of St. Anselm, Canterbury and Primate of the Demy 8vo, cloth, 21s.
ZZ.Z?.
Godparents
at
Confirmation.
Small crown
of Manchester.
SAMUEL,
SA YCE,
Sydney
Small crown
Introduction
Large post 8vo,
the
to the Science of
Language.
Scientific
vols.
25^.
Layman.
?
Old Faith
are they
Incompatible
Demy
SCOONES, IF. Baptiste.FoMT Centuries of English Letters A Selection of 350 Letters by 150 Writers, from the Period of the Second Edition. Large Paston Letters to the Present Time. crown Svo, 9 J.
SCOTT,
Robert
Second Edition.
Z^."Weather Charts and Storm 'Warnings. Crown Svo, 3^, 6d. Illustrated.
SHAKSPEARE,
Spiritual Charles. "S^a-vaX Paul at Athens. some aspects of Modern Thought. Five Sermons preached at St. Stephen's Church, Westbourne Park. With a Preface by the Rev. Canon Farrar. Crown Svo, ^s.
Christianity in relation to
SHILLITO,
Rev. Joseph.
Svo,
V/omanhood
A
Book
for
its
Duties,
and Privileges.
Young Women.
Crown
3^. dd.
SHIPLEY,
Orby, M.A.Ch.\x.vc\i Tracts: or, Studies in Modern Problems. By various Writers. 2 vols. Crown Svo, 5^-. each.
Rev.
&
Go's Publications.
25
M.A. continued.
Principles of the Faith in Relation to Sin. Topics for Thought in Times of Ketreat. Eleven Addresses delivered during a Retreat of Three Days to Persons living in the World. Demy
8vo, 12^.
SKINNER,
ties.
the late
Theology.
Arranged according
by Rev. T. T. Carter.
Sister
Demy
Augustine,
Lasaulx."
Superior of the Sisters of Charity at the St. Authorised Translation by Hans Johannis Hospital at Bonn.
Tharau, from
the
of
Amalie VON
"js.
Second Edition.
6d.
SMITH,
Edivard, M.D., LL.B., i^.i^.i". Health and Disease, as Influenced by the Daily, Seasonal, and other Cyclical Changes in A New Edition. Post Svo, "js. 6d. the Human System.
its
Tubercular Consumption in
Stages.
Second Edition.
Crown
SPEDDING,
Svo,
James. Reviews and Discussions, Literary, Political, and Historical not relating to Bacon. Demy
I2J-. 6(/.
Shakspeare and Classical Antiquity Greek and Latin Antiquity as presented in Shakspeare's Plays. Translated by Emily J. Carey. Large post Svo, \2s.
Little
ST.
BERNARD.K
top,
ifS,
Book
STEPHENS,
Case.
Judicial
Archibald John, LL.D. T:\iQ Folkestone Ritual The Substance of the Argument delivered before the Committee of the Privy Council on behalf of the Re-
spondents.
Demy
Svo, 6^.
STEVENSON,
Rev.
consists of
Fleming Stevenson. Three Parts I. For Public For Family and Private Worship. III.
W.
*^* Published in various forms and prices, the latter ranging from 2>d. to 6s. Lists and full particulars will be furnished on application
to the Publishers.
STEVENSON,
Svo,
with a Donkey
in the
Cevennes.
2s, 6d.
With
Small crown
26
A
An
Inland Voyage.
is. 6d.
List of
STEVENSON,
Crown
8vo, 6s.
STRACHEY,
R.E., F.R.S.'V\\Q.
from 1869
to 1881.
Works
of
Translated and
by
Ph.D., and A.
Greenaway,
F.I.C.
SULLY,
James,
10J-. 6i/.
i^/.^.Sensation
and
Intuition.
Demy
8vo,
Pessimism
8vo, 14J.
Second Edition,
Demy
of an Industrial Science. Second Crown 8vo, 6^. Representative Government in England. Its Faults and Second Edition.
Large crown 8vo,
6s.
TAYLOR,
Algernon.
Guienne.
Crown
THOM,
J. Hamilton. l.a.-ws of Life after the Crown 8vo, cloth, 7^. 6d. J.
Mind
or,
of Christ.
THOMSON,
TIDMAN,
TIPPLE,
Tiirnbull. Social
Problems;
into the
loj. 6d.
Laws of
An
Influence.
With Diagrams.
and
Part II.
Objections
8vo, cloth,
Silver
Money.
Answered.
Part
I. A
Third Edition.
Prayers
Sunday
Crown
Mornings
6s.
at Nor-wood.
TODHUNTER, Dr. J.K Study of Shelley. Crown Svo, TREMENHEERE, Hugh Seymour, C.B. K Manual
Principles of Government, of Ancient and Modern Times. Crown 8vo, ^s,
as set forth
Js.
New
TUKE,
Daniel Hack, M.D., /^.i^.C.P. Chapters in the History of the Insane in the British Isles. With 4 Illustrations. Large crown 8vo, \2s.
Louisa. 'Workhouse Visiting and Management during Twenty-Five Years. Small crown Svo, 3^-. 6d.
TWINING,
UPTON,
of Arabia.
&
Co!s Publications.
Recollections of France and
27
its
South.
Littoral,
3^. 6d.
VAUGHAN,
VILLARI,
II. Hal/ord.'New Readings and Renderings of Shakespeare's Tragedies, 2 vols. Demy Svo, 25^.
Professor. W\CQ,o\o Machiavelli and his Times. Translated by Linda Villari. 2 vols. Large post Svo, 24J,
VOLCKXSOM,
VYNER, Lady
living
Mary. Every a Portion, Adapted from the Bible and the Prayer Book, for the Private Devotion of those in Widowhood, Collected and Edited by Lady ]\Lary Vyner, Square crown Svo, 5^.
Charles,
;
Day
WALDSTEIN,
Crown
Intellect
an Introductory Essay
Study of Philosophy.
Svo, 6^,
WALLER,
Rev. C. i?. The Apocalypse, reviewed under the Light of the Doctrine of the Unfolding Ages, and the Restitution of All Things. Demy Svo, \2s.
Ckas. Geo?-ge.lli?,loTY of
WALPOLE,
WALSHE, WATSON,
Times
to
and Appendices,
Ireland from the Earliest the Union -with Great Britain. With 5 Maps Crown Svo, loj. 6d.
Singing Physiolo-
gically Estimated,
Sir TJioinas, Bart.,
3^, 6d.
Crown
Svo,
3^. 6(/.
Enemies of Mankind.
Small
WEDMORE,
Frederick.The
With
Sixteen Illustrations,
Crown
WHEWELL,
WHITE,
from a Painting by
William, D.L>. His Life and Selections from his Correspondence. By Mrs. Stair Douglas. With a Portrait Samuel Laurence. Demy Svo, 21s.
With Prefatory A. D., LL.D.MJ artaxe of Science, Crown Svo, Note by Professor Tyndall. Second Edition,
3^. (>d.
Small crown Svo, cloth, 2s. F. ^.English Grammar. WHITNEY, Prof. William Z?w4'/^^'. Essentials of English ()d, Grammar, for the Use of Schools. Crown Svo, WICKSTEED, P. /i^. Dante Six Sermons. Crown Svo, 50.
WHITE,
3j-.
WILLIAMS,
Rowland, D.D. Psalms, Litanies, Counsels, Collects for Devout Persons, Edited by his Widow. and Popular Edition, Crown Svo, 3^. 6^.
and New
28
List of
WILLIAMS,
Roivland D.D.coniinued.
Stray Thoughts Collected from the Writings of the late Rowland Williams, D.D. Edited by his Widow.
Crown
8vo,
3^-.
6d.
WILLIS,
R., i1/.Z). Servetus and Calvin : a Study of an Important Epoch in the Early History of the Reformation. 8vo, l6j.
of the Discovery of the Circulation with a Portrait of Harvey after Faithorne. Demy
WILSON,
Sir
WILSON, H.
Schiltz.l^Yie
Tower and
is.
Scaffold.
Miniature
Monograph.
WOLLSTONECRAFT,
with a Prefatory
eau-forte
by Anna Lea
i7/a;7. Letters to Imlay. New Edition, Memoir by C. Kegan Paul. Two Portraits in Crown 8vo, 6^. Merritt.
WOLTMANN,
Dr. Alfred, and WOERMANN, Dr. j^ar/. History of Painting. Edited by Sidney Colvin. Vol. I. Painting in Antiquity and the Middle Ages. With numerous Illustrations.
Medium
8vo, 2%s.
bevelled boards,
WOOD,
Consonant.
Flesh. Short Family Readings on the Epistles for each Sunday of the Christian Year. Demy 8vo, 10s. 6d.
With Sir Christopher. YLis Family and His Times. Original Letters, and a Discourse on Architecture hitherto unWith Portrait. Demy By Lucy Phillimore. published. 8vo, 14J.
Rev. David, M.A.'WaXXing for the Light, and other Sermons. Crown 8vo, 6s.
WRIGHT,
YORKE,
Crown
the
YOUMANS,
A.Kn
especially in connection with the Study of Botany. Edited, with Notes and a Supplement, by Joseph Payne, F.C.P., Author of "Lectures on the Crown 8vo, 2s. 6d. Science and Art of Education," etc.
First Book of Botany. Designed to Cultivate the Observing Powers of Children. With 300 Engravings. New and Cheaper
Edition.
Crown 8vo,
2s. 6d.
YOUMANS,
Glass L., With the Basis of the New System. 8vo, 5^-.
Edzvard
M.D.K
Book
200
of Chemistry, on
Illustrations.
Crown
&
Go's Publications.
29
Forms
25
of
'Water:
a Familiar
Phenomena
II.
of Glaciers.
By
or,
J,
Illustrations.
Eighth Edition.
;
Crown
8vo,
<,s.
Thoughts on the Application of the Principles of "Natural Selection " and " Inheritance " to Political By Walter Bagehot. Sixth Edition. Crown 8vo, 4^-. Society.
III.
Foods.
By Edward
:
Illustrations.
Smith, M.D., LL.B., F.R.S. With numerous Seventh Edition. Crown 8vo, 5^.
the Theories of their Relation. By Alexander Illustrations. Seventh Edition. Crown
IV.
With Four
V.
VI.
The Study
On
of Sociology. By Herbert Spencer. Tenth Edition. Crown Svo, 5^. the Conservation of Energy. By Balfour Stewart, M.A., LL.D., F.R.S. With 14 Illustrations. Sixth Edition. Crown
Svo,
5^-.
;
VII.
Animal Locomotion
J.
or Walking,
B.
Pettigrew,
M.D., F.R.S.,
etc.
Second Edition.
VIII.
Crown
Svo,
5^^.
Responsibility in Mental Disease. By Henry Maudsley, M.D. Fourth Edition. Crown Svo, 5^. By Professor J. P. Cooke. With 31 IX. The New Chemistry. Sixth Edition. Illustrations. Crown Svo, 5^. Science of La^w. By Professor Sheldon Amos. Fifth Edition. The X. Crown Svo, 5^.
XI.
Animal Mechanism
motion.
By
Second Edition.
XII.
a Treatise on Terrestrial and Aerial LocoWith 117 Illustrations. Professor E. J. Marey. Crown Svo, 5^-.
:
The Doctrine
^
Oscar Schmidt.
Svo, SJ.
XIII.
The History
Science.
By
J.
of the Conflict between Religion and W. Draper, M.D., LL.D. Seventeenth Edition.
Influences, Uses, etc.
Crown
XIV.
Svo, $s.
their Nature,
Fungi
By M.
C. Cooke,
M.D., LL.D. Edited by the Rev. M. J. Berkeley, M.A., F.L.S. With numerous Illustrations. Third Edition. Crown Svo, 5^.
XV. The Chemical Effects of Light and Photography. By Dr. Hermann Vogel. Translation thoroughly revised. With 1 00 Third Edition. Crown Svo, ^s. Illustrations. XVL The Life and Growth of Language. By Professor William
Dwight Whitney,
Third Edition.
Crown
Svo,
5.r.
30
XVII.
XVIII.
A
Money and
The Nature
Svo,
Ss.
List of
of
the
Mechanism
Exchange.
Crown
By W.
8vo,
5j-.
Fifth Edition,
of Light. With a General Account of Physical Optics. By Dr. Eugene Lommel. With i88 Illustrations and a Table of Spectra in Chromo-lithography. Third Edition. Crown
XIX.
Animal
Beneden.
Parasites and Messmates. By Monsieur Van With 83 Illustrations. Second Edition. Crown Svo, 5^.
XX. Fermentation.
trations.
By
Third Edition.
With 28
Illus-
XXI.
XXII.
With
The Theory
Edition.
of
Sound
Svo, 5^.
Crown
XXIII. Studies in Spectrum Analysis. By J. Norman Lockyer, With six photographic Illustrations of Spectra, and F.R.S. numerous engravings on Wood. Crown 8vo. Second Edition.
XXIV.
A History
of the
Growth
of the
Steam Engine.
By
Professor R. H. Thurston. With numerous Illustrations. Edition. Crown Svo, 6s. 6d,
Second
P'ourth
By Alexander
Bain,
LL.D,
Crown Crown
Svo, ^s.
XXVI. The
XXVII.
Human Species.
Svo, 5J.
By
Professor A. de Quatrefages.
Third
Edition.
Modern Chromatics.
dustry.
Second Edition.
With Applications to Art and InBy Ogden N. Rood. With 130 original Illustrations. Crown Svo, ^s.
XXVIII.
Crown
Crayfish : an Introduction to the Study of Zoology. By With 82 Illustrations. Third Edition. Professor T. H. Huxley. Svo, 5^^.
Charlton Bastian,
The
With numerous
Illustrations.
Third Edition.
Wurtz.
Crown
By
Prof.
Translated by G.
Svo,
5^-.
Third Edition.
Crown
affect
Animal
Woodcuts.
Life-
Second! Edition.
Second Edition.
&
Co!s Publications.
31
Binocular
an Exposition of the Principles of Monocular and Vision. By Joseph le Conte, LL.D. With 132
Ilhistrations.
Crown
:
8vo, 5^.
XXXIV. Illusions
Edition.
a Psychological Study.
8vo, 5^.
By James
Sully.
Second
Crown
:
XXXV. Volcanoes
XXXVI. Suicide
what they are and what they teach. By Professor J. W. Judd, F.R.S. With 92 Illustrations on Wood. Second Edition. Cro%vn 8vo, 5^.
:
E. Morselli.
Statistics.
5j-.
By
Prof.
Second Edition.
Luys,
With
XXXVIII.
Myth and
5J-.
Science
By
With
Tito Vignoli.
Crown
Second
8vo,
Illustrations.
M.P.
XLI.
XLII.
Habits of the Social Hymenoptera. By Sir John Lubbock, Bart., With 5 Chromo-lithographic Illustrations. Fifth Edition.
Crown
8vo,
5^.
Animal
Intelligence.
By G.
8vo,
5^.
J.
Second Edition.
B. Stallo.
Crown
of
Modern
Physics.
By
Second Edition.
;
Crown
8vo, 5^.
An
Second Edition.
Crown
8vo,
XLIV.
Man
Second Edition.
8vo, cloth, Sj.
By N. Jolv,
8vo, 5^.
Politics.
By
Prof.
Sheldon Amos.
Crown
MILITARY WORKS.
Army
of the North
of
its
: a Brief Description Organisation, of the Different Branches of the Service and its Mode of Fighting, Translated from in War, of etc. their rdle the Corrected Edition, by permission of the Author, by Colonel Edward Newdigate. Demy 8vo, 5^.
German Confederation
BARRINGTON,
Capt. J. 7". England on the Defensive ; or, the Problem of Invasion Critically Examined, Large crown 8vo,
7j. (>d.
with Map,
32
List of
BLUME,
Major JF. The Operations of the German Armies in France, from Sedan to the end of the War of 1870-71. With From the Journals of the Head-quarters Staff. Translated by the late E. M. Jones, Maj. 20th Foot, Prof, of Mil. Hist.,
Map.
Sandhurst.
Demy
8vo, 9^.
BOGUSLAWSKI,
^War
of 1870-1.
and Corrected.
Translated by Colonel Sir Lumley Graham, Third Edition, Revised Demy 8vo, 7j.
C. B., R.A.,
BRACKENBURY,
for
naissance,
Col.
Oflicers. I. Military Sketching and ReconJ. Hutchison, and Major H. G. MacFourth Edition. With 15 Plates. Small 8vo, 6s. II. Gregor. The Elements of Modern Tactics Practically applied to English Formations, by Lieut-Col. Wilkinson Shaw. Fourth Edition. With 25 Plates and Maps. Small crown 8vo, Qj.
Regimental
by Col. F.
BRIALMONT,
CLERY, C,
Col.
^. Hasty Intrenchments.
Empson, R.A.
Translated by
Plates.
With Nine
Demy
Plans,
Demy
8vo, i6s,
DU
Leading Troops.
and accurate Translation by Lieutenant H. J. T. Demy 8vo, Ts. Hildyard, 71st Foot. Parts I. and II.
GOETZE,
in
w. Operations
during the
Maps.
of 1870-1. Published by Authority, and accordance with Official Documents. Translated from the German by Colonel G. Graham, V.C, C.B., R.E. With 6 large
War
of the
German Engineers
Demy
8vo, 2ij.
HARRISON,
Memorandum Book
Oblong 32mo, roan,
for Peace
with pencil,
Third Edition.
HEL VIG,
Capt.
H.
The
:
Army
5 large
Corps.
Maps,
Tactical
Vol. I. The Battalion, 15^. Vol. II. The Regiment and Brigade, loj, 6d. Translated from the German by Col, Sir Lumley Graham. With nearly 300 Diagrams. Demy 8vo.
Examples
HOFFBAUER,
Artillery.
Capt.T\v&
German
near Metz.
Plans.
German
Map and
Demy
LA YMANN,
Capl.TYie Frontal Attack of Infantry. by Colonel Edward Newdigate. Crown 8vo, 2s. 6d.
etc.
Officer,
Translated
By a Cavalry
Demy
Svo, 12 J.
&
Co!s Publications.
33
PARR,
SCIIAJV,
Capt.
H.
Equipment
Svo,
IS.
Hallam, C.M.G.The Dress, Horses, and of Infantry and Staff Oflicers. Crown
Col.
I/.Ttie Defence
Localities.
Svo, 3J. 6d.
and Attack of Positions and Second Edition, revised and corrected. Cro-\vn
SCHELL,
Maj. von. The Operations of the First Army under Gen. von Goeben. Translated by Col. C. li. von Wright.
Four Maps.
Demy
Svo,
<^s.
The Operations
of the First Army under Gen. von Steinmetz. Translated by Captain E. O. HoUist. Demy Svo, loj. dd.
Major-Gen.
I.
SCHELLENDORF,
General
Hare.
Vol.
B.
von.H\).&
Staff.
Demy
SCHERFF,
Maj. Tactics.
W.
Parts
z-^^. Studies in the Infantry I. and II. Translated from the German by
New
Demy
Svo, 7^.
6a'.
SHADWELL,
Maj. -Gen., C.^. Mountain "Warfare. Illustrated by the Campaign of 1799 in Switzerland. Being a Translation of the Swiss Narrative compiled from the Works of the Archduke Charles, Jomini, and others. Also of Notes by General H. Dufour on the Campaign of the Valtelline in 1635. With Ajipendix, Maps, and Introductory Remarks. Demy Svo, i6j.
Gen. W. r. Memoirs of General "W. T. Sherman, Commander of the Federal Forces in the American Civil War. By Himself. 2 vols. With Map. Demy Svo, ia^s. Copyright
SHERMAN,
English Edition.
STUBBS,
Lient.-Col. F.
W.'T\iQ
its
Regiment
of
The
History of
Compiled from Published Works, Official Records, and various Private Sources. With numerous Maps and Illustrations. 2 vols.
Demy
Svo, 32^.
STUMM,
Lieut.
Hugo.
Russia's
Svo, 6s.
Advance Eastward.
Based on
Official Reports.
Translated by Capt. C. E.
H. Vincent. With
Map.
Crown
VINCENT,
Capt. C. E.
Reconnoitring,
Svo, 2s. 6d.
Arms.
Square crown
By Volunteer, the Militiaman, and the Regular Soldier. Crown Svo, ^s. a Public Schoolboy. WARTENSLEBEN, Count H. von.T^iQ Operations of the South Army in January and February, 1871. Compiled from the Official War Documents of the Head-quarters of Translated by Colonel C. H. von Wright. the Southern Army. With Maps. Demy Svo, ts.
34
-^
List of
WARTENSLEBEN,
The Operations
with the above.
Count II. vo7i.contimied. under Gen. von of the First Manteufel. Translated by Col. C. H. von Wright. Uniform
Army
Demy
Svo,
<js.
IVICKHAM,
Capt. E. H., ^.^, Influence of Firearms upon Tactics Historical and Critical Investigations. By an Officer OF Superior Rank (in the Gei-man Army). Translated by Captain E. H. Wickham, R.A. Demy Svo, 7^. 6d.
:
WOINOVITS,
Capt.
by Captain
Translated
POETRY.
ADAMS,
IV.
to Tennyson.
ADAiM OF
ST.
of
Adam
of
From the text of Gautier. With Translations into St. Victor. English in the Original Metres, and Short Explanatory Notes, by Digby S. Wrangham, M.A. 3 vols. Crown Svo, printed oa hand-made paper, boards, 21s,
Antiope
a Tragedy.
y.
6^.
AUBERTIN,
y. Camoens' Lusiads. Portuguese Text, with Translation. Map and Portraits. 2 vols. Demy Svo, 30J. Seventy Sonnets of Camoens. Portuguese Text and Translation, with some original Poems. Dedicated to Capt. Richard F. Burton. Printed on hand-made paper, bevelled boards, gilt top,
7^.
dd.
AUCHMUTY,A.
\s. (>d.
FromBrunan-
burh to Lucknow
from Athelstan
to Albert.
of
Homer. Done
5 J.
:
BANKS,
Mrs.
5^.
G.
Poems.
Square
Svo,
in
vol.
in
BAYNES,
Songs for Quiet Hours. Rev. Cation H. i?. Fourth and cheaper Edition. Fcap. Svo, cloth, 2s. bd. *** This may also be had handsomely bound in morocco with
gilt edges.
Home
BENNETT,
Poems and
is.
Ballads.
Fcap.
&
CoJs Publications.
35
Dr. W.
Ccontinued.
Dedicated by Special Request to
H.R.H.
With
Steel Portrait
\s.
and
Illustrations.
Paper Covers,
Cro^vn 8vo,
(is,
BEVINGTON,
BILLSON,
C.
L. .?.
Key Notes.
5^.
Crown
BOWEN, H.
BRYANT,
and
C,
English Literature
Parts
I., II.,
and
III., 6d.
W.
CPoems.
BYRNNE,
E. Fairfax. M.\\\CQnX
a Poem.
6j.
Life is a the Wonder-Working Magician Calderon's Dramas Translated by Denis Dream the Purgatory of St. Patrick.
Florence MacCarthy.
Poem
in
12 Cantos.
CLARKE, Mary
Crown
Svo,
Cowdcn.
'js,
Honey
Verses.
COLOME,
a Spanish Legend.
CONIVA Y, Hugh.K
C0PFE,
Life's Idylls.
3^. ed.
Done
I.
David
Both-well, and the Witch Lady. Three Tragedies by the author of " Ginevra," etc. Crown Svo, cloth, 6s.
Rizzio,
G.S.,
DAVIE,
M.D.The Garden
of Fragrance.
Being a com-
plete translation of the jBostan of Sadi from the original Persian Crown Svo, cloth, ys. 6d. into English Verse.
DA VIES,
Crown
DE
of Queen Meave, and other Legends of Ireland's Heroic Age. Small crown Svo, 55.
Small crovra Svo,
5^.
Alexander the Great a Dramatic Poem. The Legends of St. Patrick^ and other
Svo, 5j.
Poems.
Small crown
36
A
VERE,
St.
8vo,
List of
DE
Auhyey.coniinued.
Thomas
5^-.
of
Canterbury
a Dramatic Poem.
Large
fcap.
Legends of the Saxon Saints. Small crown 8vo, 6j-, Antar and Zara an Eastern Romance. Inisfail, and
:
other
Fcap. 8vo,
6s.
The
Fall of Rora,
The Search
The Infant
Edition.
A New
and Enlarged
Fcap. Svo,
6d.
DILLON,
Arthur.
River
With
13
Fcap. 4to,
DOBELL,
DOBSON,
Mrs. Horace.
Svo, 6j.
Ethelstone,
in
5^'.
Eveline, and
other
Poems.
Crown
Austin.
Vignettes
Rhyme,
and Vers de
Societe.
Third Edition.
Fcap. Svo,
Proverbs in Porcelain.
Rhyme."
Second Edition.
of "Vignettes in
Dorothy
Preface.
Demy
^s.
Svo,
DOWDEN, Edivard,
'JS.
ZZ.Z?. Poems.
With
Second Edition.
Introduction,
Fcap. Svo,
Shakspere's Sonnets.
6d.
DOWNTON,
DUGMORE,
Hymns
-^s.
and
6d.
Verses.
Rev. Ernest Edivard. From, the Mountains of Quasi-Dramatic Poem on the Story of the Prothe East : Crown Svo, cloth, 3^. dd. phet-Soothsayer Balaam.
in
French
Fields.
New Edition,
Demy
Ancient Ballads and Legends of Hindustan. With an Small crown Svo, Introductory Memoir by Edmund W. Gosse.
printed on hand-made paper, 5^.
EDWARDS,
ELDRYTH,
ELLIOTT,
Rev. Basil. MinoT Chords ; or. Songs a Volume of Verse. Fcap. Svo, ^s. 6d. ; paper,
3^. 6d.
Edited by his Ebenezer, The Corn Law Rhymer. Voems. 2 vols. son, the Rev. Edwin Elliott, of St. John's, Antigua. Crown Svo, i8j.
"
&
Go's Piiblicaiwus.
Selected, with a Critical Introduction by Edmund W. GossE, and a miniature frontispiece by Hamo Thornycroft, Elzevir 8vo, limp parcliment antique, 6$. ; vellum, A.R.A.
is.
By
the Author of
Fcap. 8vo,
Ts. 6d.
*^* Also an Illustrated Edition, with 17 full-page designs in photomezzotint by George R. Chapman. 4to, extra, gilt leaves, 25J. and a Large Paper Edition, with Portrait, los. 6d.
EVANS, Ajme.Voeras and Music. With Memorial Ann Thackeray Ritchie. Large crown 8vo, js.
GOSSE, Edmund ^F. New Poems.
Crown
:
Preface by
8vo,
7^-.
dd.
GROTE,
A. i?. Rip van "Winkle a Sun Myth ; and other Poems. Small crown Svo, printed on hand-made paper, limp parchment
Rev. Alfred. Tiie
antique, ^s.
GURNEY,
G-wen
:
other
Poems.
Crown
Svo, 5^.
of
a Drama in Monologue. By the Author of the " Epic Hades." Third Edition. Fcap. Svo, $s.
Roht. collected
HAWKER,
HELLON,
HICKEY,
Siephe7Z.Th.Q Poetical
and arranged.
Godwin.
IS. 6d.
With
Portrait.
:
With Crown
Now
by
J.
first
G.
H. G^. Daphnis
E.
a Pastoral Poem.
H.K
Sculptor,
crown
Svo,
5j.
HOLMES,
5j.
E. G.
each.
^. Poems.
First
Fcap. Svo,
Horati Opera.
7j. dd.
With a Frontispiece
by Leopold Lowenstam.
INGHAM,
Sarson, C.
y. Caedmon's
^s,
Vision,
JENKINS,
Rev.
crown Svo,
Tragedy
Alfonso Petrucci,
Cardinal
and
Conspirator
3^-.
an
Historical
in Five Acts.
6d.
KING,
Mrs. Hamilton. The Disciples. and Notes. Crown Svo, 'js. 6d.
other Poems,
4?. 6d,
Aspromonte, and
Second Edition.
Fcap. Svo,
3S
A
parchment,
5^.
List of
LANG,
Blue China.
Elzevir
8vo,
5^.
LEIGHTON,
With
Portrait.
6d.
MDCCCLXXXII. With Frontispiece by Second Edition. Large crown 8vo. Printed on hand-made paper. Parchment, I2s., vellum, 15^'.
LOCKER,
F. London Lyrics. New and Revised Edition, with Additions and a Portrait of the Author. Crown 8vo, (>s.
8vo, 2s. 6d.
*^* Also a New and Cheaper Edition. Small crown Love Sonnets of Proteus. With Frontispiece by the
8vo,
5J-.
Author.
Elzevir
LOWNDES, LUMSDEN,
MACLEAN,
Crown
8vo, 6s.
Beowulf
Charles Donald.
Latin
5J-.
tions.
Small
MAGNUSSON,
grams.
Eirikr,
M.A., and
PALMER,
.^.Z?.C. Chronicles of
Christopher Columbus.
Small Crown 8vo, cloth,
^s. 6d.
Poem
in
Twelve Cantos.
MEREDITH,
tions.
With 160
Illustra-
Crown
MIDDLETON, The Lady. Ba.Ua.ds. Square i6mo, 3^. 6d. MOORE, Mrs. Bloomjield.Gonda.nne's Lesson The Warden's Tale,
:
Crown
8vo,
5^-.
MORICE,
of
Rev. F. D.,
7^. 6d.
M.A.The Olympian and Pythian Odes Pindar. A New Translation in English Verse. Crown
8vo,
MORRIS,
Vol.
New
5^.
each.
contains "Songs of Two Worlds," Vol. II. contains "The Epic of Hades." Vol. III. contains " Gwen " and " The Ode of Life."
MORSHEAD,
NADEN,
Being the E. D. A.-TYie House of Atreus. Agamemnon, Libation-Bearers, and Furies of .iEschylus. Translated into English Verse. Crown 8vo, ^s.
Constance
W.
Songs
5j.
and Sonnets
of Spring Time.
&
Co.'s Publications.
39
NEWELL,
E. Verses.
other
Poems.
NOAKE,
NOEL,
The Bivouac
to the Soldier.
With
Fcap. 8vo,
Edition.
Monument.
Second
Fcap.
NORRIS,
8vo, 6s.
Ode
0'
of Life, The.
Fourth Edition.
"The
Epic of Hades,"
etc.
HAGAN,
C.
John.T'h.e Song of Roland. Translated Large post 8vo, parchment antique, los. 6d. Verse.
into English
A?^a. Goethe's Faust. A New Crown 8vo, 6s. PA YNE, >/;.Songs of Life and Death.
PAUL,
Translation in
Rhyme.
Crown
Svo, S^-
PENNELL,
Cholmotideky^Pegas-as Resaddled. By the Author of "Puck on Pegasus," etc., etc. With lo Full-page Illustrations by George Du Maurier. Second Edition. Fcap.
H.
Poem
Crown
8vo, 6s.
Gerard's Crown
Monument,
Svo, 6^.
and
other
Poems.
Second
Edition.
Quarterman's Grace, and other Poems. Cro\;n Svo, 5^. Poems. Second Edition. Crown Svo, 6s. Sonnets and Songs. New Edition. i6mo, handsomely
and bound
in cloth, gilt edges, 4^.
".
printed
Lyrical and
Dramatic.
With
Portrait.
Allighieri.
Demy
Lang, and
his Poetry by Andrew a Frontispiece by Linley Sambourne. Parchment Library Edition, 6j-. ; vellum, ^s. 6d.
RHOADES,
ROBINSON,
Svo,
English Verse.
3J. 6d.
Translated
into
A. Mary
F.K Handful
5^.
of Honeysuckle.
Fcap.
With
40
A
Small crown 8vo,
cloth,
List of
Play and
Poem.
Schiller's
Mary
opposite page by
Stuart. German Text, with English Translation on Leediiam White. Crown 8vo, 6s.
Shakspere's Sonnets.
tispiece etched
Edited by Edward Dowden. With a Fronby Leopold Lowenstam, after the Death Mask. Parchment Library Edition, 6^. ; vellum, 7^. 6d.
In 12 Monthly Volumes.
;
Shakspere's 'Works.
Edition,
6j-.
Parchment Library
each
vellum,
"js.
6d. each.
SHAW,
An
W. R, il/.^.Juvenal, Persius, Martial, and Catullus. Experiment in Translation. Crown Svo, cloth, 5^-.
Percy Bysshe.
Shelley.
SHELLEY,
Lady
Library Edition,
vellum,
7j. 6d.
King Arthur.
Crown
SKINNER,
yames.Ccelesiia.. The Manual of St. Augustine. The Latin Text side by side with an English Interpretation in Thirtysix Odes with Notes, andz. plea/^r the study (t/" Mystical Theolog)'.
6s.
SLA DEN',
Songs of
Ingebjorg,
'^s.
and other
Two
'Worlds.
By the Author of "The Epic of Hades." Complete in One Volume, with Portrait.
By Four Friends. Containing Songs by Reginald A. Gatty, Stephen H. Gatty, Greville J. Chester, and Juliana Ewing. Square crown Svo, 5^.
Clarence. l-yvics
Svo,
"js.
STEDMAN, Edmund
Poems.
and
Idylls,
with
other
Crown
6d.
STEVENS,
TA YLOR,
WilHatn.Th.e Truce of God, and other Poems. crown Svo, 3^. 6d.
Sir
Small
H. Works
Complete
in Five
Volumes.
Crown
Svo,
30.?.
TEiVNVSON, A //red.\Yorks
Svo, los. 6d. each
;
Complete
:
in 7 vols. 6d. each.
;
Demy
or half-
Author's Edition.
morocco, Roxburgh
In 7
13 vols.
Post Svo,
Cabinet Edition.
2s. 6d.
Each with
Complete
Frontispiece.
Fcap. Svo,
each.
Cabinet Edition.
Case.
35J.
13 vols.
in
handsome Ornamental
Kegan
Pa7il,
Trench
&
i
Go's Publications.
41
vol.
^Yith
26
Illustrations
and
Complete in 13 vols, neatly bound and French morocco or parchment, i\s. 6d,
size, \s.
Shilling Edition.
In 13 vols, pocket
each, sewed.
6s.
;
The Crown
Edition.
"js.
6d.
In Memoriam.
With a Miniature Portrait in eatt-forfe by Le Rat, after a Photograph by the late Mrs. Cameron. Parchment Library Edition, (>s. ; vellum, 7j. 6d.
The
Princess. A Medley. With a Miniature Frontispiece by H. M. Paget, and a Tailpiece in Outline by Gordon Browne. Parchment Library Edition, 6^. ; vellum, 7^. 6d.
to
Songs Set
Cusins.
Music
by various Composers.
;
Edited by
W.
J.
Queen.
Royal
Original Editions
:
Small 8vo,
5^.
Ballads, and
other Poems,
6s.
Poems.
Small 8vo,
Maud, and other Poems. Small Svo, The Princess. Small Svo, 3^. 6d.
Idylls of the King.
Small Svo,
Ss.
3^. 6d.
Complete.
Small Svo,
6s.
4^^.
6d, The Holy Grail, and other Poems. Small Svo, Gareth and Lynette. Small Svo, 6d. Enoch Arden, etc. Small Svo, In Memoriam. Small Svo, 45. Harold a Drama. New Edition. Crown Svo, 6s. Queen Mary a Drama. New Edition. Crown Svo, 6s. The Lover's Tale. Fcap. Svo, 3^. 6d.
3^-. 3^-.
: ;
Selections
3^. 6d.
i6mo,
extra,
3^-.
6d.
Idylls of the King, and other Poems. Illustrated by Julia Mar2 vols, folio, half-bound morocco, J^6 6s. each. 5;aret Cameron.
42
A
for the Young Fcap. 8vo, IS. 6d.
List of
Specially arranged.
Tennyson
extra,
3^'.
superior Edition, printed in red and black, on antique paper, Small crown 8vo, extra, gilt leaves, 55. ; specially prepared. and in various calf and morocco bindings.
sive Eclogce e
Horee Tennysonianae
A.
J.
Church, A.M.
THOMPSON,
by
js.
Preludes a Volume of Poems. Illustrated Alice C. 8vo, Elizabeth Thompson (Painter of "The Roll Call ").
Dr.
()d.
TODHUNTER,
ds. 6d.
7. Laurella, and
Small crown Svo,
other Poems.
Crown
8vo,
Forest Songs.
Alcestis
3J. 6d.
of Rienzi
a Drama.
3^. 6d.
5^.
a Dramatic Poem.
A Study of Shelley.
Crown
Translations from Dante, Petrarch, Michael Angelo, and Yittoria Colonna. Fcap. Svo, 7^. 6d. TURNER, Rev. C. 7>;wm. Sonnets, Lyrics, and Translations. Crown Svo, ^s. 6d.
Collected Sonnets, Old and New. With Prefatory Poem by Alfred Tennyson also some Marginal Notes by S. T. Coleridge, and a Critical Essay by James Spedding. Fcap.
;
Svo,
"js.
6d.
WALTERS,
Brook
a Poem.
3.. 6d.
With 21
J.
W. H.
Engraved by
J.
D. Cooper.
Fcap. 4to,
WATERFIELD,
32mo,
is.
WAY,
A.,
M.A.Uhe Odes
Fcap. Svo,
Atigiista.
;
of
2s.
Metre.
WEBSTER,
Disguises
a Drama.
5^.
In a Day a Drama. Small crown Svo, cloth, 2s. 6d. YVet Days. By a Farmer. Small crown Svo, bs. WILKINS, Wiiiiam.Songs of Study. Crown Svo, 6s. WILLOUGHBY, The Hon. Mrs. On the North YVind Thistle-
down
Volume of Poems.
&
Go's Publications.
43
Poems.
James Chapman. K Child of the People, and other Small crown 8vo, 5^.
YOUNG, Wm.GiOX\\o\>, etcetera. Small crown 8vo, 3^. 6^. YOUNGS, Ella .S'/^a;^^. Paphus, and other Poems. Small crown 8vo,
3..
6^.
WORKS OF
BANKS,
Mrs. G. L.
FICTION IN
ONE VOLUME.
New
Edition.
God's
Miss
Providence House.
iT/. Kitty.
Crown
BETHAM-EDWARDS,
Crown
8vo, 6^.
or,
With a
Frontispiece.
Blue Roses
" Vera."
New
Helen Malinofska's Marriage. By the Author of and Cheaper Edition. With Frontispiece.
Crown
8vo, 6s.
FRISWELL,
Crown
of
Two
or,
The Left-Handed
Bride.
GARRETT, E.Bj
7 Illustrations.
With
HARDY,
the
T/iomas.A Pair of Blue Eyes. Author of "Far from Madding Crowd." New Edition. Crown Svo, 6s.
of the Native.
The Return
Crown
New
Edition.
With
Frontispiece.
Svo, 6^.
HOOFER, Mrs. C The House of Raby. Crown Svo, 3^. 6d. INGELOW, yean. OK the Skelligs a Novel. With Frontispiece.
:
Second Edition.
Crown
Svo, 6s.
MACDONALD,
on
Steel.
G^. Malcolm.
Sixth Edition.
The Marquis
Crown
St.
piece.
of Lossie.
With
Frontispiece.
Svo, 6s.
George and
Crown
Third Edition.
With
Frontis-
MASTERMAN, y. Half-a-Dozen
3J. 6d.
Daughters.
Crown
Svo,
MEREDITH,
Crown
George. Ovdeal of
Svo, 6^.
;
Edition.
The
Egoist
with Frontispiece.
PALGRA VE,
Third Edition.
Agha
44
^
;
List of
With an Introductory G.C.S.I., C.B. Crown
",
Pandurang Hari
or,
Memoirs of a Hindoo.
E.
Frere,
PA UL,
a Story, Margaret Ag)ies. Gentle and Simple Cheaper Edition, with Frontispiece. Crown 8vo, bs.
New
New
and
and
SUA W,
Flora
Z. Castle Blair
Crown
Cheaper Edition.
STRETTON,
TAYLOR,
Hcsba.H\^xo^x^)\ a Needle's Eye : a Story. and Cheaper Edition, with Frontispiece. Crown 8vo, 6j.
Col. Meado-cvs,
New New
With
8vo,
Frontispiece.
Crown
8vo, 6s.
Edition, with
Tippoo Sultaun
Frontispiece.
New
With
Crown
Ralph
New
Frontispiece.
Noble Queen.
piece.
New
of a
With
Frontis-
Crown
8vo, 6s.
The Confessions
Tara
:
Thug.
Crown
Crown
8vo, 6s.
8vo, 6s.
a Mahratta Tale.
THOMAS, Moy.K Fight for Life. Crown Svo, 35. 6d. Within Sound of the Sea. New and Cheaper Edition, with Frontispiece.
Crown
Svo, 6^.
St, Olave's."
Illustrated.
BARLEE,
a Tale of
6d.
the
Strike.
With a
Frontis-
is.
BONWICK,
Tasmanian
Lily.
With
Mike Howe,
Young
3..
the Bushranger of Van Diemen's Land. New and Cheaper Edition. With Frontispiece. Crown Svo, 3J-. 6d.
By
4 Illustrations by C.
6d.
Book of Example and Anecdote for the Editor of "Men who have Risen." With Doyle. Seventh Edition. Crown Svo,
Children's Toys, and some Elementary Lessons in General Knowledge which they teach. Illustrated. Crown Svo, ^s.
COLERIDGE,
New
Sara. Pretty Lessons in Verse for Good Children, with some Lessons in Latin, in Easy Rhyme. A
Edition.
Illustrated.
Fcap. Svo,
is.
6d,
6f Co!s Publications.
45
With 33
and Babies.
bd.
Imp.
i6mo.
Illnstrations.
Cloth
gilt, 2s.
Zs. 6d.
Parted
Pixie's
With 4
Illustrations.
Adventures;
i6mo,
4^^.
or,
the Tale of
the
a Terrier.
With 21
,With
12
Illustrations.
6d.
or,
Nanny's Adventures
Illustrations.
Tale of a Goat.
i6mo,
45. 6d.
DAVIES,
G.
Chrisfophe7:B.?irah\es
Illustrations.
DRUMMOND,
EDMONDS,
EVANS,
Frontispiece.
graphies.
Crown
Mark.
Illustrations.
for Ciiildren.
With 4
FARQUHARSON, M.
I.
II.
III.
Crown Svo, 3^-. dd. Crown Svo, 3^. M. Elsie's Holidays at Roselands. Crown
Elsie's Girlhood.
Elsie Dinsmore.
Svo,
:
3J-.
^d.
of Religion in
5^-.
England
With
Book
Young
Folk.
Crown
2s. bd,
Svo,
INGELOW,
JOHNSON,
Jean.1\v& Little
Small Svo,
Virghiia
Wonder-horn.
15 Illustra-
tions.
Illustrated
by
Alfred Fredericks.
New
LAMONT,
Martha Mac Donald. i:\\Q Gladiator Roman Empire in the beginning of the Third
by H. M. Paget.
Illustrations
LEANDER,
Richard. Fan\.?i?,\.\c
Stories.
Svo, 5^.
46
LEE,
Holme.
A Her
Title of
Edition.
List of
Honour.
Book
55.
for Girls.
New
With a
Frontispiece.
Crown
8vo,
With 4
S.
Illustrations
MAC IvENNA,
y. Plucky Fellows.
Fifth Edition.
A
6d.
Book
for
Boys.
With
6 Illustrations.
Crown
Svo,
6 Illustrations.
New
Illus-
Crown
y.
2s. 6d.
:
MALDEN,
H. is. Princes
and Princesses
2s. 6d,
Two
Fairy Talcs.
Illustrated.
Master Bobby.
trations.
With 6
Illus-
6d.
N'AAICE,
J.
T'. Slavonic
55.
Polish,
Fairy Tales. From Russian, Servian, With 4 Illustrations. Crown and Bohemian Sources.
Svo,
PELLETAN,
E.
Trans-
New REANEY, Mrs. G. 3"."Waking and "Working New and Cheaper Edition. to Womanhood.
piece.
By Colonel E. P. De L'Hoste. lated from the French. Fcap. Svo, 3^. 6d. Edition. Frontispiece.
or,
With
From Girlhood
Frontis-
With a
Life.
Crown
Svo, 3^.
6^/.
Sketch of Girl
35. 61/.
New
and
Book
for Girls.
Dedicated to
Crown
English Girls Their Place and Power. With Preface by Rev. R. W. Dale. Third Edition. Fcap. Svo, 2s. 6d.
Just Anyone, and
i6mo,
i6mo,
IS.
other Stories.
Three
Three
Illustrations.
Royal
Royal
6d.
Illustrations.
Sunbeam
l6mo,
IS.
other Stories.
Three
Illustrations.
Royal
6d.
ROSS, Mrs. E. ("Nelsie Brook ") Daddy's Pet. A Sketch from Humble Life. With 6 Illustrations. Royal i6mc, is.
SADLER,
S. IF.,
a Midshipman's
Adventures on the West Coast. With 3 and Cheaper Edition. Crown Svo, 2s. 6d.
Illustrations.
New
&
Go's Puhlicatioiis.
Stories.
47
other
With 4
Illustrations.
New
Seven
Crown
Autumn
Etchings.
tions.
STOCKTON;
STORE,
With 20
Illustra-
Francis,
or,
and
TURNER,
^izry^j. Canterbury
Chimes;
the Ellesmere
Chaucer Tales retold to Children. With 6 Illustrations from MS. Second Edition. Fcap. Svo, 3^. 6d.
STRETTON,
tions.
With 4
Illustra-
Sixteenth Thousand.
Fcap. Svo,
2s. 6d.
Stories. By the Author of "Aunt Mary's Bran Pie.' Illustrated. Second Edition. Small Svo, y. 6d.
Tales from Ariosto Re-told for Children. Illustrations. Crown Svo, 4^. 6d.
By
a Lady.
With
WHITAKER,
Illustrated.
A London
Story.
ZIMMERN,
With 6
Illustrations.
Third Edition.
Crown
Svo, 5^.